Mere Ghar Me Matakte Gand
Introduction :
Ye kahani mere jiwan ki kuch sacchi gatnao par
aadharit hai. Yadi kisi vayakti bises se ye kahani mel
khati to, purn roop se sanjogmatra hai. Yatharth se is
kahani ka koi sambandh nahi hai. Aur, iski koi copyright
kisi ke paas nahi hai. Purntaya is kahani ka lekhah main hi hoon.
Mera naam Saurav hai. Mere pariwar me 6 log hai.
Presently,
Maa Shweta 40, Papa Kailash 44, Badi Didi Pammi 22,
Choti Bahan Priya 18, aur Main 20. Ye kahani mere
pariwar ke aaspas hi ghumti rahegi. Isliye, padosiyon ki
jyada pahchaan hona jaruri nahi hai. To kahani is tarah
suru hoti hai ki –
Main 20 ka ho chukka hoon. Par ab tak main sirf muth
maar kar hi kaam chalata raha hoon. Kai baar padosh
wali Renu Didi ko langte nahate dekha hoon, par kabhi
itni himmat nahi hui ki jakar unki gand me land sata
sakoon. Aise unki gand ki jitni tariff ki jaye utni kam
hai. Unka figure kuch 32-28-34 hoga, par bala ki
khubshoorat lagti hai wo. Unki gand ko dekh dekh kar hi
jawani ki shuruat hui hai meri. Aise to kai aur auntiya,
ladkiyan hai jinka naam sunte ki mera land fufkar
uthta hai. Parantu, mere padoshi Renu Didi ki gand ki
tulna kisi aur ke khayalo se nahi kar sakta. Unki gand ka
vichaar aate hi, mera land tanak jata hai, aur 2-3
minute hilate hi paani tapak jata hai. Yaad bhi nahi ki
unki naam ki kitni muth mari hai maine. Lekin jo bhi ho,
unki gand mere land ke nasseb me nahi thi. So, unhe
langte nahate dekh kar bhi kabhi unhe chod na paya. Is
visay me charcha kabhi aur karoonga, to kahani ka ye
bhaag yahi sthagit karte hue apne jawani ki sacchi par
aata hoon, jaha mujhe boor aur gand dono chodne ko mili.
Ummid karta hoon, sare pathako ko meri ye kahani
romanchit karegi. Aur, sabhi harsh purvak swagat karenge.
Update 1
Meri maa Shweta 40 saal ki ho chuki hai. Lekin, unhe
dekh kar koi ye nahi bol sakta ki wo challis ki. Jab wo
bazaar jati hai, to sabhi log ghur ghur kar unko dekhte
hai, maano wo koi 25 saal ki yuvti ho. Unka figure
36-28-38 hai. Unki gand dekh kar pata nahi mere
mohallo ke kitne ki log muth marte honge. Jo bhi unki
gand ek baar dekh le, apne land ko control me nahi rakh
sakta. Meri maa ki gudaaz gand kisi bhi land se paani
tapka sakti hai. Mera bhi yahi haal hota hai apni maa ke
ubhardar gand ko dekh kar. Ji karta hai pant khol ke
unki gand ki dararo me apna land sata doon. Roz unki
gand ko soch soch kar muth bhi marta hoon mai. Unki
chuchhiyan bhi bahut bade bade hai, mano unki
chuchhiyon me 2 litre dood bhara ho. Chuchhiya blouse
faad kar bahar aane ko aatur rahti hai hamesa. Jab wo
ghar ka kam karti hai to mai hamesa unki chuchhiyan
aur gand dekhta rahta hoon. Isi tarah mere din kat hi
rahe the, ki achanak mere jeewan me kuch rochak
ghatna ghati, aur mai zero se hero ban gaya.
To wo ghatna kuch kuch is prakar hai ki mere kuch
bahut “acchewale” dost hai. Acchewale ka tatparya
sabhi acche se samjh hi rahe honge. Aise dost jo aapke
bare me kabhi accha nahi sochte, unhe “acchewale” dost
kahte hai.
Main pratidin sham ko apne “acchewale” dosto ke saath
ladkiyaan tadne nikla karta tha. To rozana ki tarah aj
bhi sham ke 4 bajte hi mere “acchewale” dost mere
ghar par tapak pade. Aur, jor jor se aawaz lagani suru
kar di – “Saurav, Saurav!!”. Meri badi didi pammi ne
khidki se jhaka, aur mujhe bola ki tere “acchewale” dost
tujhe bula rahe hai. Hum log sare dost tahalte hue karib
1km ki dur pahuch gaye, sadak par ladkiyan tadte hue.
Waha ek chote se maidan me mandali jama kar baith
gaye sare dost. Fir charcha suru hui. Rohit, Ravi aur
Raj mere kuch khash acchewale dost hai. Fir hamare
bich me baat suru ho gayi.
Ravi to me – “Aur batao, kaisa chal rha hai. Padhai
likhai me tum pura hero ho be, din bhar ghar me ghuse
rahte ho kitab chat te rahto ho. Aur, exam me ulti kar
dete ho paper par sara gyan.”
Me – “Abe har time yahi baat se suru kahe karte ho be!
Aur koi starting point nahi hai kya!”
Rohit – “Chodne se pahle land tankana to padta hi hai
guru! Bina tankaye land ghusega to nahi na. hihihi hi”
Raj – “Bhosdi ke, tumko kaun bolta hai itna padhne ko
ki sab baat baat par tera gand maarte rahe”
Me – “Lauda padh rahe the aj hum, Mastram ka 2 kitab
kharide the na gandu! Usi ko padh rahe the”
All – “Abe bata na kaisa tha, accha tha to humlog ko bhi sunao”
Fir maine apne pocket se Mastram ki kitab nikali, aur
dhire dhire padhna suru kar diya. Dhire dhire kahani
pich par aa rahi thi. Aur mere “acchewale” dosto ke
acche acche land tanakte ja rahe the. Mai dhire dhire
padh raha tha. Tabhi raj bolta hai.
Raj-“Sala, tum bahut dhire dhire padhta hai, jitna der
me tum panty kholwayega, tab tak mere land sikud jayega.”
Me-“Chutiya, tu padh no to tezz tezzz! Aur maine usko
kitab badha di”
Raj aise to padhne me kuch khash nahi tha, lekin
reading awwal deta tha. So wo suru ho gaya padhne.
Aur, Sare dost maze lene lage. Karib 20 minute tak raj
tezi se padhta raha aur hum sabhi maze se aankhe
band karke kahani ke hero ki jagah khud ko mahsus
karte rahe. Mai thoda kahani ghar par padh chukka tha
to mujhe utna maza nahi aa raha tha, lekin, Fir bhi
kahani ke hero “Paltu” ke land me jarur koi baat thi. Jo
wo baar baar jhadta tha aur fir chodne ke liye kahada
ho jata tha. Achanak rohit khada ho jata hai dhire dhire
jhadiyo ki taraf chalne lagta hai.
Ravi-“Abe gandu, kaha chal diye”
Rohit-“Bardast nahi ho raha hai guru! Pura pillar bana
hua hai, lauda kahi chaddi me gir gaya to fevicol jaise
sara jhant chipak jayega, hum chale nikalne”
Rohit jhadiyo ki piche chala hai, aur apna land nikal kar
hilane lagta hai. Jhadi itni dur nahi thi ki waha se wo
kahani na sun sake. Raj kahani padhta jata hai, aur
rohit dhire dhire muthiyate jata hai.
Ravi-“Lauda mere ko bhi had se bahar ho raha hai, mai
bhi chala jhadi ke piche.”
Aur, ravi bhi jhadi ke piche jakar muth marne lagta hai.
Raj aur speedly kahani padhta jata hai aur dono muth
marte jate hai. Fir, raj mere taraf kitab uchhal kar
jhadiyo ke piche chala jata hai. Aur, mujhe bolta hai.
Raj-“Ab tu padh be, humse bhi control nahi ho raha hai!!!!!
Mai apne shakti anusaar tezi se kahani padhne lagta hu,
aur teeno muth maarte jate hai. Ab tak kahani me
paltu ka land teen baar jhad chukka hota hai, par mere
ye chodumodu dosto ka muth abhi tak nahi gira. Karib 5
minute bad teeno bahar nikalte hai. Aur fir mai kahani
padhna band kar deta hoon.
Raj-“Abe tum nahi hilaya, tera kahada nahi hua ka be!”
Me-“Already aj 3 bar nikaal chuke hai, to aur kitna
hilaye be, aur upar se ye story bhi padha hua tha mera
to maza lauda aayega”
Ravi-“Abe tum bola ki 2 kitab kharida tha, to aj rat ke
liye humko ek do to be”
Tab maine dusri wali kitab nikal kar ravi ki aur badha di.
Kitab ka naam tha “Garam Aurat”.
Kahani dhire dhire garam hogi, isliye sare readers se
nivedan hai ki kahani ki raftar badhane ki iltaza na
kare. Mai aapke manoranjan ka yathashakti dhyan
rakhne ki kosis karunga.
Update 2
Ravi ko to maine “Garam Aurat” de di. Par pahli kitab
ke “Rangeen Jawani” liye rohit aur raj dono ladne lage.
Kitabo ke naam kalpanik nahi hai, ye wahi naam hai jo
maine sachmuch me pahli baar padhi thi. Socha inke
shirshak ka jikr banta hai
Rohit-“Hum ye wala kitab le jayenge aj.”
Raj-“Tab humko kya milega, mere ko bhi chahiye.”
Me-“Abe gandu log, sala kitab do aur 3 log ko le jana
hai! Ya to aadha aadha le jao, ya koi aur intezam karna
hoga. Ladki to hai nahi ki dono taraf se baja sakte ho.”
Rohit-“Abe aadha aadha le jayenge to KLPD ho jayega,
jisko 1st half mila, uska khada hi rah jayega aur jisko
last wala mila usko intro hi pata nahi chalega. Fir chudai
to padhega, par pata nahi chalega ki chud kaun rahi hai,
maa hai ki bahan hai ki bhabhi. Aise jhant maza aayega.
So, tum humko kuch dusra de do. Isko ye le jane do”
ME-“ha be, hami to mastram hai na, likh likh ke chhap
rahe hai tum log ke liye. Lauda sabko naya naya
chahiye aur nahi hai mere pas.”
Raj-“Abe landu ke pas hoga, uske pas bhi dhere rahta
hai. Bula na usko!”
Ravi-“ha be ha be!, chal na usko bulane chalte hai, yahi
bahane uska bahan ko bhi taad lenge”
Bipin urf “Landu” bhi mere “acchewale” dosto me ek
tha. Uski didi Pooja, jo ek number ki kadak maal thi.
Doodh ki tarah gori thi wo. Figure karib 32-28-34 hogi.
Wo landu se ek saal hi badi thi. Isliye hum log use khul
kar baatein kar pate the, lekin thi woe k number ki
HITLER. Landu ko na bahar jane deti thi na chain se
rahne deti thi. Landu bhi Pooja se pura paresan rahta
tha. Lekin uski khubsoorti ka nazara hi kuch aisa hota
tha ki sabke tambu ukhad jate the.
Ravi-“Are yar, sach batao ye mastram ki saari kitabo
me hero ka land kabhi sikudta kyu nahi hai. Hamesa
khada hi kyu rahta hai. Girne ke baad fir khada ho jata
hai. Ab iss Paltu wali kahani ko hi le lo. Mano land na hua
nal ho gaya. Jab chalao pani hi pani hi hi hihih.”
Hum log sabhi ek sath Landu ke ghar ke aur batein
karte hue chal pade. Bate, Hasi- majak jari tha. Bipin
ke ghar ke niche uski maa khadi mili.
Ravi ne pucha – “Aunty, LLan.... Bipin kaha hai??”
Aunty-“Abhi to yahi tha, upar dekho shayad WWF dekh rha hoga.”
Main aur ravi sidhi se dabe paav upar chal diye. Baki
sare dost niche hi mandali bana kar baith kar. Ghar ka
darwaja khula tha, main knock karne hi wala tha ki ravi
ne mera hath rok liya.
Ravi-“ruk be, dekhte hai, kya kar raha hai wo?, Agar
wo na bhi raha to sayad Pooja maal dikh jaye. Aur
possibly agar wo jhadu laga rahi ho to doodhiya
choochhi ke darshan bhi ho jaye”. Main ruk gaya. Dhire
se darwaja khola aur andar ghusa. Piche piche ravi bhi
ghar me ghus gaya. Humne dekha TV high volume par
start tha. Par waha koi nahi tha. Ravi slowly baramade
me chala gaya aur dekha ki Landu bathroom ke darwaje
se andar jhank raha hai.
Dabe paav wo bahar aa gaya, usne mujhse kaha –“Are
yar, ye landu to bathroom ke andar jhank raha hai,
shayad pooja andar hogi, aur landu maza le raha hai.”
Ravi dhire se andar gaya aur piche ke bipin ko pakad
liye. Bipin hadbada kar chaunk gaya. Shayad wo pooja ki
boor dekh kar usme kho gaya tha, use pata hi nahi
chala ki hum kab waha pahuche. Bipin ne jhat se ravi ke
muh par hath rakh aur use utha kar TV wale room me
le aaya aur bola –“Abe tum dono yaha kaise? Aur sala
bina aawaz diye andar ghus gaye.”
Ravi-“Awaz de ke aate to tum pakdate nahi na beta.
Pura maza le rahe ho bhabhi ka.”
Ravi shayad ye soch raha tha ki Bipin uski bhabhi ko
dekh raha tha. Lekin mujhe pata tha ki bipin ki bhabhi
to apne mayke gayi hui hai.Main samjh gaya ki
bathroom me pooja hi hai. Ravi majak karte hue bola,
achha beta bhaiya nahi hai to tum hi saiya ban rahe ho.
Bipin jaldi se jaldi hame ghar se bahar nikalna chahta
tha, taki hame ye pata na chale ki bathroom me kaun
tha. Hame dhakke dete hue usne ghar se bahar nikala
aur bola –“Chal be bhosdi ke niche ruk, main aata hoon 2 min me”..
Ravi-“Abe, ek baar mujhe bhi dekhne do na, teri bhabhi
to mast maal hai. Ek baaar dekhne de na, kitne din ho
gaye, bf bhi nahi dekha hai. Aur tum sala original maal
dekhta hai. Dikha na be, bas ek jhalak. Kabhi original
boor nahi dekhe hai be dikha de bhai ek baar.”
Bipin-“OOye pagal ho gaya hai kya, sala ab bhabhi
bahar aane wali hi hogi. Chal jaldi niche.”
Ravi aur main jaldi se niche aa gaye aur Landu ka wait
karne lage.
Maine dhire se rohit se kaha-“Abe kuch bhi ho jaye, ravi
ko upar mat jane dena, landu beta kabhi niche aayega
nahi, bhayanak busy hai chhora, ye kar ki tu ravi ko
busy kar de bipin ki maa ke sath. Main ek round upar se
aata hoon!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!”
Rohit samjh gaya ki jarur daal me kuch kala hai. Main
dhire se upar gaaya, dekha landu abhi bhi pooja ke boor
dekh raha tha, maine kaha abe ab to dekhne de, main akela hoon.
Bipin ne mujhe pakda aur kaha “abe tu fir aa agya,
control nahi ho raha tha yar, ab bina hilaye niche nahi
aa sakta, bhabhi bhi bathroom me hai. kya karun? Tu ja
yar, main aata hu jaldi niche.”
Me-“Abe mujhe bhi darshan kara de yaar. Kabhi
original wala pas se nahi dekha bhai.”
Bipin-“Abe kisi aur din, abhi ravi ko shak ho jayega,
chal niche main aata hoon”.
Bipin baat ko talna chahta tha, main kisi bhi tarah razi
karna chahta tha, kyuki mujhe pata tha ki andar bhabhi
nahi pooja hai. Bipin ne socha ki agar ye andar dekhe
bhi to isko sirf niche ka portion dikhega aur ye samjh
bhi nahi payega ki kaun hai. Lekin wo ye bhul gaya ki
usne hi mujhe bataya tha ki bhabhi mayke gayi huui hai.
Bipin-“Dekh le beta, lekin bas 10 second, usse jyada
nahi,” main bathroom ke andar jhakne ke liye hole se
aankh lagaya, pooja ki boor najar ke samne thi, bhoori
bhoori jhante, 1 inch ke karib hogi, chikni gori gori
janghe dikhi, mera land thann se khada ho gaya, pahli
baar koi boor aankh ke samne thi, boor ke phanko se
paani tapak raha tha, nabhi ke upar kuch dikh nahi raha
tha, main uski soundarya me kho sa gaya, aise pratit ho
raha tha jaise duniya ki sabse pyari scenary mere
aankho ke samne ho, Tabhi pooja niche jhuki, sayad soap
uske hath se fisal kar niche gir gaya tha, wo soap
uthane ke liye niche jhuki hi thi ki uske choochhiyan
mere aankho ke samne aa gaye, achanak pooja ne hole
ki taraf dekha. Main daar gaya ki kahi usne dekh to
nahi liya. Main jhat se utha aur pichhe bhaga. Bipin bhi
samajh gaya aur baramade se nikal gaya, Dhire se
Pooja ne bathroom ka darwaja khola, par waha koi nahi
tha, par sayad use ye shak ho gaya tha ki koi hole se
jhak raha tha. Maine socha ki agar wo aise sochti bhi hai
to usko kaise pata chalega ki main aaya hoon. Uska shak
to pura ka pura bipin par hi jayega. Bipin ne jaldi se
shirt pahna, aur hum bhagte hue niche aa gaye.
Me-“Beta bach gaye, kahi dekh leti na to aj hum dono
ka chatni bana deti”
Landu-“Bole the beta, mat karo, fasa diye na, aur bipin
gussa ho gaya.”
Me-“Abe shant ho jao, ravi ko shak ho gaya to sabko
bata dega,aise bhi tum bathroom me jhank rahe the, ye
baat to wo sabko bol ke hi rahega, lekin use laga hai ki
teri bhabhi andar thi, so koi baat nahi hai. Tum bhi aisa
pretend karna ki bhabhi hi thi.”
Bipin-“Pretend kya karna, bhabhi ko to dekh hi sakte hai na be.”
Me-“Beta udd mat, mujhe pata hai ki wo bhabhi nahi pooja thi.”
Bipin-“abe tujhe kaise pata chala”
Me-“wo tune hi to bataya tha ki bhabhi mayke gayi hai,
aur maine dekha ki andar pooja hi thi, maine to
choochiyan bhi dekhi”
Bipin-“Kaise be, upar to dikhta hi nahi hai” Me-“Wo
sabun uthane jhuki thi, tab dekha maine. Usi waqt pooja
ko shak hua ki koi hole se jhak raha hai”
Bipin-“Kisi se nat bolna bhai, tu sabko bol dena ki wo
bhabhi hi thi”
Me-“Thik hai bol dunga, Lekin beta yaad rahe, agar
kuch haath laga to aadha mujhe bhi chahiye”.
Bipin-“Sirf dekh rahe the be hath lagane ka koi irada
bhi nahi hai, tune aisa kand kiya hai ki sayad ab dekhne
bhi na mile, tu to janta hi hai ki pooja kitni dangerous hai.
Aisa karna to dur, usko kah bhi nahi sakta.”
Me-“Koi nahi beta, agar tere kismat me tere bahan ki
boor likhi hai to wo jarur chudegi tujhse. Stop these
matters now, & mingle with others. We will lead this
later.” Bipin-“Wah beta angrezi, kisi se bolna mat
be???????” Me-“Kya ho raha hai bhai log, le landua aa gaya.”
Sabhi hasne lage, aur hum log fir se maidan aur chal
diye. Chodne ko na mili, par Pooja ki makhmal si boor ke
darshan to hue.
Update 3
Bipin ki didi Pooja ki boor dekhne ke baad mera land
control se bahar ho rha tha. Kisi tarah se maine control
me rakha hua tha. Sare dost apni apni bato me masgul
hokar dhire dhire mere ghar ki or badh rahe the. Rohit
mujhe ishare kar raha tha ki kya baat thi ki main akele
upar gaya tha aur Ravi ko busy rakhne ko bola tha.
Maine ishare se bol diya ki baad me bate hogi. Main
bipin ke sath batein karte hue ja raha tha.
“Bipin, man le ki jab tu ghar gaya, aur Pooja ne tujhse
pucha, ki tu kyu bathroom me jhank raha tha to kya
bolega? Aur, man le jab tu ghar pahucha to pata chale
ki Pooja ne teri maa se bol diya hai to kya karega? Teri
to ‘L’ lag jayegi ghar pahuchte hi.”
“Chutiye chut dekhne ki liye risk to lena hi padhta hai,
main itne dino se dekh raha tha didi ki choot, use kabhi
shak nahi hua, tune aise kya dekh daala ki use shak ho
gaya. mujhe nahi lagta ki didi kuch bolegi aise. Man le ki
Pooja didi ko shak ho bhi gaya ho to kya karegi. Main
kuch dino tak nahi dekhunga. Bas sab kuch normal ho jayega.”
“Are yar, yahi to mauka hai, baat ko aage badhane ka,
ye mauka hath se mat jaane de. Agar, kisi tarah baat
ban gayi to, soch roz tu apni Pooja didi ki chut aur gand
dekhta hai. Agar kahi sach me Pooja ne ha kah diya to
teri to lottery nikal jayegi. Ghar ki maal ghar me hi
chudegi, aur tere ko bhi kahi bahar mehnat nahi karni
padegi. Aur ho sakta hai Pooja didi ke through tujhe teri
bhabhi aur maa ko bhi chodne ka mauka mil jayi. Ya
nahi to teri didi ki saheli ‘Pinki’ hi mil jaye.”
“Are yar, Pinki ka naam mat le, gajab ki chiz hai yar wo
to, jab jab ghar aati hai, uske naam ki muth marni
padhti hai, kasam se uski chochhiyan kayamat hai, Agar
mil jaye to sara doodh nikal loon sali ka. Khud to randi
gand uchaal uchaal ke chalti hai, aur Pooja didi ko bhi
bigadti ja rahi hai. Pata nahi kal sham ko Pinki aur didi
shopping ke liye gaye the, to Pinki ne didi ko ek jeans
liwa di hai. Ghar wapis aakar jab didi ne jeans try kiya
to bahut tight hai.”
“Kasam! Pooja didi ne jeans pahna, tune dekha tha kya,
wo bhi tight wali, Tab to sare curves dikh rahe honge.
Sach me soch kar hi maza aa ja raha hai. Teri pooja didi
ki 36 ki gand ubhri hui jeans se sama bhi nahi payegi.
Gajab ki makhmali chuttar hai yar teri didi ki. Dil kar
raha hai abhi jau aur leta kar ghop du pooja ki gand me khutta.”
“Ha! jab didi ne jeans pahan kar mujhe dikhaya to jeans
ke upar se hi panty ki line dikh rahi thi. Kasam se yar
bahut tight thi, man kar raha tha pakad ke daba doon.
Kash didi ki chut marne mil jaye to maza aa jaye.”
“Dekh bhai, akele mat khana teri Pooja didi ko, itni
katto maal akele pacha nahi payega beta, aisa jugaad
banana ki mujhe ki thoda sa chakhne ko mil jaye. Aakhir
unki matakti gand ki hum bhi kayal hai. Mast hila hilaa
ke chalti hai teri didi, sare dost teri didi ki nam ki muth
marte hai. Agar mauka mile to teri didi ki boor aur
gand dono ki chatni bana ke rakh de ye log. Jab tu hota
nahi to sari teri didi ki chuttar ki tarif me jute rahte
hai. Ravi ne to teri didi ki gand ki photo bhi rakhi hai
mobile me, use dekh kar ki hilata hai wo.”
“Aisa kya, saalo ko chhodunga nahi, meri didi ki bare me
sochte hai harami sala, aur ravi jise main apna sabse
accha dost samjhta tha, uski mazar mere hi didi ki
chuttaro par hai, meri didi sirf mujhse chudegi, main
kisi aur se chudne nahi dunga apni pyari pooja didi ki chut.”
“Yar wo baat to hai, par mujhe to dega na apni didi ki gand.”
“Dekh bhai, pahle main ji bhar chodunga didi ko, agar
didi gand marwane ke liye ready ho gayi to didi ki gand
sabse pahle tujhe marne dunga ye waada raha, aage se
main rasta kholunga to pichwada tu khol dena.”
“To rahi baat, tu ab jaldi se pooja didi ko pata ke thok
daal, taki jaldi se unki rasbhari gand main maar saku.”
“Lekin ek shart hai bhai!!!!!!!!!”
“Wo kya.”
“Badle me tu kya dega.”
“Sale tu pakda gaya pooja ko bathroom me jhakte hue,
ab tu dealingbazi karega.”
“Abe nahi, main to bas aise hi try kar raha tha.”
“kya try kar raha tha be”
“Mujhe pooja didi ki gand utni acchi lagi lagti. Mujhe
mote mote bade chuttar acche lagte hai yar”
“Thik hai tu mat lena teri didi ki gand. Main to chod
chod ke fad dunga teri didi ki matakti gand.”
“Bhai aisa nahi hai ki mujhe gand acchi nahi lagti, par
pooja didi ki nahi, mujhe kisi aur ki gand marne ki iccha
hoti hai.”
“Saale kya inssan hai be tu! Kabhi tune Pooja ki gand
dekhi hai. Kya gajab lagti hai, na jayada bade na chote,
naa had se jyada bhaari na bahut halke. Bilkul managed
gand hai teri didi ki. Model se kam nahi lagti teri didi ke chuttar.”
“Tujhe meri didi ki gand model lagti hai to tujhe de to
raha hoon. Par mere liye kisi aur ki gand model hai”
“Kiski????????????????????????? ‘Pinki’ ki kya???????”
“Dekh ghuma fira kar baat to karni hai nahi. Mujhe
thode bhaari bhaari gand acche lagte hai. Ab main tujhe
apni didi ki komal unchudi gand marne dunga, to badle
me bhi kisi ki gand dilwayega kya tu??????????”
“haan bhai bilkul!!!! Tu jisko bolega uska try lunga!!!!!!!!”
“Mujhe teri maa ki gand acchi lagti hai yar. Jab teri
maa bazaar jati hai to unki matakti chuttar kya kahar
dhate hai, teri maa bhi kam nahi hai, jaan bujh kar gand
matka matka kar chalti hai. Aur mujhe dekh kar to kuch
jyada hi matkane lagti hai.”
Maine kabhi apni maa ki gand ko itni dhyan se nahi
dekha tha, jaise main Bipin ki didi Pooja ki gand marna
chahta tha, waise hi Bipin meri maa ki gand ke piche
pada tha. Lekin sawal ye tha ki naa Bipin ne Pooja didi
ko pataya tha na maine Meri maa ko. Fir kaise??????
Bipin ne apni didi Pooja ki gand mujhse marwane ka
waada kiya tha. Dono wapas apne apne ghar laut jate
hai. Bipin apne ghar me ghusta hai aur andar jate hi
mahsus karta hai ki Pooja kuch gusse me hai. Wo kuch
bolna chahti thi par, bol nahi rahi thi. Bipin ne pooja
didi se pucha ki –
“Kya baat hai didi aj badi gusse me ho??”
“Kuch nahi bas aise hi, main baad me bolungi. Pahle tu
mere kamre me to chal.”
Jab bipin didi ke kamre me jata hai to didi kamre ka
darwaja band kar deti hai. Bipin dar jata hai ki ab didi
kya bolegi? Kahi didi ko ye to nahi laga raha hai ki
bathroom me main jhank raha tha, agar didi me sidha
ye sawal kar diya to main to saaf saaf mana kar dunga.
Lekin mana karne se baat aage kaise badhegi. Aur, agar
Pooja didi ki gand Saurav ko naa di, to Saurav ki maa ki
gand bhi marne nahi milegi. Sabse pahle didi ko taiyar
karna hoga, chahe jo bhi karna pade.
Didi – “Kya soch rahe ho, bhai??”
Bipin – “Kuch khas nahi bas aise hi... Exam ka tension
hai. Ab acche se taiyari karni hogi.”
Didi - “Kaun si book se taiyari karoge. Text book se ya
iss book se.”
Bipin sar utha kar dekhta hai, Pooja didi ke hath me
mastram ki kitaab thi. Wo chaunk jata hai ki didi ko ye
kaha se mil gayi. Fir use yaad aata hai ki subah muth
marne ke bad wo kitab takiye ki niche rakha kar bhool
gaya tha. Sayad Pooja didi ko ye wahi se mili hogi. Dar
ke mare Bipin ki ye sthiti thi mano kaato to khoon nahi.
Bipin ka chehra daar se safed pad gaya tha ki ab kya hoga??
Didi – “Bolo, bol kyu nahi rahe ho?? Mujhe sab pata hai
ki tum kya kya karte ho??”
Bipin ye sochne laga ki kahi didi ne use muth marte hue
dekh to nahi liya hai. Lekin wo nazre jhukaye khada
rahta hai. Pooja didi dhire dhire Bipin ki aur badhti hai.
Bipin dar jata hai. Pas aakar wo mastram ki kittaab
bipin ke hath me de deti hai, aur bolti hai –
Didi-“Ek hi rakhi hai, ya aur bhi rakhi hai chippa kar, ye
to maine puri padh li 2 ghante me. Mast story hai bhai
bahan ke pyar ki.”
Bipin ko ab bhi yakin nahi ho raha tha ki Pooja didi
gussa nahi hai. Wo chupchap apna sar jhukaye khada tha.
Didi-“Ye story padh kar mere tan badan me aag lag
rahi hai. 2 bar bathroom jakar boor par pani bhi daala.
Par aaj bhatti kuch jyada hi garam ho gayi hai. Upar se
kal Pinki ne bhi dher sari story sunai thi, uski aur uski
bhaiya ki sex ki. Wo to bol hi rahi thi ki main bhi apne
bhaiya se chudwa loon. Lekin bhaiya se bolne ki himmat
mujhme nahi. aur bhaiya ko bol kar bhi fayda nahi hai,
bhaiya to din raat bhabhi ki boor chodte rahte hai, aur
jab bhabhi boor na de, to gand fadte hai unki.”
Pooja didi garam hokar anap sanap bake ja rahi thi. Wo
puri tarah se garam ho gayi thi. Ab bhi bipin isi soch me
tha ki itni kadak dikhne wali Pooja didi aj itni naram
kaise padh gayi hai. Kahi ye uska natak to nahi hai, sab
kuch pata karne ke liye. Pooja ke muh se aise gandi
gandi sabd dun kar Bipin ka land bhi aakar lene laga.
use pata bhi nahi chala ki kab land tan kar 6” lamba aur
3” mota ho gaya hai. Uska land chaddi faad kar bahar
aane ko vyakul tha, lekin apne sthiti se parichit Bipin
chupchap hath piche kiye khada tha.
Update 4
mai Bipin! Mai ab apni didi ki harkato se purntaya
vichlit ho chuka tha. Mere man me bhi iccha jagne lagi
ki Pooja didi ki kaam-vasna ko shant kar diya jaye. Aur,
didi ki jaldi bhatti par kuch kabab sheke jaye. Yahi haal
didi ka bhi tha. Wo jald se jald mere land apne boor me
dalwane to machal rahi thi. Bhai bahan ki ki story padh
kar wo to pahle se hi garam ho chuki thi. Bas unhe leta
kar dalna hi tha.
Pooja Didi mere paas aakar me chhati par hath rakhti
hai aur dhire dhire aapna hath niche sarkana suru karti
hai. Pooja Didi ki nazre meri pant par bane tambu ki
taraf hi gadi hui thi. Aur, mere badan par hath ghuma
ghuma kar khelna suru kar di. Didi ka hath mere saris
par padhte hi mujhe current sa laga. Ye koi maamuli
touch nahi tha. Mai roz Pooja Didi se kisi na kisi baat
par touch to ho hi jata tha. par, roz vasna mere andar
hoti thi, Didi ki taraf se nahi. Aaj baat kuch aur thi. Aaj
aag dono taraf barabar lagi hui thi. Didi ne apna left
hand mere pant par bane tambu ke upar rakh diya aur
right hand mere pith par chalane lagi. Main bhi apne
aape se bahar ho raha tha. Aise bhi sham ko Didi ko
aadhe ghante tak nange dekha tha aur uske baad muth
bhi nahi maari thi.
To, mere land bhi aaga ugalne ko bechain hi tha. Bas,
jarurat thi usse thode se madad ki. Jo madad main aaj
khud use dene wala nahi tha, aaj wala madad meri Pooja
Didi dene wali thi mere land ko. Mera land khushi ke
maare pagalo ki tarah ucchal raha tha. Pooja didi dhire
dhire mujhse sat ti ja rahi thi. Mere badan par unka
dabav badhta ja raha tha. Ab pooja didi mere badan se
poori tarah lipat chuki thi. Unki choochhiyan mere
chhati se ragad kha rahe the. Wo mere badan se aise
ragad kha rahi thi ki mano koi bakri deewar par ragad
kar khujli miltati hai. Didi bhi apni boor ki garmi mitane
ke liye mere sarir ko deewar samjh kar ragad kha rahi
thi. Aur Pooja didi ki en harkato se mere badan ka taap
bhi badhte ja raha tha. Bas main suruat khud se nahi
karna chahta tha.
Dimag me hazaro tarah ke sawal chal rhe the ki –
Kya sach me mujhe apni Pooja Didi ko chodna chahiye?
Kahi ye baat maa ko pata chal gayi to? Kahi Pooja didi
ne kisi se bol diya to? Kisi se bole na bole Pinki ko to
bata ki degi, kyuki Pinki bhi didi se apni chudai ki
kahaniya batati hai. Aur Pinki to badboli hai, kahi bhi
kuch bhi bolti rahti hai. Usne charo taraf dhindhora pit
diya to? Main aur didi kahi muh dikhane layak nahi rahenge.
Fir maine Pooja se kaha “Didi, hato na mujhe kuch kuch
ho raha hai”
Pooja Didi-“Main nahi hatne wali, tune jo aag lagayi hai,
use bujhani to padegi na”
“Par Didi main aapka saga bhai hoon, aap mere sath
aisa nahi kar sakti hai”
“Kyu nahi kar sakti, Kya burai hai isme!!!!!!!! Main
jawaan ho gayi ho, meri chut aur gand itni chudas hai ki
kisi ka bhi land khada kar de. Main bhi chudne ko mari ja
rahi thi. Par darti thi ki kahi kisi bahar wale se chudau,
aur badnami ho gayi to? Ab to apne ghar me hi mujhe
mera chodu mil gaya hai. Main tumhe chhodne wali nahi.
Pinki to bolti thi ki bade bhaiya mujhe acche se
chodenge. Bhabhi ne bataya bhi tha ki bhaiya ka lauda
bahut lamba aur mota hai. Fir maine socha ki bhaiya se
chudne se pahle apni chut aur gand ki seal kisi se to
khulwani hogi, nahi to bhaiya ka itna musal land main
pahli baar me sah nahi paungi.
Meri nazar to pahle se hi tum par thi. Fir ek din maine
tunhe mut te hue dekha, tera land pura tanka hua tha,
tujhe bahut jor ki mut lagi hogi. Tab maine pakka kar
liya tha ki main tujhse chudungi sabse pahle. Ye baat
maine Pinki se bhi nahi batayi hai. Kya chahta hai tu?
Ki main apni boor ki aag thandi karne ke liye bahar jau.
Mohalle ki sare ladke mujhe chodna chahte hai, bas ek
ishara dene ki der hai, koi bhi land uthaye aa jayega
meri boor lene. Lekin mai nahi chahti ki mere pariwar ki
badnami ho bahar. Ghar me do jawaan bhai hote hue
mai bhar kyu chudne jau. Aur agar jarurat padi to Papa
se chudwaungi, lekin kisi bahar wale ko apni boor aur
gand nahi bhodne dungi.”
Pooja didi kisi bhi tarah mujhe chodne ke liye mana rahi
thi. Main man hi man sochne laga ki, main soch rha the
ki mujhe didi ko manana padega. Yaha to khud didi hi
tangein failane ko taiyar hai mere land maharaj ke liye.
Itna sundar mauka mujhe nahi khona chahiye. Ab mujhe
bhi Didi ka saath dena chahiye nhi to Didi kahi jhad
gayi to fir naa Didi ki boor milegi na Saurav ki maa ki
gand. Maine socha Saurav ko bata doon ki didi mujhse
chudne ko taiyar ho gayi hai.
“Pooja Di, mai do minute me aata hoon. Tum gussa mat
hona, bahut jaruri call karna hai”
“Kyu GCPD kar rahe ho bhai”
“Ye GCPD kya hota hai”
“Itna bhi nahi samjhte mere chote bhai raja. Jaise tum
log ‘KLPD – khade land par dhoka’ bolte ho, waise hum
ladkiyan ‘GCPD – Garam Chut par Dhoka’ bolte hai.
Aise garam chut par dhoka dene wale bahut kam hote
hai, agar aisi garam chut kisi ko mil jaye to wo bina
chode to nahi chhodega.”
“ha ha hah ah!!!! Sahi bola didi, aapki jaise garam maal
kisi ke paas boor faila ke chudne aaye to koi landu hi
hoga jo na chode.”
“Are landu to tera nickname hai na, tu kyu sach me
landu ban raha hai, chod na jaldi se apni Pooja didi ki boor.”
“Didi main bas Saurav ko bata kar aaya ki aap mujhe
marwane ko ready ho.”
“Kyu????????? Use kyu bata raha hai, kahi wo bhi
mangne laga to, main kisi aur ko nahi dungi. Mat bata
kisi ko. Kisi ko bhi nahi. Main bhi Pinki se nahi kahungi.
Waada kar ki kisi ko nahi batayega.”
“Nahi Pooja Di, main waada nahi kar sakta, Lekin main
ye waada karta hoon ki aapka pura khayal rakhunga.
Apki boor aur gand dono ki garmi ko shant karunga
rozana. Jitni baar aap chudna chahe utni baar chodunga
apki boor aur gand.”
“Thik hai par koi gadbad mat karna, aur jaldi nipta ke
aa. Main chudne ko mari ja rahi hoon aur tu waha dosti
batiya raha hai. Mujhe chodne ke baad use call kar lena,
kaun sa wo bhaga ja raha hai.”
Maine Saurav ko phone lagaya . “Hello be! kya kar raha hai”
“Kuch nahi be! Bas ab Pooja Didi ki boor ka udghatan
karne ja raha hoon.”
“Man gayi kya wo. To landu ja na pahle Didi ki kaamagni
ko shant kar, mere se gand mara lena baad me. Ja jaldi”
“Bye, yar, aata hoon nipta ke”
“Ja yar! Aram se pura time le ke chod apni Pooja Didi
ki boor. Sun khabardar jo Didi ki gand ki seal kholi, us
ka waada tune mujhse kiya hai.”
“Yaar didi to Boor aur Gand dono marwane ko taiyar
hai mujhse, lekin bolti hai kisi aur ko nahi degi.”
“Abe chhod wo sab baat, jaldi se apna dhakkan khol
pahle, fir baad ki baad me dekhte hai.”
“Bye” “Bye”
Main Saurav se baat karke Didi ke kamre ki taraf
dauda. Andar gaya to dekha didi bistar par leti thi. Aur
apni bra utar chuki thi. Pooja Didi apne dono hatho se
dono choochhiyon ko masal rahi thi.
Main jaldi se bistar par chad gaya aur didi ke pet par
hath rakh diya. Didi ne aankhe kholi. Didi ki aankhe
mano izazat de rahi thi ki main unke kaumarya ka
bhedan kar doon. Ya sayad ye puch rahi thi ki aur kitna
der karoge apni didi ki seal todne me.
“Didi, Tum to bahut garam ho chuki ho. Jaldi se jaldi
tumhari aaga bujhani hogi. Main bhi aab taiyar hoon
apki boor ka bhosda banane ke liye.”
Didi apna left hand apni boor par le jaati hai, Aur panty
ke right side khiska kar mujhe apni boor ke darshan karwati hai.
Boor puri tarah gili ho chuki thi, mano bas ab mera land
mang rahi ho. Pooja didi ne right hand mere land par
rakh diya to mutthi me jakad liya. Ab dono control se
bahar ho chuke the. Kyuki ye pahle chudai thi dono bhai
bahan ke liye. Isliye kuch pata nahi tha ki kaise jyada
maza liya jaye. bas dono apni apni paani nikalna chahte
the jaldi se jaldi.
Last edited by lockpascal : 19th August 2014 at 11:54 AM .
Update 5
Didi ke boor dekhte hi main pagal ho gaya, aur jhuk kar
didi ki chut ko hatheli me lekar dabane laga, Didi
chudasi to hi thi, siskiya lete hue mere pratham sparsh
ka swagat kiya Pooja Didi ne, Didi ki boor se jharne ki
jaisa pani bah raha tha, mano Didi ki boor jaldi land na
milne ke karan aansu baha rahi ho. Maine aur jyada der
karna uchit na samjha aur, didi ke upar let gaya, mere
dono hatho me didi ki 32” ki sakht choochhiya mere
hatho me sama gayi, main unhe dhire dhire maza le le
kar masalne laga, didi ki choochhiya doodhiya gori thi,
aur up par brown ka nipple tanak ke khada ho gaya tha,
jo is or ishara kar raha tha ki didi ko bhi maza aa raha
tha. Maine didi ki nipple ko unglion ke bich pakad kar
chutki mari, didi sisiya uthi.
Pooja-“aaaah! dhire kar bhai, dard hota hai”
Bipin-“dard ke baad maza bhi aayega didi, jab main
apna 6” bullet tere garage me dalunga.”
Pooja-“Daalo na ab, main to kab se dalwane ke liye
tange failaye hoon. Tum hi ko apne dost se baat karne
ki padi thi. Ab jaldi bhi karo bhai. Aur kitna tadpaoge.”
Main ‘bipin’ utha aur bhabhi ki wardrobe kholi. Bhabhi ke
drawer me ek white color ki bodylength pantyhose thi.
Jo bhaiya bhabhi ke liye laye the. Maine bhabhi ko wo
pahan kar chudte hue dekha tha. Tabhi se mere man me
Incest ka kida ghar kar gaya tha. Bhabhi mujhse
chudegi ya nahi kise pata, maine socha Pooja Didi ko hi
ye pantyhose pahna kar chodta hoon. Bhabhi ki
imagination bhi aati rahegi dimag me, aur pooja didi bhi
khush ho jayegi.
Me-“Didi, meri ek baat manogi???????”
Didi-“Kya bhai. Kya baat manwa rahe ho. Apni kori
unchhuyi boor pasar to di hai tere liye, aur kya mang
rahe ho. Gand bhi marwaungi tumse agar tum bolo to.
Lekin pahle mere boor ki khujli to mita do jaldi se.”
Me-“Didi aram se chodunga tumko to, samay bhi bahut
hai, aur tum to meri pyari didi ho, aur aj pahli baar
chudne ja rahi ho, to pura anand lena chahta hoon tere
jism ka. Taki tumhe bhi ye aaj ka din hamesa yaad rahe.”
Didi-“Bolo kya mang rahe ho tum mujhse. Main to puri
ki puri tumhari hi hoon. Ab aur der na karo, mere boor
se aag nikal rahe hai.. tera tand bhi to tanka hua hai
ghante bhar se. Jaldi se apne didi ki boor ko apne land
ka swad chakha do.”
Didi puri tarah se khul chuki thi. Ab wo maza lene ke
liye kuch bhi karne ko taiyar thi. Apni jange khol ke
boor par hath ragad rahi thi didi. Ab didi puri tarah se
pgal hui ja rahi thi. maine bhabhi ke drawer se
pantyhose nikala aur didi ke pas jakar bola ki Didi main
chahta hoon ki tum ye pahan kar chudwao mujhse.
Didi annkhe kholti hai aur –“Are ye to bhabhi ki
favorite inner hai, bhaiya unhe roz yahi pahna kar
chodte hai, rrat ko bhabhi bas yahi pahan kar soti hai.”
Me-“Didi maine bhabhi ko ye pantyhose pahan kar
chudwate hue dekha tha bhaiya se, uss din se wo chhavi
mere man mastisq me ghum rahi hai. Bhabhi to mujhse
chudegi nahi, didi apko hi ye pahna kar chodunga.”
Didi-“Aj main tujhse pahli baar chudwa rahi hoon aur tu
mere badle bhabhi ki kalapana karna chahta hai.”
Me-“Nahi didi, main chahta hoon ki aap ko bhi ye ahsas
ho ki bade bhaiya ka land apko chod raha hai. Aur mujhe
bhi khushi milegi.”
Didi puri tarah se lnagte ho chuki thi. Kapde ke naam
par bas wo pardarsi panty hi thi unke jism par. Didi ne
apna kamar uthaya aur apni panty bhi nikaal di. Ab didi
puri tarah se langti ho chuki thi. Bahthroom me to didi
ka aadha badan hi dekha tha, ab pura badan mere
samne tha. Pahle itna mast didi kabhi na lagi thi. Sayad
unke acche lagne ka ek karan ye bhi tha ki mujhe pata
tha ki meri Pooja didi ki kunwari boor ab kuch chhano ke
baad mere hathiyar se fategi.
Didi uthi aur pantyhose pahanne lagi. Didi ab bhabhi ke
roop me chudne ko taiyar thi. Pooja didi ki photo
pantyhose me.
Maine didi ko uthaya aur bistar par lita diya, main bhi ab der nahi
karna chahta tha, jo hona hai ho jaye. Main didi ke tango ke bich
baith gaya aur didi ki boor par apne hoth rakh diye. Main didi ki
boor chatne laga. Didi ki boor to pahle se hi paniyai hui thi. Mere
jibh ke sparsh se mano jal strot hi fut pada ho. Ab didi jaldi se
boor me land lena chahti thi. Mere land se bhi precum bah raha
tha, jo mere land ko chipchipa bana chuka tha. Ab bas der thi to
didi ki boor me jhande gadne ki.
Didi ke boor se ek ajib bhini bhini khusboo aa rahi thi. Kuch logo
ko ye gandh durgandh lagti hogi, par Vasna me pagal matwale
haathi ko ye sundangh aur bhi madmast kar dene wala hota hai.
Mera land gusse se aakash ki orr dekh raha tha, mano mujhse ye
vinti kar raha ho ki mujhe didi ki boor me jaldi se daal do. Didi bhi
apne boor ka bhosda ban ne ka intezar kar rahi thi. Apni Pooja
didi se milan ki iss madhur gadhi me apne land dev ko sambhalna
koi aasan kam nahi hota, jara sa utawlapan dikhaya aur kamras
fut pada. Aur, kamras bahne ke baad to apsaraye bhi kinaar si
pratit hoti hai. Maine apne mastram guru se chudai ke jo sare
gyaan batori the, aj un saari shaktiyo ka sahi upyog karne ka
samay tha. Man me uth rahe sari kamukta ko didi ki gufagrih ki
andar chhodna tha. Sari uljhano ka nivaran bas ek hi tha ki main
didi ki jalti boor me apni fanfate land ko pel doon.
Didi ki sarir ka taap main apne hatheliyo par mahsus kar raha tha.
Meri jibh didi ki baahri bhagosth ko chubhla rahe the, jo didi ko
khule aasman me udne ko majboor kar rahe the. Didi ne ab apne
saree hathiyar daal diye the, maine apne pratham astra se hi didi
par vijay pa li thi. Didi ne mere sar par hath rakha aur apne boor
par daba diya. Jaise mere sar ko apne boor me ghusa lina chahti
ho. Boor ki gulabi pankhudiyo ko main apne hotho ke bich rakha
kar kaat raha tha, aur jibh ko didi ki boor me ghusane me
prayatnasil tha. Jo mere Pooja Didi ko kafi sukhdayi lag raha tha.
Unki chehre par ajib si muskan thi, jo ab kuch channo me dard ki
lakiro me badalne hi wali thi. Main apne jibh se didi ke boor ke
phool ko mahsus rha tha. Meri jibh didi ke kaumarya tak pahuch
chuki thi. Ek chhota sa ched tha, jo main apne jibh ke nok par
mahsus karne laga, ji ko aaya ki didi ki boor jibh se hi faad doon.
Par ye karya mere land ka tha, main apne land ko didi ke
kaumarya ke khoon se vanchit nahi karna chahta tha. Isliye maan
ki sari icchao ko dabate hue maine apne land ko jyada prathmikta
di. Didi ne jor se mere sar ko apne boor ka dabaya ko kamar ko
hawa me uchhalne lagi. Sayad, didi ne paani chhoda tha. Didi ne
jor ke 5-6 jhatke mere muh par diye aur dhab se bad par gir
padi. Didi ek round khel chuki thi.
Ek bar jhadne ke baad pooja didi ki boor
Main uth kar baith gaya. Maine didi ke chehre ki aur dekho. Pooja
didi santust thi. Didi ke chehre par muskan aur sharm ka mila
jula sa asar tha. Maine apna hath didi ke jangho par rakha aur
sahlata hua dhire se gand ke niche ghusa diya. Jhadne ke baad
didi ne apne badan ko dhila chhod diya tha, jis se didi ki gand aur
bhi gulgul ho gayi thi. Main didi ki chuttar baye chuttar par hath
firane laga. Didi sharma gayi aur ulti ho gayi bistar par. Main bhi
chodne ko vyakul tha, par abhi didi ko fir se garam hone me kuch
minute to lagte hi. Sharm se muh chippati Pooja didi ulti leti
Didi ko sikhudta dekh mera land bhi so gaya, lekin main iss baat
se khush tha ki maine matra chat kar didi ka raas nikal diya tha.
Jis tarah pyar ek tarfa nahi hota hai chudai bhi ek tarfa nahi
hota hai. Chudai aur balatkaar me yahi fark hai sayad. Main didi
ka balatkar nahi karna chahta tha, main chahta tha ki didi bhi
ucchal uchhal ke mere lauda le apni boor me. Didi chudwane ko
taiyar bhi thi, lekin abhi turant jhad kar jhurmura gayi thi,
maujhe fir se didi ko garam kar na hoga.
Maine aage badha ko didi ke dono kharbujo ke dono haatho me
bhar liya, didi chaunki, sayad abhi is hamle ke liye taiyar na thi.
Maine sthiti to samjhte hue dhire dhire hath derna suru kiya didi
ki gando par. Makhamali ehsas tha wo, kafi der se hamne ek dusre
se koi baat na ki thi, bas ek dusre se maza le rahe the chupchap.
Me-“Didi, pata hai, teri gand bahut pyari hai. Man karta hai teri
boor se pahle gand hi faad du.”
Didi-“Nahi, pahle main tere land ko apne boor me lungi. Fir jab dil
kare le lena meri gand. Lekin Pinki bata rahi thi ki uske bhaiya ne
jab pahli baar uski gand mari thi to wo 4 din tak chal nahi pa rahi
thi. Kahi mere sath bhi aisa to nahi hga. Stories me to aisa koi
zikr nahi hota hai, na hi filmo me.”
Me-“Stories aur Filmo me original to hota hai nahi, aur ho sakta
hai Pinki ke bhaiya ka land kuch jyada hi mota ho. Kabhi Pinki ne
bataya hai ki uske bhaiya ka kitna mota aur lamba hai.”
Didi-“Hmmm, batayi to thi, par mujhe viswas hi nahi hua, bol rahi
thi ki uske bhaiya ka musal 9” lamba aur 5” mota hai. Tab maine
socha ki fek rahi hai saali.”
Me-“Ho sakta hai, isliye wo unki laude ki diwani ho.”
Didi-“Are nahi, bol rahi thi ki uske bhaiya use rula rula kar
chodte hai. Par wo bahar marwana nahi chahti kisi se, isliye ghar
par hi chudti hai apne bhai se. Pata nahi kaise leti hogi 9” lamba
land. Ek baar chudne ke baad mujhe boor bhi dikhayi thi. Uska
boor ab boor nahi raha, pura bhosad ban chuka hai.”
Me-“Didi, tum daro mat, mera land utna lamba aur mota nahi hai,
pahle tum mujhse chudwa lo, agar tumhe aur lambe mote laude ki
jarurat hui to, Bhaiya ka le lena, aur nahi to Papa se chudwana.
Aur tum bolo to main apne kisi dost se chudwaunga tumko.”
Didi-“Nahi baba, mujhe nahi chahiye mota land,mujhe to tera land
dekh kar li dar lag raha hai ki itna bada main apne chote se boor
me kaise lungi. Lekin, suruat to karni hi hai. Bhaiya aur Papa ka
bhi tumse mota hi hoga, to tumse chudwa ke practice kar leti
hoon. Fir bhaiya aur papa ka bhi lungi.”
Me-“Didi main tumko itna chodunga ki tere pass time ki nahi
rahega kisi aur ka lauda lene ka. 24 ghanta tere boor ko gand me
apna lauda daal kar rakhunga.”
Didi-“Bhai tere pas to 1 hi land hai, aur mere pas 3-3 ched hai,
main ek baar me 3 land le sakti hoon. Abhi to sikhna suru hi kiya
hai, dhire dhire main puri randi ban jaungi, fir sabko ek sath
maza dungi.”
Didi ki baate saaf zahir kar rahi thi ki didi ab fir se garam hone
lagi hai. Maine didi se bola didi ab chudai suru kare, tumhara to
ek baar jhad gaya, ab mera bhi jhad ho na. Didi bistar par uth kar
baith jati hai. Maine socha ki kyu na didi ko lauda chusaya jaye.
Maine didi se land chusne ko kaha...
Me-“Didi lo na, mera land chus kar khada kar do, fir teri boor ka
rasta kholenge.”
Didi-“Nahi bhai, main nahi chusungi, mujhe ajib sa lagta hai, dhire
dhire sikhungi na bhai. Force mat karo, please bhai.”
Me-“Ok Pooja didi, koi baat nahi, par isko khada to karo.”
Didi ne mera land apne komal komal hatho me liya to haule haule
hilane lagi, didi ka hath lagte hi mera land fanfana kar khada ho gaya.
Me-“Didi tere hatho me to jadoo hai, hath lagte hi tanak gaya
mera land.”
Didi kuch nahi boli bas meri aankho me annkhe dale dhire dhire
mere land ke khelti rahi. Maine bola “didi mere land par cream
lagake chikna bana do, tab tumhe jyada paresani nahi hogi
dalwane me.” Aur maine pas ke drawer se baby oil ka dibba nikal
kar didi ko diya, Didi ne bottle ka dhakkan khola aur 5 ml tel
apne hatho me lekar land par lagane lagi. Didi bade pyar se mere
land me mallis kar rahi thi.Mera land ab boor chodne ko taiyar tha.
Maine didi se kaha –“Didi ab ready ho jao mera land lene ke liye
boor me.”
Didi uth kar apna pantyhose kholni lagi. Par maine rok liya. Main
didi ko us white pantyhose me hi chodna chata tha. Fir maine didi
ko bistar par patak diya aur jaldi se didi ke tango ke bich aa
gaya. Maine jara bhi samay na gawate hue didi ki tango ko apne
kandho par utha liya. Aur apna land didi ke boor ke muh par rakh
diya. Didi sisak uthi. Maine Didi ke jango ko jor se pakda aur ek
halka ka dhakka mara. Mera land didi ke boor me ghusna suru
hua. Didi thoda sa uchhli. lekin maine didi ko jor se pakad rakha
tha, syad wo hil dul bhi na ppayi. Fir maine kamar piche ki aur ek
jor ka dhakka mara. Mera land didi ki boor ko chirta hua nadar
ghus gaya. Mere land ka supada didi ke boor me puri tarah fit ho
chuka tha. Didi dard se chatpatane lagi. Upar utha kar boor se
land nikalne ka prayas karne lagi. Maine didi ko jor se pakda aur
ek jor shot mar diya. Mera land 3” didi ke boor me ghus chuka
tha. Didi ki aankho me aansu aa gaye the.
Update 7
Didi-“Aaaah bahanchod dhire kar, dard ho raha hai.”
Main didi ka khyal rakhte hue 2 minute ruk gaya. Didi se
chochhiyon ko hath me liye aur slowly dabane laga, didi siii siii kar
uthi. Fir maine apna kamar thoda piche khicha. Didi ko laga ki
main fir se ek jordar dhakka marne wala hoon.
Didi-“Aram se, dhire me marna, bahut dard ho raha hai.”
Didi ki jhilli fat chuki thi. Boor se halka halka khoon bahar aa raha
tha. Maine land bhar nikal liya aur didi ko apne land par laga
khoon dikhaya.
Didi –“Pahli bar hota hai, mujhe pata hai, jyda khoon nikal raha
hai kya dekh to.’
Me -“Nahi bas thoda sa land par lga hai aur kuch bahar aaya hai.”
Didi –“Tu dar mat, land kyu nikal liya, ja jaldi se daal. Nahi to fir
se dard hoga.”
main fir se didi ki boor me land dalne ki kosis karne laga. Main
dhire dhire dhakke par dhakke lagata raha. Didi bhi niche se
kamar ucchhala suru kar di thi. Maine dhire dhire raftar badhana
suru kar diya tha. Didi kuch bol nahi rahi thi, lekin uske chehre se
pata lag raha tha ki ab dard kam ho chuka hai aur didi ko bhi
maza aa raha hai.
Me – “Didi , kaisa lag raha hai.”
Didi –“Bahanchod, bate mat kar, bas dhakke lagata ja, aur tezz
chod apni didi ko, aaj tu bahanchod ban gaya hai, chhod mere bhai..”
Didi bhi jor jor se kamar ucchalne lagi aur bar bar mujhe dhakke
lagane ko uksa rahi thi.
Didi-“Aur jor se chood bhai, chod de apni didi ka boor, faad de
aaj apni didi ki chut, bana de bhosda apni Pooja didi ki chut ka.”
Didi josh me land fand bake ja rahi thi aur jor jor se kamar
ucchal uchhal kar mera land dalwa rahi thi apne boor me. Main
kamar piche karta aur land ko wapas khich kar supade tak bahar
nikal leta aur ghap se zor ka shot marta marta. Har jhakte ke
sath land pure jad tak didi ke boor me shama jata. Chudte hue
didi bahut pyari lag rahi thi. aise hi maine 10 15 jordar dhakke
lgaye, har dhakke ke sath didi ka por por hil jata. Puri tarah se
mera wajan didi ke sarir par tha, main apne didi ke pure sarir ko
jor jor se masalne laga. Dono hath maine didi ki gand par rakhi
aur didi par audhe muh let laga, didi ki sakht choochiyan mere
chatti par gad rahi thi, didi josh se bak bak kiye ja rahi thi, didi
ko chup karne ka bas ek hi upay tha. Maine apne hoth didi ke
hotho se mila diye. Abhi tak maine didi ke hoth nahi chuse the,
didi ki hotho me jaise sahad si mithas thi, jo mujhe aur bhi
madhosh karne laga. Maine didi ki jangho ko pakda aur failaya.
Didi ne bhi apne pair uthaye aur mere kamar par daal kar mujhe
bandh diya, ab main bina jhade didi ke upar se nahi hatt sakta
tha. Main bhi ab jor jor se dhakke lagane laga. 10 minute tak aise
hi chudai chalti rahi, pura kamara faaaaacccch facaaaccch
chhhaaaaap chhaaaaap ki awaz se gunj raha tha. Didi gug gu kiye
ja rahi thi, sayad kuch bolna chah rahi thi aur maine uske lips
apne hotho se lock kar rakhe the. Maine jaise hi uske hotho
chhode wo fir se bak bakana suru kar di.
Didi-“Aah ahahah mummy gayi , marr gayi aamaa.... bhai aur jor
se chod apni didi ki gand, faad daal pura,...”
Me-“Didi gand nahi boor chod raha hu apka”
dono haaf rahe the, pura badan pasine se tar batar ho raha tha,
mano do ghante se daud rahe ho,
Me –“Pura badan pasine se lathpath lathpath....... agnipath
agnipath.”
Didi –“aah bahanchhod, apni didi ki boor chodte hue bhi filmi
baate bhai. jaldi jhad de na apna paani mere boor me, main to 2
bar jhad chuki hu.”
Me –“Didi tum idhar udhar ki baatein mat karo, maza kharab mat karo,”
Didi ki boor paani se bhar chuki thi, aur didi do bar jhad bhi chuki
thi, isliye thnadi si padi niche chudwa rahi thi, lekin mere land ka
sagar bhi sthir tha, pata nahi itni chodupower mere andar kaha se
aa gayi thi. 2 minute muth marte hi land jhad jata hai, lekin abhi
20 minute se jordaar chudai chal rahi hai fir se paani nahi nikli hai.
Didi –“Bhai mera paani jhad chuka hai, agar tu chahe to mere
pichwade me land daal sakta hai.”
Me –“Didi ek hi din boor aur gand dono chudwa logi, gajab randi
jaisa kar rahi ho.”
Didi – “Ha mere raja bhaiya, main hu randi, randi ban ne ke liye hi
to tujhse chud rahi ho, randi bana ke chod apni didi ko.”
Me – “Kya randi, land chusne ko diya to mana kar di, bhar walo se
chudne ko taiyar nahi to randi kaise banogi didi?????”
Didi – “Main randi banungi, tu jaisa bolega waisa hi karungi.”
Main didi ki boor se land bahar khich liya, aur khada ho gaya
bistar ke kinare.
Me-“Didi, mujhe tumko pichhe se chodna hai doggy pose me.”
Didi – “hai mere bhaiya raja pahle hi din apni didi ko har pose me
chodna chahta hai, to chod na bhai jaise chodna hai waise choodo
maine kab roka hai, ab to main tumhari randi hu, randi bana ke
chodo apni didi ki gand.”
Didi turant uth ke bisper par doggy pose me jhuk gayi. Aur apni
gand hila hila kar mujhe nimantran dene lagi.
Didi - “Boor me daaloge ya gand maroge bhai??????”
Me – “Nahi, boor hi chodunga , thoda gand to uthao.”
Didi apni gand ko aur hawa me utha deti hai, Didi ki gand mast lag
rahi thi piche se, bas pantyhose se boor hi bahar tha, jo ki thoda
sa fata hua tha boor ke pas, sayad bhaiya ne bhabhi ko chodte
waqt wo faad di hogi. Didi ki gand 34 ki thi, lekin chudwane ke
baad 36 ki lag rahi hai. Didi ki 28” ki patli surahidar kamar ke
karan piche se sirf didi ki gand hi dikh rahi thi..
Main aage badha aur didi ke pichhe aa gaya, Didi ki badi badi
chuttro par hath ferte hue didi ki boor par land bhida diya. Didi
ki gand ka ched fail sikud raha tha, jo iss baat ka ishara tha ki
didi gand marwana chahti thi. Lekin maine Saurav ko pahle didi ki
gand deni thi. Isliye main didi ki gand nahi mar raha tha, aur
badle me Saurav ki maa ki gand jo milne wali thi, warna Didi ki
pyari gand bhala kaun chhodta, maine didi ki kamar ko pakda aur
dhire se dhakka lagya, land chalak kar side me chala gaya, maine
didi ko apne gand dono haatho se failane ko kaha, didi ne dono
haatho se apne chuttaro ko failaya, aur maine apne land ko didi ki
chut ke muhane par rakha, aur didi ki kamar ko jor se pakadte
hue ek jor ka jhatka diya, mera supada didi ki boor me ghap ki
awaz ke saath ghus gaya, didi age sarak gayi.
Me – “Kya hua, dard hua kya, ab to thoda khul chuka hai, ab pahli
baar jaisa dard nahi hoga.”
Didi – “Nahi hua dard, par tu aram se nahi daal sakta, aise chod
raha hai , jaise main koi randi hu.”
Me –“Tumne hi to kaha ki tum meri randi ho!!!!!! To rand ab kyu
mana kar rahi hai”
Maine didi ki gand par dhire se ek chata lagaya. Didi ki gand lal
ho gayi. Maine dhire dhire kamar chalana suru kiya, didi fir se
puri tarah garam ho gayi thi. Maine bhi ghapa ghap didi ko chodna
suru kar diya tha. Main ankhe band kiye soche ka rahe the ki main
bhabhi ko chod raha hoon, bhaiya bhi bhabhi ko doggy pose me
chod rahe the jab maine dekha tha. ye soch kar mujhe aur maza
aane laga, maine chodne ki gati aur badha di, Pooja didi bhi apni
gand aage pichhe karne lagi.
Didi – “Bipin, maza aa raha hai apni didi ko chodne me???”
Me – “ha didi, bahut pyari randi didi ho tum meri, ab main roz
tumhe aise hi choda karunga”
Maine speed aur badha di, “Aaah didi mera muth nikalne wala hai,
kaha daal du, tere gore gand par ya andar hi ddaal doon.”
Didi – “Bahar mat nikalna, andar hi daal de apna sara paani,
bahar nikala to bhabhi ke is favorite pantyhose me muth lag
jayega, aur bhabhi ko pata chal jayega.”
Me – “Didi, sach me tum ek bahut acchi randi banogi, main tumhe
randi bana kar rahunga.”
Didi – “Ha bhai, tu kahe to kisi se chudne ko taiyar hu, bas tu
mujhe aise hi thokte rahna.”
Main didi ke upar chad gaya, aur jor jor se kutte ke jaise didi ko
chodne laga, har jhatke ke sath didi ki gori gori gand mere
jangho par chat chat awaz karte jate the, maine didi ki latakti
choochiyon ko pakda aur dabate hue picche se chodne laga. ye
pose mera sabse pasandida pose tha, mere maan me bhabhi ki
chudai ki chhavi ubharti gayi, to main santusti ki aur bhdhta gaya,
didi ko bhi maza aa raha tha, ab didi fir se bakbak karne lagi.
Didi – “Aaah mere bahanchod bhaiya raja, chodo chodo............
faad dalo apni didi ki boor. Chatni bana do apni didi ke boor ka.”
Main bhi ab jhadne wala tha, maine didi ki kamar ko jor se pakda
aur didi ki boor apne muth se bhar diya. Tabhi didi ki boor me bhi
paani chod diya. Mere aur didi ka mila paani chipchipa sa bah kar
bahar aa raha tha. Mere land sikudta gaya aur main didi se upar
nidaal ho kar gir pada. Didi bhi paani chhod kar thak gayi thi.
Main didi ke upar se hata aur didi ki boor ko tauliye se poch diya.
Didi lete lete mere chhati par hath chala rahi thi. Main bhi didi ki
pith par hath fer raha tha. Dono kaafi thak chuke the.
Didi 3 baar pani chhod kar puri tarah se santust thi, wo kuch bhi
bolna nahi chah rahi thi, kyuki Didi ko pata tha ki, ab jab bhi
khaali waqt milega wo apne chhote bhai se jee bhar kar chudwa
sakti hai. Naa use bahar kisi aur ko khojne ki jarurat thi, naa kisi
se land ke liye setting karne ki jarurat thi. Ab use permanent
land mil chuka tha, jisse chud kar uske boor ka size bhi control me
rahega. Bipin bhi aankhe band kiye apni didi ko sahlate hue leta
hua tha. Dono bhai- bahan ek dusre ko sahlate hue nind ki aagosh
me sma chale.
Tabhi achanak Bipin ka mobile ghanghana uthta hai, Bipin
hadbada kar uth jata hai aur apne mobile ke screen ko dekhta hai,
ye call hamare kahani ke lead hero Saurav ka tha. Bipin towel
lapet kar balcony me aa jata hai. Didi uth kar bathroom me chali
jati hai. Bipin aur Saurav phone par kuch khus phush khush phush
batein karte hai. Wo kya baatein kar rahe the ye to baad me hi
pata chalega.....
Update 7
Ab yaha se kahani hamare real hero Saurav ki jubani chalegi.
Readers ne Bipin aur Pooja didi ki chudai ko khub saraha . Uske
liye sare readers ko dhanyawad. To kahani ab kya rukh legi. Aap
logo ko to sab pata hai. Dekhte hai kya hota hai. To kahani chali
aage ---------->>>>>>>>>>>>
Bipin aur main ‘Saurav’ phone par baat karke sone ko chale gaye
the. Raat ke 12 baj chuke the.. Pooja didi ki chudai me Bipin ko
pata hi nahi chala ki kitna waqt par ho gaya tha, Pooja didi
bathroom se fresh hokar abhar aayi aur bistar par let gayi.
Shayad thak jane ke karan use nind aane lagi thi. Bipin bhi didi ke
sath jakar so gaya. Agle din subah subah main “Saurav” Bipin ke
ghar ki orr chal pada. Main khud ko rok nahi pa raha tha. Kyuki
Bipin aur pooja didi ki chudai ki vistrit jaankari mujhe Bipin se
prapt karna tha, aur Pooja didi ki gand kab milegi, ye bhi pata
karna tha. To main lambe kadmo se Bipin ke ghar ki orr chal pada.
Maine uske ghar ke niche pahuch kar awaz lagayi –“Bipin, Bipin.”
Upar se kisi ne koi reply nahi diya. Landu to pooja didi ki god me
ghus kar so raha tha. Bipin ki maa ne balcony me nikal kar kaha,
abhi utha nahi hai. Late hoga abhi use, tum upar aa jao. Uthao
usko, aj kal bahut der tak sota hai. Main jhat se upar chad gaya
aur uske kamre ki taraf badha, main uske kamre me daakhil hua
to waha koi tha hi nahi. Main samjh gaya ki dono bhai-bahan aj ek
sath so rahe honge, main Landu ke room se Pooja didi ki room me
jhanka. Dekha dono ek dusre se chipke sp rahe the. Ab to mujhe
zyat ho chuka tha ki kal sach much me Landu ne Apni Pooja Didi
ka seal bhang kar daala hai. Main bistar ke karib gaya aur Landu
ke gand par ek laaat mara.
Me – “ Abe landu uth, didi bhi aardhnang kapdo me so rahi thi.”
Bipin – “Abe tu, itni subah subah kaise aa gaya be, sone de yaar
thoda aur.”
Me – “Abe gadhe, kal raat ki saari story sun ni hai tujhse full
detail me, phone par to bataya nahi. Aur phone par maza bhi nahi
aata. To chal jald uth brush kar, nasta kar aur bata apni didi ki
chudai ki puri kahani.”
Pooja kacche nind me hum dono ki sari baate sun rahi thi. Wo bhi
samjh chuki thi ki Landu ne mujhe uski kile par Bipin ki suchna de
di hai. Didi bhi uth kar baith jati hai.
Me – “Kya Pooja didi, kal to aapne bade sher mare hai. Aj bhigi
billi kyu ban rahi ho. Mujhe sab pata hai.”
Pooja didi ne mujhe paas bulaya. Main didi ke nazdeek gaya aur
bistar par baith gaya, aur dono baate karne lage.
Didi -“Landu, tu ja pahle brush kar le, potty karke fresh ho ja,
fir saath me nasta karenge.” Didi mere orr dekhkar boli – “Kyu
tune bhi to nasta nahi kiya hoga itni subah subah.”
Me – “Kya didi, aapki chudai ki baat sun kar saala sari raat nind
nahi aayi,aur subah hote hi dauda chala aaya. Kaise laga aapko
apne sage bhai ka land???”
Didi –“Batati hoon, sab batati hoon, pahle ye bata ki tune kal
bathroom me mere kaun kaun se ang dekhe. Meri boor thik se
nazar aayi thi ya bas bahri bhagosth par hi muth marr diye mere
naam ki.”
Mujhe yakin ki nahi ho raha tha ki Bipin ki Hitler Didi itni pyar se
mujhse bina dante, bina sarmaye, sexy sexy baate kar rahi thi.
Pahle bhi main didi ko chheda karta tha, ppar wo hamesa tamtama
kar jawab deti thi. Main iss baat par hairan tha ki didi ko kaise
pata chala ki main bathroom em jhank raha tha.
Me – “Didi, pahle tum ye batao ki tumhe kaise pata ki bathroom
me main jhank raha tha, aur apne ye baat landu se kahi hai ki nahi.”
Bipin – “Kya yar tum log hamesa mujhe Landu landu bolte rahte
ho, Bipin bola karo, humkoaccha nahi lagta hai”
Didi –“Accha mere landu bhai”
Bipin -“Didi aap bhi suru ho agyi ab”
Didi – “Pahle to tere land ko koi bhaw nahi deta tha, islliye tu
landu tha. Lekin, ab apni didi ki boor faad kar tu bahanchod landu
ban gaya hai. Aur sun, mujhe pata hai ki kal bathroom me tu nahi,
tera ye kamina dost jhak raha tha.”
Bipin – “Wo kaise pata chala tumko didi. Main to soch raha tha ki
bach gaya ye.”
Didi – “Are baat ye hai ki jaise hi main bathroom se bahar aayi
dekhne ke liye ki kaun hai, to mujhe Saurav ke perfume ki smell
aayi, aur main samjh gayi.”
Me –“Kya didi, apko meri perfume ki smell bhi pata hai.”
Didi – “ladkiyon ki naak bahut tezz hoti hai darling, tu blue wali
‘Engage’ lagata hai na”
Me – “ha didi, aapki naak to sach me bahut powerful hai.”
Didi – “Sirf naak nahi, sab kuch powerful hai, biswas nahi hota to
puchh lo apne dost se, kal raat powerful chudai ki kahani.”
Me – “Didi ap pahle bhi chudi hai kabhi ya kal pahli baar apne bhai
ke land se chudi”
Didi –“Dekho land to hazaro mil jayenge bahar, bas der tange khol
kar boor pasarne ki hai. Lekin agar pratham chudai chotte bhai se
ho to baaat hi nirali hoti hai. Aise mujhe kisi bahar wale se
chudwana hi nahi hai. Mere 2-2 bhai kafi hai uske liye, aur Papa
bhi mere gand par nazar rakhte hai, ye mujhe aache se pata hai.
Jarurat padne par bas papa ke land par hath chalane ke jarurat
hai, mujhe bina chode wo nahi rah payenge.”
Me –“Apke Papa ki nazar aapke gand par hi hai appko kaise pata,
ho sake apke papa aapki boor chodna chahte ho.”
Didi – “Are nahi, Papa ek number ke gand khor hai, sirf gand
chodte hai maa ki, kabhi tune meri maa ki gand dekhi hai, maar
maar ke kaise faila di hai papa ne. Ek raat jab maa aur papa
chudai kar rahe to maine jhanka kar sara scene dekhe tha. Papa
gand chod rahe the maa ki aur bol rahe the – “aaah pooja beti, lo
apne gand me apne papa ka land. aj apni beti ka gand marne me
bahut maza aa raha hai. Aah pooja lo lo lo lo lo lo. Aur, papa ne
maa ki gand me hi apna sara maal chuaa diya.”
Aur, ye bol kar pooja didi jor jor se hasne lagi. Ab Pooja didi puri
tarah se mujhse khul gayi thi. Lekin, wo mujhse chudna nahi
chahti thi, ye baat to saaf pata chal raha tha, kyuki Bipin ne
mujhse sari baat bata di thi. Isliye wo bhi ab koi parda nahi
rakhna chahti thi, main bhi didi ke gand ka parda uthne ka
intezar kar raha tha.
Me – “Didi, kal raat to apki boor ka bhosda ban gaya hoga, dikhao
to kitni fati hai. Ab aap bhi kali se phool ban gayi hai. Ab aap kisi
bhi bhawre ko apne phool par baitha sakti hai.”
Didi – “Jyada nahi fati hai, bad thoda sa meetha meetha dard ho
raha hai. ha baat to sahi hai ki meri boor ab kahi bhi land ka
intezam kar sakti hai, lekin main kisi aur se chudna nahi chahti.
Ye kya baat hui ki main bahar kahi aur chudne jau aur mere
gharwale hi mera maza na le paye. Unka khayal main to kaun
rakhega. Aise bhi papa ke liye maa hai, jab dil karta hai, maa ko
chod lete hai. Bhaiya ke liye bhabhi hai, aur bhabhi to kitni garam
hai tumhe pata hi hai. Yaad hai na kaise tera land pakad li thi.”
Me –“Are ha didi, us din to lag raha tha ki kuch jyada ki garam ho
gayi thi. Agar thik samay par bhaiya nahi aate to mera balatkar
pakaka tha.”
Didi –“Sabke pas randi jaisi biwiya thi, lekin mera chhota bhai
mujhe bathroom me dekh dekh kar sirf muth marta tha. Isliye
maine socha ki suruat Bipin se hi karti hoon.”
Me – “Didi, jara apna bhosda to dikhao, kitna fata hai kal raat.
Kitni suzi hui hai dekhna hoga.”
Didi – “Aur tange faila kar dekh lo na.”
Main didi ko bistar par lita kar didi ki tango ko failane laga. Boor
ab bahar jhankne laga tha. Lekin, mujhe didi ki fate boor se nahi,
unki sundar mansal lazeez gand se pyar tha. Didi ki tange faila
kar maine didi ki boor ka haal dekha. Boor kuch jyada nahi fati
thi, bas thodi se ful gayi thi, maine didi ki pankhudiyo par ungliya
chalayi, Didi sisiya uthi.
Me – “Kya hua didi, dard ho raha hai kya.”
Didi – “Nahi jyada dard nahi hai, main to abhi bhi land le sakti
hoon. Dard aur maza dono aa raha hai.”
Me – “Didi, apki boor ka buraa haal hai, Aj bas kijiye, abhi aur
land mat khaiyega 2 din, aap bole to main aapke boor ki maalis kar du.”
Didi –“Haa, ye cream to yahi pada hai, kar de.”
Main didi ke hath se moisturizer ki bottle li, aur didi ki boor ko
moisturize karne laga. Ab didi bhi khul kar mera sath de rahi
thi. Dher sara cream apne hatheli par lekar maine didi ki boor par
lagana suru kiya, boor land khakar puri sukh si gayi thi, sujan saaf
pata chal raha tha, maalis se didi ki boor ko thandhak milne lagi.
Main dhire dhire maalis karta raha. Tabhi Bipin hath me nasta ki
thalli lekar room me andar aata hai.
Bipin – “Are tum to mere didi ke sewa me jutt gaye, karo beta
sewa mewa bhi milega.”
Me – “Bahanchod chodega tu aur maalis karunga main.”
Bipin –“Abe gaali mat de yar, accha nahi lagta hai. Chal ab nasta
kar le sab.”
Didi –“Kyu, kyu na bole tujhe bahanchod, meri teri bahan hu aur
tune apni bahan ko ragad ragad kar choda hai saari rat. Tu to ab
certified Bahanchod hai. Bahanchod ka certificate sirf bahan hi
de sakti hai. main tujhe ye degree deti hu, Ab tu sirf Bipin bhi
nahi, Bahanchod Bipin urf ‘Landu’ ke naam se famous hoga, aur
didi haas padi.”
Boor ki maalis se didi garam hone lagi, boor se badhte tapmann ko
main apne hatho par feel karne laga, didi ki aankho me lal lal dore
tairne lage, main didi ki iccha samjh raha tha, fir maine Bipin se
kaha ki tum kal raat ki kahani sunate ja aur nasta bhi karta ja,
main aur didi thode der baad nasta karte hai. Bipin wahi chair par
baith gaya aur nasta karte hue, kal raat biti chudaai ka varnan
karta gaya. jise sun kar main me garam hota gaya, aur main didi
ke boor ko pakad ab masalne laga. Didi garam ho gayi. Jab bipin
ne bataya ki didi ne bhabhi ki inner pantyhose pahni thi to main
bhi Pooja didi ko us roop me sochne laga. Main soch raha tha ki
Pooja didi ka gora jism full length white pantyhose me kitna
sundar lagega. Maine didi se kaha –“Didi, ap mujhe bhi wo dress
pahan kar dikahye na, ap sach me bahut acchi lagengi usme. Main
bhi apko us dress me dekhna chahta hoon. Didi uthi aur hum dono
ke samne ki puri nangi ho gayi, aur wo white pantyhose almira se
nikal kar pahanne lage. Utarte hue to maine dekha tha BFs me
pahan te hue aj pahli bar dekh raha tha. Ye scene utarne ke
scene se bhi accha tha. Didi se wo ehite inner pahna aur mere aur
badhi. Didi mere nazdeek aakar palat gayi aur apna gand matkane
lagi, didi ki matakti gand gand dekh kar mera land tan gaya,
Land me khoon lava ki tarah bahne laga. Didi ki nazre mere tanak
te land par gayi, didi ne muskurate hue apni nazre meri land aur
mere chahre par upar niche ki, main didi ki iss harkat se aur bhi
romanchit ho utha aur pant ke upar se hi apne land ko masalne laga.
Didi –“Kya baat hai bardast nahi ho raha hai.”
Bipin –“Tum aise randi jaisa nachogi gand hila hila kar to kisi ka
bhi land khada ho jayega.”
Me –“Didi, ek baar mujhe bhi apna boor chaka do na. Apki boor
bahut chikni hai, chodne ka man kar raha hai dekh dekh kar.”
Didi meri taraf aai aur mere pant ka zip khol diya, aur land ko
mutthi me bhar kar bahar nikal diya, land to mera pahle se hi
tanka hua tha, bas didi ke bhosde me dalna tha. Aise didi ke boor
abhi bhosda nahi hui thi, lekin jald hi ho jayegi, kyuki ab Bipin aur
main didi ko din raat chodne wale jo the. Didi ki gori gori chuttaro
ko dekh kar main aur hosh kho raha tha. Didi palat kar mere land
ko apne gand ke darar me rakh kar ragadne lagi. Main bister ke
kinare baitha tha, aur didi mere god me baithi apni gand ke darar
me mere land ke ghasse maar rahi thi. Maine Pooja didi ke fule
fule pawroti jaise dono chuttaro ko hatho se pakda, aur slowly
dabane laga, didi ki mulayam makhmali chuttar bahut thi naram
thi, main jaise kisi rui (cotton) ke kisi gole ko daba raha tha, didi
ki gand bilkul rui ke jaisi hi gori thi....
Maine didi ke balo ko pakad kar mutthi me bhara aur khichte hue
didi ke pith ko sahlana suru kiya, dhire dhire main upar ki aur
badh raha tha, filmo me dekha tha ki chudai upar se niche ki orr
badhti hai, main niche se upar ki aur badh raha tha, didi ab bhi
mere land par apni gand ragad rahi thi, aur ragad bhi itni joe ki
thi ki jaise ghis ghis kar mere paani nikal degi. Maine apna daaya
haath didi ki daayi chuchhi par rakh diya aur sahlane laga, didi ke
nipples khade ho gaye the, maine didi ke chuchhi ke har bhag ko
sahlana suru kiya, gol gol ghuma ghuma kar didi ki chucchiyon ko
masalna suru kiya, didi ko bhi maza aane laga.
Didi –“Mast daba rahe ho Saurav, aise hi sahlate jao, dono hatho
se dabao,”
Maine ab didi ke dono choochhiyon ko hatho me bhar liya tha, aur
bade pyar se ragad raha tha, dono choochhiyan hath me aate hi
didi ki masti doguni badh gayi. Unki siskariya badhti hi ja rahi thi.
Me – “Didi, maza aa raha hai na.”
Didi – “Shut up, bas aise hi dabate jao, bahut maza aa raha hai.”
Didi aankhe band kiye alag hi duniya me ud rahi thi, aur Pooja
Didi ka bhai Bipin achambhit mudra me ye pose dekh raha tha.
Didi puri tarah se bhool chuki thi ki unka saga bhai bagal me
baithe ye sab dekh raha hai. Wo to vasna me unmmat hokar is khel
ka bharpur anand le rahi thi. Jab didi ke kamagni ne ek jor ka
ufaan liya to, didi ke apne haath mere ghutno par rakhte hue
apne gand ko uthaya, aur mere land me upar apni boor me muh ko
set kar diya. Pas baithe Bipin ko ye samjhte der na laga ki hame
kisi paanchwe haath ki jarurat thi, kyuki mere dono hath didi ki
choochhiya masalne ke vayast the, maine usne apne haath hatana
chahta hi nahi tha, didi ke bhi dono haath balance banaye hue the,
Bipin aage badha aur mere land ko pakad kar khada kar diya,
didi ne mere land ke upar apne boor ka muh rakha aur hach hacha
kar baith gayi, mera land 7”lamba aur 3.5” mota tha, lekin raat ko
chudne ke baad didi ko aadat ho chuki thi, aur didi ki kamagni
itni prajwalit ho chuki thi, is samay didi ko kisi dard ka ahsash na
tha, wo to bas apne boor me rengti chitiyo ko masalna chahti thi,
achanak is chot se mere land ka taanka bhi tut gaya, main dard
se chilla utha, aaahh aaaaahhh.
Pooja didi on me
Didi – “Dhire baitho didi, mujhe dard ho raha hai. Didi dar gayi ki
kahe mere land me moch to nahi aa gayi.”
Didi uthi aur mere land ko hath me lekar dekha. Mere land ka
taanka tut chuka tha, ab main bhi virgin na tha, didi ne mujhe
thappad mara aur bola –“ ab tu bhi chud gaya Saurav”
Aur didi piche palat kar wapas usi pose me land par baith gayi, is
bar didi ne 2-3 baar apna gand up down kiya aur mera 5”land
andar le liya, Mera land Bipin ke land se mota hai, isliye bahut
kasa hua andar sa raha tha.
Didi – “Kal bhai ne meri seal todi thi, aur maine uske dost ki seal
khol di.”
Main ascharya se didi ki orr dekh rha tha ki itni kadak mizaz
Pooja didi achanak ek chinal randi me kaise badal gayi. Didi mere
land par ucchal ucchaal kar chudwane lagi aur Bipin hamare
chudai ko dekh kar garam hota gaya ........
Update 8
Bipin ne bhi apna land bahar nikal liya tha, wo apni didi ko chudte
hue dekh kar muth marne laga. Bipin Pooja didi ke samne khada
hota hai aakar, aur didi ko land chusne ka ishara karta hai, didi
land chusne se mana kar deti hai. Aur Bipin ka land hath me lekar
hilane lagti hai. Ab waqt aa gaya tha ki didi ko dono taraf se ek
sath bajaya jaye.
Bipin – “Didi ab gand marwane ko taiyar ko kya, bolo to dono sath
me chodte hai dono taraf se ek sath.”
Didi – “nahi yaar, bacchi ka jaan loge kya. Main do do land ek sath
nahi le sakti.”
Me – “Gajab kar rahe ho yar, kal se chudna suru hi ki hai, aj
double penetration lene bol rahe ho.”
Maine didi ko uthaya aur bistar par doggy pose me jhuka diya,
aur piche se didi ki boor me land ghused diya, didi pahle se hi
garam thi, ab dhakke lagane ka kaam mera tha, maine dhire dhire
dhakke lagana suru kiya,
Fucking Pooja Didi in Doggy Pose
Didi – “Tez pelo ab, jaldi se gira do mere boor me, ab main bahut
thak chuki hoon.”
Main ghapa ghap tez tezz kamar chalane laga, didi bhi gand hawa
me uchhalne lagi, main didi ke boor me pele ja raha tha aur didi
Bipin ka land hilaye ja rahi thi. 7 minute tak main aise hi pelte
raha , fir maine aur Bipin ne position change kar li, ab Bipin
pichhe se didi ki baja raha tha, aur didi mera land hila rahi thi.
Maine didi ki gardan ko pakda aur apna land didi ki hoth par sata
diya. Didi ne sar ghuma liya.
Didi – “Kya kar rahe ho!!! Bola na main land nahi chusungi. Jab
main ready ho jaungi to chusungi khud-ba-khud.”
Me –“Didi, aur kitna ready hogi, already puri tarah pakki rand
ban chuki ho, bas ek hafte baad tum manjhi hui randi ban jaogi.
Land bhi chusna sikh hi lo ab.”
Didi –“Maine kaha na main nahi chusungi.”
Me –“Didi chusogi nahi to ek number ki randi kaise banogi. Apko
randi banna hai ki nahi.”
Didi –“Ha ban na to hai, lekin uske liye chusna jaruri hai kya?”
Me – “Didi puri chinal randi ban ne ke liye apko bahut mehnat
karni padegi, aise to ap hai hi randi. lekin apko baazarupan
badhana hoga, kahi bhi kisi se bhi chudne ke liye apko taiyar hona
hoga. Jaise jaise apki chudai hoti jayegi apka randipan badhta
jayega. To chusiye aur khud ko randi savit kijiye.”
Main didi ne niche tange ghusa kar let jata hu, Bipin picche se
didi ki boor thokta jata hai aur, didi mere land ko muh me lena
suru karti hai.
Didi -“Bahut mota hai tumhara land Saurav, Muh me ghusta hi
nahi hai. Kaise chusungi itna mota land. Khira bhi isse patla hota
hai. Ye to lauki jaisa mota hai.”
Me –“Didi jab aapne boor me le liya hai to muh me bhi lena sikh lo,
chalo apka muh kholo main dhire dhire daalta hoon”
Didi ne apna muh khola, aur main niche se kamar uchhalne laga,
mera land didi ke muh me ghus gaya tha. Maine didi ke sar ko jor
se pakda aur ghapa ghap 4-5 shot maar diye didi ke muh me.
Mera land didi ke gardan tak pahuch gaya tha, didi gooo gogogo
kar rahi thi, didi ko saans lene main takleef ho rahi thi, didi ne
khud ko upar hatakar apne muh se mera land nikalna chaha, lekin
maine jor se didi ka sar pakad rakha tha, didi ki mano saans hi
atak gayi thi, maine jaldi se 2 aur shot mare aur aur apna land
bahar nikal liya.
Didi mujhe chat chat marne lagi. Aur gaaliya dene lagi.
Didi –“bahanchod, itna jor se kyu pela mere muh me, pura kanth
tak pahucha diya, thu thu, harami ab tera land kabhi muh me nahi lungi.”
Maine didi ke chehre par hath firate hue pyar kiya aur didi ko
sambhalne ki kosis ki.
Me –“Didi ap hi bol rahi thi ki muh me ghus nahi raha hai to maine
ek bar jor se thel kar rasta bana diya, ab ap aram se mera land
pura kha sakti hai gardan tak. Didi, jaise boor aur gand ki chudai
hoti hai waise muh ki bhi chudai hoti hai. Apne to dekha hi hoga
filmo ki hero kaise randiyon ki muh me chodta hai dhana dhan.”
Didi – “are movie me to kuch bhi dikhate hai, to sach thode na
hota hai.”
Me –“Didi par land to chusna originally me bhi hota hai, itna bhi
false to nahi hi hota hai, Aap dridhnischay karke chusna to suru
karo, ho sake suru me thoda namkeen lage, par aapko mere land
ka namkeen swad jarur pasand aayega, aur fir aap mere land ko
kabhi muh se nahi nikalogi.”
Didi –“Accha Saurav kosis kaarti hu, jab tum bol rahe ho to sikhna
hi hoga, mujhe randi ke sare daav-pech tum logo se hi to sikhna
hai. Kaun maar humko kahi bahar grahak khojne jana hai. Bas tum
dono khush to main bhi tript.”
Me –“Didi tript bol kar aapne tripti bhabhi ki yaad dila di, kya
gajab figure hai unki, ab to unka badan mere aankho ke samne
nachne laga didi.”
Didi –“To socho tum ki tripti bhabhi ko hi chusa rahe hai, aur main
puri shradhha se tumhare land ka swagat karti hoon apne mukh
dwaar par.”
Saare pathakgan vichlit na ho, “Tripti bhabhi mere chachere bhai
Rakesh bhaiya ki patni hai, Unka deedar bas tab hi hote hai, jab
main apne gaaon jata hoon chuttiyo par pure pariwar ke sath,
varna unke darshan matra ko bhi hriday lalchata rahta hai. Apitu
unke kaamuk badan ke deedaar ek varsh me 1 ya 2 baar hi ho
pata hai, parantu unke kaamdevi si gathilee badan ki chhavi
mastisk patal par iss prakar ban chuki hai ki unki kalpana matra
se Tripti bhabhi ki mukharbind ka aabash ho jata hai. Jab wo paani
bharne ke liye jalstrot ko jaati hai to unki Matatki Gand ka drisya
atyant chakshupriya hota hai. Apni aannkhe sekne ka ek bhi
mauka main gava nahi sakta tab. Safalta ki bas yahi kunji hai ki
aap nirantar apne mukaam ki aur agrasar rahe. Apki prayasrat
hone par hi apke aur apke manjil ki doori kam hoti hai.
Ab didi ye nischit kar chuki thi ki wo mere land ko chusne ka
yathashakti prayatn karegi. Iss vichar matra se mere land me
rudhir ka bahav tezz ho gaya. Mere andkosh upar ki orr chadd
gaye the. Mera jhurmur sa land ab kathorta ke charam par tha.
Maine apna “lauh-danda” (iron-rod) didi ke hath me pakda diya,
Didi ko mere land ka namkeen swad bahut pasand aaya tha isliye
wo aankhe band karke mere land ko chat ne lagi. aur muh me
daalne lagi.
Me –“Didi wah didi, bas ab chusti jao, jaise lollipop chusti ho. mast
chus rahi ho ap. aaaha ahahah aap to janamjaat randi hai didi.
Randi wale sare gun aapme pahle se hai bas chingari ko hawa dene
ki jarurat hai. Aah mast chusti ho ap didi. Aaah wow didi aise hi
chusti jao. Aaah madarchod didi, mast randi didi . Meri pyari
pyari randi didi.”
Didi ne apna muh se land nikala aur boli – “Bahanchod tu hai hi,
lekin mere muh me apna muth mat gira dena, Pinki bata rahi thi
ki uske bahiya ne jabardasti usko bandh ke chusaya tha ek bar
aur muh band karke apna sara muth pilaa diya tha. Ye to balatkar
hua na Saurav. Lekin mujhe pata hai ki tumlog mere se bahut
pyar karte ho aur meri sath kabhi jor jabardasti nahi karoge. Ha
kabhi kabhi tum shararati ho jate ho, jaise abhi mere muh me
tumne apna land ghuseda.”
Me –“Didi to iss baat se ab tum naraj to nahi ho na.”
Didi –“Nahi yar, main to bas aasahaz mahsus kar rahi thi isliye
gusse se do char baat bol di. Varna mujhe apne bhaiyo se koi
paresani nahi hai, mere bhai jo ab mere pati bhi ban chuke hai.”
Didi ke chahre par khushi ki muskan thi. Maine apna land didi ke
muh me fir se ghusa diya aur dhire dhire dhakka lagane laga,
main didi ka muh chodna chahta tha. Maine dhire dhire raftar
badhayi aur Didi ke muh me apna land dhakelne laga. Didi ke muh
me land pelne me bahut maza aa raha tha, lekin aadha land hi
muh me ghus raha tha. Maine didi ke BoyCut chhote chhote baal
pakde aur unko mukhchodan ka sukh dene laga. Ab mera land didi
ke kanth me pravesh kar chuka tha, maine didi ke muh ko boor
samjh kar chodna suru kar diya. Didi ki ghuti ghuti se awaz bahar
nikal rahi thi. Aur main chodne ki raftar badhata gaya. Udhar
picche se Bipin bhi didi ki gand sahlate hue chhapa chhapa chod
raha tha. Achanak mere man me ek gana gunj utha, aise iss gana
ka matlab bahut accha hai par chudai ke iss mehfil me accha-
bura kise yaad hai. Mere muh se khud-b-khud wo gana nikalne laga.
Me –“Chhap chhap Didi chude, OOOOO chhap chhap Pooja didi
chude....
Gol gol chuttare teri, raat bhar kash ke chude....
OOOO Raat bhar didi chude.... OO chhap chhap didi chude.”
Didi aankhe utha kar mere muh ki orr dekhne lagi. Main niche didi
ki aankho me aankhe daal kar didi ka mukh chodan kar raha tha.
Didi ke nazaro ne mano aisa jadoo kiya ki main manjil par pahuch
gaya, ab mera muth nikalne wala tha, main khud ko rok na paya
aur didi me muh me hi jhad gaya. Maine didi ke saar ko jor se
pakda aur didi ke muh me apna virya chod diya.
Mera land didi ke kanth me fasa hua tha, isliye kuch muth sidha
didi ke pet me chala gaya. Didi khasti hui ooo oooo karne lagi.
Maine paas pada towel didi ke muh par rakh diya. Didi ne sara
maal towel me thukna suru kar diya, lekin fir bhi kuch bunde didi
ke pet me chali gayi thi. Muth ka namkeen swad didi ko kuch
jyada pasand nahi aaya tha. Wo ajib sa muh banaye mere aur
gusse se dekh rahi thi. Udhar Bipin ne bhi jor se didi ka kamar
pakad kar didi ke boor me apna muth gira diya. Didi ki muh aur
boor dono muth se bhar gayi thi. Ab baki thi to bas didi ka
pichwade ki chudai. Jiska hona aj mumkin nahi log raha tha, kyuki
mere land par didi ke dant se kat gaya tha halka sa, aur jagah
jagah se chhil hi gaya tha didi ki tight boor chodne me, aur Bipin
didi ki gand pahle maar nahi sakta tha, kyuki Pooja Didi ki gand ki
pahli chudai ka haq mujhe tha, lekin Pooja didi abhi tak is baat se
anjaan thi ki hamare bich kya deal hui hai.
Didi –“Ye kya kya tumne, mere muh me hi muth daal diya, mana
kiya tha maine.”
Me –“Kyu didi accha laga kya mera muth apko, sorry didi. Apke
chusne ka style hi kuch itna maadak tha ki main rok hi nahi paya.
Gajabe chusti ho aap didi. Bas ek gand chudni rah gayi hai aapki,
Fir to aap randi ki rani ban jayengi. Mujhe fir ek gana sujha.”
Me Singing –“>>Nach nach ke main, nach nach ke main -- muth
girawa...............
>>Tere muh me main muth girawa.....
>>Oye bipin, tere DI ko main muth chakhhawa....
>> Ki teri Didi rand ban gayi... Number one rand ban
gayi!!!!!!!!!!!!!!”
Bipin –“Didi, aapne to khub maza liya, ab kisi tarah Bhabhi ko
mana lo na chudne ko, fir aur bhi maza aayega.”
Pooja Didi – “Kyu nahi bhai, pahle main bhaiya se chudungi, aur
fir bhabhi ko tere land ka maza dungi. Lekin uske liye dher sari
yojna banani padegi. Lekin bhaiya ka land lene ke liye mujhe aur
chudna hoga, taki meri boor aram se unka mota land le sake.”
Me – “Didi ap sirf Bipin ki hi setting karaogi, mera bhi to kuch
sochiye.”
Didi –“Dekh main kisi baharwale se chudna nahi chahti thi, lekin
gujarte ghatnao ne mujhe tumse jod hi diya, pahle tumne
bathroom me mujhe jhanka, fir Bipin ne meri chudai se pahle
tumhe phone kiya, aur aj subah subah tum yaha aa gaye, tumne
meri boor ki maalis bhi ki. Aakhir jab tum mere liye itna sochte ho
to mujhe bhi tumhara khayal karna tha. Islye maine tumse
chudwana uchit samjha. Fir bhi mujhe lagta hai ki kahin na kahin
koi aisi baat hai jo mujhe nahi pata. Koi aise baat jarur hai.”
Me –“Didi aise koi baat nahi hai, main to bas apki chikni boor par
fisal gaya tha. Apki gand bhi kuch kam nahi hai didi. Bahut iccha
ho rahi hai, apki gand marne ki.”
Didi ne mere land ki orr ishara karte hue kaha –“Abhi tumhare
laude ki halat kahrab hai, abhi mere gand ke chhote se ched me
daaloge, to puri chamdi se kat jayegi. Meri gand marne ke liye
bahut taiyari karni hogi tumhe. Aise bhi main pahle Bipin se gand
marwaungi, kyu Bipin.”
Bipin –“Didi ab jaldi se utho, nasta karo nahi to maa andar aa
jayegi, fir maa ka loda ho jayega, samjhi.”
Bipin ne apni chudasi chhinal didi ko dante hue kaha. Main samjh
gaya ki ab Bipin ke ghar me jo chudai ka khel hoga wo sirf Bipin
ke gharwale hi khelenge. Mujhe borow player ke taur par bhi
upyog nahi karenge. Lekin Pooja Didi mujhse aage bhi chudne ko
taiyar thi. Didi uth kar bathroom me ghus jati hai, aur main towel
se apne land ko saaf karke kapde pahan leta hoon. Bipin aast
vayast bistar ke chadar ko thik karta hai aur hum dono samne
balcony me lage chair par baith jate hai. Tabhi kamre me Bipin ki
maa ghusti hai. Unke haath me nasta ki do thaliya thi.
Bipin ki Maa –“Beta lo nasta kar lo, aur pooja kaha hai, tum log
kaafi der se andar ho, kya kar rahe the, jarur subah subah kuch
khel khelne lage hoge, tum log bhi na , sara din koi na koi khel
chalta hi rahta hai inka.”
Aur, Bipin ki maa wapas rasoi me chali gayi, mera dhayan to apne
dost ke maa ki gand par hi lagi hui thi. Kya mast chaudi gand thi
Bipin ki maa ki. Pakka, uske Pitaji ne khub
bajayi thi uski maa ki picchhe se, maar maar ke dukaan bana di
thi unki gand ko. Main bhi kuch samaan kharidna chahta tha uski
maa ki dukaan se. Par Pooja didi ke madad ke bina ye to sambhav
hi nahi tha. Sayad Bipin ki maa aur bhabhi mere liye kabhi incest
nahi ban payengi, hamesa mere fantasy hi rahengi..................
Pooja didi bhi ab nasta karne aa chuki thi, humne sath sath nasta
kiya aur Bipin ko Pooja didi ki gand na marne ki chetawani dekar
apne ghar ki aur chalne ko hua.
Didi –“Saurav, tum log kya baat kar rahe the, maine sab sun liya
hai, to tum pahle meri gand bajana chahte ho, aur mera bhai bhi
iske liye taiyar hai. Aur, badle me tum usko apni maa ki gand
doge. Lekin tumhari maa ki gand to chudi hui hai. Tumhare papa
ne hi hazzaro baar mari hogi unki pond. Fir teri mummy to acchi
khasi raand lagti hai, pata nahi kitno ka land gand se nigal chuki
hogi. Apni maa ki fati gand ke badle meri kori kori gand mang
rahe ho, ye sauda barabari ka nahi hai, Saurav. Main nahi mati iss
saude ke liye.”..
Update 8
Didi mujhse gand marane ke liye taiyar nahi thi, aur Bipin deal
pakki karne ki baat par ada tha. Ab kaise dilau Bipin ko apni maa
ki gand, bhale hi maa 1000 baar gand mara chuki ho, par uske
badle didi ki chikni kori gand to mil hi rahi thi, Maina jib pasopesh
me fasa tha, kaise maa se baat aage badhau, aur udhar kahi
Pooja Didi Bipin se gand na mara le, fir to chudi hui gand milegi
chodne ko, aur kabhi to kisi ki seal todne ka mauka mujhe bhi
milna chahiye, boor to Pooja didi ne Bipin se khulwa liya, kahi Didi
ki gand bhi mujhe nahi mili to, bahut dino tak koi unchudi maal
milna muskil hi hai. Aisa mauka bar bar to aane se raha. Kuch na
kuch upay to bhidana hi hoga. Main ise udhedbun me laga hua tha
ki achanak phone ki ghanti ghanghana uthi. Maine call receive
kiya –“Hello!!”
Caller -“Hello, main bol rahi hoon”
Me - “Main kaun, naam nahi bataiyega to kaise pata chalega.”
Caller –“Pahchano main kaun bol rahi ho, maine tumhare bahut pas
hoon.”
Me –“Pooja Didi”
Caller –“Ye Pooja didi kaun hai ab, tumhari didi ka naam to
Pammi hai na.”
Me –“Kaun ho bhai, mere bare sab kuch janta hai, namwa to bolo
pahle.”
Caller –“Main bol rahi hu Anjana.”
Me –“Kaun Anjana, main to kisi Anjana ko nahi janta, kahi aap didi
ki sahelo to nahi hai na. Didi ko phone du kya??”
Anjana –“are nahi, main aapke dost ki choti bahan hoon.”
Me –“Kaun dost, mujhe to yaad nahi aa raha.”
Anjana – “Aap Kaushik bhaiya ke to jante hi hai, kai baar aap
ghar bhi aa chuke hai.”
Me –“Are chotti tum, to itna der se anjana anjana kyu ratt rahi
thi, bolna tha na chotti bol rahi hoon.”
Anjana – “Ab main badi ho gayi hoon, mujhe mere acche naam se
boliye.”
Me –“Are babu, tu to mere liye wahi chotti hi rahegi na.”
Anjana mere dost Kaushik Das ki chotti bahan hai, wo kaushik se
bas ek varsh hi chotti hai, matlab ab 19 ki hogi karib. Lekin maine
use 3 saal se nahi mila hoon, aur na hi apne dost se mila hoon. Ab
wo bahar padhai karta hai, wo 2 saal se yaha aaya hi nahi to milta
kaise. Aur, bina dost ke uske ghar par nahi ja sakta, nahi to log
tarah tarah ki baatein banayenge.
Me –“Ye bata ki tujhe mera number kaha se mila. Aur achanak
aise kyu contact karna pada.”
Anjana –“Wo bhaiya aa raha hai 1 mahine baad yaha, to bola hai ki
aapko bata ke rakhne ko.”
Me – “Ye lo, wo khud call nahi kar sakta tha, tujhe kyu paresan kiya.”
Anjana –“Bhaiya ke pas aapka number nahi tha na, isliye maine
phone kiya.”
Me –“Kya??????? To tum usko mera number de deti. Accha
bahana bana rahi ho chotti.”
Anjana –“Aisa to maine socha hi nahi tha, Ye idea to mere dimag
me click hi nahi kiya.”
Me –“Wah re, ab mujhe mama banao tum. Pahle ye bol ki number
kaha se mila tujhe mera.”
Anjana –“Chhodiye na bas aise hi mil gaya aapke facebook se.”
Me –“Mera facebook account hai hi nahi to kaha se mil gaya, saaf
saaf bol na kisne diya, kisi dost ne hi diya hoga, lekin aise dost
kaun hai jo, mere aur kaushik ka common friend hai. Mujhe to
aisa kuch yaad nahi aa raha.”
Anjana –“Wo aapke dost Vicki ki bahan Annu ne diya. Mujhe to aur
bhi bahut kuch pata chala hai aapke bare me.”
Me –“Kya pata chala hai????” Main dar gaya ki kahi Pooja didi ki
baat ise to pata nahi chal gayi, lekin ye kaise ho sakta hai, itni
jaldi to Email bhi nahi pahuchta, ye to chippi hui baat hai.
Anjana –“Ab baniye mat, mujhe Annu ne sab bata diya hai.”
Me –“Are are , kya bata diya hai bhai. “
Anjana –“Yahi ki ap dono ke bich acchi khasi setting chal rahi hai.”
Me –“Kya?? Kya?? Wah bhai, itni mast setting ki mujhe hi pata
nahi hai. kya bol rahi hai tu, maine to usse 1 saal se baat tak nahi
ki hai. Aur ab Vicki se bhi kuch khash connection nahi hai.”
Anjana –“To fir usne mujhse aisa kyu kaha.”
Me –“Wo bas fek rahi thi tere samne, kuch mila nahi to ye sab
ding diya tere ko. Ruk milne de usko, bataunga acche se usko.”
Anjana –“Are aap kuch mat kijiyega, nahi to mere par bhadak
jayegi”
Me –“OK yar, lekin ab jyada dingne mat dena usko.”
Anjana –“Ok bhaiya, Bye.”
Me –“Bye”.
Main iss wakiye ko undekha karke apne dost Nilesh ke ghar chala
gaya. Waha gaya to kafi bhid bhad thi, maine Nilesh ko bahar
bulaya, aur bate karne laga.
Me –“Accha Nilesh, ye Vicki ki bahan ki kya kahani hai yar. Humko
kuch naya nya pata chala hai tere bare me.”
Maine tukka lagaya tha. Vicki mere se jyada Nilesh ke kareeb
tha, aur Nilesh ka Vicki ke ghar aana jana bhi jyada tha, aur
Nilesh ki nazre Annu par thi, ye mujhe pata tha. Isi karan Nilesh
din me kam se kam do baar Vicki ke ghar ke chakkar kaat hi leta
tha. Dar-asal usse Vicki nahi Annu ko dekhna hota tha, par Annu
ki taraf se kitna pyaar tha ye to mujhe pata nahi tha. Aur Nilesh
ki prem kahani kidhar kidhar mud rahi thi, iska mujhe kuch bhi
aabhas nahi tha. Sayad kuch khichdi pak rahi thi, Jiska asar Nilesh
ke chehre par saf saf dikha.
Tabhi ghar ke andar ke Nilesh ki mameri bahan Soni ne awaz
lagayi –“Kya bhaiya, andar nahi aayiyega?? Humko sab samjh me
aata hai. Aap bahar se hi mera samdal dekh ke jaan gaye the ki
hum dono bahan yaha aaye hai, aur aap to humlog se bhagte hi
chalte hai.”
Me –“Are nahi Soni, aisa hai kya???? Kab bhaaga main tumse.
Batao to.”
Soni –“Bhaage nahi hai, us din sham ko bole ki main boli ki mujhe
Maths bata dijiye, aur kuch tricks bhi bata dijiye. Lekin aap to
bhaw khane lage. Aur uss din ke baad ghar hi nahi aaye kabhi.”
Me –“are main kafi busy chal raha tha kuch dino se, isliye mauka
hi nahi mila tumhare ghar aana ka. Aise bhi tere ghar to masti
karne aate hai, tum fir kitabo me uljha rahi ho.”
Soni –“Bhaiya bata dijiye na thoda, bahut problem hota hai maths
me, aur Nilesh bhaiya bata diye hai ki aapka trick sab khatarnak
hota hai solve karne ka.”
Me –“Ha wo to hai, lekin abhi kuch jyada hi busy chal raha hoon.”
Soni –“Kaha busy chal rahe hai aap, koi mil gayi hai kya.”
Me –“Are nahi, bas ek kahani likh raha tha to samay hi nahi mila.”
Soni –“Kaun si kahani, mujhe bhi dijiye padhne ko, mujhe kahani
padhne ka bahut sauk hai.”
Main Nilesh ki orr dekh raha tha, Wo ishara kar raha tha baat ko
jaldi niptane ka.. Maine Soni se waada kar diya ki kal se rozz sham
ko uske ghar jaunga. Aur, baat ko chalta kiya. Moni ka nature
chupchap rahne wala hai, isliye usne kuch bola hi nahi. Bas sunti
rahi aur fir chali gayi.
Me –“Ha Nilesh, bata na, tera aur Annu ka kya chakkar chal raha hai.”
Nilesh –“Yar kya bolu ab, ajib ka kand ho gaya hai, samjhe me
nahi aa raha hai ki tumko bataye to bataye kaise.”
Me –“Are yar, aise hi best friend bolte ho ka naam ka, best friend
hai to kuch bhi bol sakte ho yaar. Sunenge chupchap, tum bolo to sahi.”
Nilesh –“Accha tum force kar rahe to bol dete hai, baat ye hai ki
mujhe Vicki ki bahan Annu acchi lagti hai.”
Maine uske pith par dhamakka marte hue bola. “Wah sher, sahi ja
rahe ho, bolte jao, hum sun rahe hai.”
Nilesh –“Soche the ki propose kar dete hai.Aur jab propose kiye
to chot ho gaya dil par.”
Me –“Abe humko to batana chahiye tha na yaar, Bina bole teer
maar diye tum to, Kya reply mila.”
Nilesh –“Bole to chot ho gaya bhai. Pura badka danda ghus gaya,
pura mood off”
Me –“Ha to boli kya wo to batao.”
Nilesh –“Bhai love letter diye the, letter me naam nahi likhe the,
to KLPD ho gaya.”
Me –“Matlab kya dhokha hua be, jawab nahi di kya.”
Nilesh –“Nahi yaar jawab di hai, lekin mere naam se nahi, tere
naam se.”
Me –“Hee, samjhe nahi, kya bol raha hai tu.”
Nilesh –“Haa yaar, usko laga ki wo love-letter tune bhejwaya hai
mere through, to usne reply tere hi naam par kar diya.”
Me –“To tune bataya kyu nahi mujhe yaar, ye to bada chot ho
gaya yaar. Wo letter dikha to.”
Nilesh –“Kya yaar, ab tu bhi chot dega. Wo to kar hi rahi hai, ab
tum dono ka chakkar chalega uar main postman banke rah jaunga.
Main to bol bhi nahi paaya ki love letter maine diya tha.”
Me –“Chal koi nahi dikre, hota hai hota hai. Pahle tu letter to de,
kya likha hai padhu zara, fir batate hai Annu ko. badi udd rahi hai na.”
Nilesh ne mujhe letter diya, maine khat khol kar padhna suru
kiya, khat se madamast khusboo aa rahi thi. Lagta hai kisi purane
itra ka istemaal kiya gaya hai. Main us khusboo me kho sa raha
tha, sayad ye sirf ‘itra’ ki khusboo nahi thi, Annu ka pyar bhi
bhara tha iss khar main. Dil to mera bhi jor se dhadakne laga, ki
kahi mujhe pyar na ho jaye Annu se. Maine jatke se wo letter
Nilesh ke haatho me fek diya.
Aur akbaka kar bola –“Are yar, nahi padhta mujhe koi letter
wetter. Kya tum bhi, kuch bhi bakwas karte ho yar. Tum dono ke
bich me main kaha se aaa gaya. Mujhe nahi sun na iss bare me
kuch, aur naa hi kuch solve karna hai.” Mere chehre par
hawaiiyaan udi hui thi, Nilesh ko ye samjhte der na laga ki kya
hua hai.
Nilesh –“Dost kaboo rakho khud par, samjh sakta hoon, itni
khubsoorat ladki agar khud pyar ka izhar kare to kambakht kaun
hosh me rah payega. Us par ye ‘itra’ ki ruhaani khusboo. Itna kafi
hai ek pyar ke pyaase dil ko madhosh karne ke liye. Saurav dekh
yar, wo tumhe kitna pyar karti hai ye to nahi pata, lekin main
Annu se bahut pyar karta hoon. Uske bina rah nahi sakta, isliye 4
din tak ye baat tujhe chah kar bhi bata nahi paaya.”
Itna kah kar Nilesh ke aankho me aansu bhar aaye, wo aur kuch
kah nahi paaya. Maine uske kande par hath rakha aur use dilasa
dilaya –“Honda we kake, Honda we. Isaaq gali vich lakho kaante
hondiya, kuch paira noo lahoo-luhaan kar ditte hai, aur kuch
lahoo-luhaan ho jaate hai. Mainu koi love sove nahi hai us kudii
naal, wo to tere hi hai mundiye. Apni to baabi lage si wo. Hor, baabi
maa samaan hondi hai kake. Je main bich me kado nii aawanga,
tee thara pyaar thare baho vich hongi.”
Nilesh mujhe ghur ghur kar dekhta rah gaya, Ye aascharya use
kis baat baat par ho rahi thi main samjah na saka. Achnak wo chup
ho gaya aur vismit hokar bola –“Abe tu, punjabi kabse bolne laga,
aur sikhi kab be tune. Gajab kar diya yar. Shock de dete ho bhai
tum to.”
Me –“Karna padta hai dost, tere liye to jaan bhi hazir hai Annu
kya chiz hai. Par waada kar ki tu use khush rakhega.”
Nilesh –“Yaar main tera ye karz kabhi nahi bhulunga. Kya insaan
hai yaaar tu, koi itni acchi maal ko hath se kaise jaane de sakta hai.”
Me –“Na beta na, haath se main agar jaane diya to tujhe kya
ghanta milega. Wo kisi aur ke jaal me fas jayegi. Yaa nahi to Vicki
chod dega usko. Bahanchod saala.”
Nilesh –“abe tu Annu ke bare main aisa mat bol yar.”
Me –“Are lale di jaan, main to check kar raha tha ki pyar bhi hai
thoda thoda, ya sirf jismani garmi nikalni hai tujhe.”
Nilesh –“Main sach much me Annu se pyar karta hoon, sach tere
jagah koi aur hota to kabhi nahi mana karta Annu ko. Mujhe pata
hai ye sab tune mere liye kiya hai.”
Me –“Koi nahi bande, jab waqt aayega to mang lenge kuch iske badle.”
Nilesh –“Jo bhi mangna ho mang lena dost, mana nahi karunga, bas
meri gand mat mang lena chutiye.”
Aur dono has pade. Ab Nilesh ka dil halka ho gaya tha, par mere
hath se ek komal kali nikal gayi thi na. Gand maraye dosti, tel
lene jaye ye maa ka lauda Nilesh. Mauka mile to iski maa-bahan
ko bhi naa chhodu main. Ye to mujhse meri khurak chhin raha hai.
Laude da puttar......
Update 9
Main ghar wapas aa gaya, tarah tarah ki uljhano ke bich ab main
thak chuka tha. Ye Annu ko mujhse pyar wyar kaha se ho gaya,
main to chut ka poojari hu, main en chakkaro me nahi pad sakta,
kuch bhi ho mujhe in pachdo se dur hi rahna hai bhai. Main Annu
ke pyar me padna nahi chahta tha, lekin bina pyar me pade Annu
ki boor bhi to mil nahi sakti thi. Aur idhar ye laudeshwar Nilesh
hai, Annu mang raha hai mujhse. Chutiye ko itna akal nahi hai ki
ladki usse chudna nahi chahti hai to isme main kya kar sakta hoon.
Ek Annu ke liye Soni Moni aur Nilesh ki Maa ko to nahi chhod sakta
na. Itna sacrifice to karna hi padta hai. 3 Chut ke badle ek chut
kurban, not a bad thought. Lekin................
Wo love letter ki khusboo mere dimag par ab bhi chha rahi thi,
buuuhhh buuuhhhh ye kya sochne laga main. Jaldi se koi intezam
karna hoga yar. Bahut kaam pending pade hai. Idhar maa ko
patana hai, udhar Renu Didi par hath maarna hai (iska zikr dusri
kahani me hoga Meri Pyari Padosan : Renu Didi), Pooja Didi ki
gand milegi ki nahi pata nahi, Annu ka intezam karna hoga, Soni ko
maths padhana hai, Anjana chulchula rahi hai usko bhi shant karne
ka mauka mil sakta hai. Bas bich me inke bhai bhaandi naa mare
to mere laude ke balle balle....
Subah ka samay hai. 8 baj rahe hai. Main apne bistar par lete lete
apne diary me chudai ki planning kar raha tha. Hath me sketch
pen liye apne plan ka raw sketch bana raha tha. Ki kis tarah cross
combination banega sare jodo ka, aur kaise sabko busy rakh kar
apna kaam nikal sakta hoon. Dimag me sirf ek baat chal rahi thi –
“Everything should be planned.” Lekin main ajnabi film ka akshay
kumar nahi hoon, jo jiti hui baazi apne chutiyapa ki wajah se haar
jaunga, jarur kareena ki gaddedar gand ne uske dimag par
patthar mar diye honge.
Khair main apne planning me kafi mashroof tha, ki tabhi mere
kamre me Pammi didi aati hai, main itna busy tha ki mujhe pata
hi nahi chalta hai. Pammi Didi mere bistar ke paas aakar check
kar rahi thi ki main kya bana raha hoon, mera dhyan Pammi Didi
par bilkul nahi gaya, Aur Pammi Didi ne wo sketch dekh liya, usse
sari planning ki jaankari ho gayi, ki main kya kya soch raha tha en
dino. Sketch me saaf saaf sabke naam likhe the, aur kaun kiski
kya marega ye bhi defined the, Pammi didi ne sketch ko dhyan se
dekha aur mujh par chillane lagi – “Ye kya sktech hai Saurav, ye
kya plan bana rahe ho, ye kya hai, Maa ki gand Bipin se marwane
ka sign hai ye, aur badle me Pooja ki gand milegi tumko. Aur,
Renu ki gand, unknown time ka kya matlab hua, ye Annu aur
Anjana kaun hai, Nilesh ki maa ka naam bhi likha hai. To tum yahi
sab plan kar rahe ho aj kal.”
Me –“Are didi, tum bina bole andar kyu aa gayi. Aur main kya kar
raha hoon, iski jasoosi karne ki kya jarurat thi”
Pammi Didi –“Main jasoosi nahi karti to tu to Maa ki gand Bipin se
marwa deta.”
Me –“Didi, badle me mujhe Pooja ki unchudi gand mil bhi to rahi hai.”
Pammi Didi –“aur ye Annu kaun hai, tu isko Nilesh ke liye reserve
kyu likha hai. Aur ye Anjana par question mark, fir Pinki kaun hai
again question mark.”
Didi ne dhyan se pure sketch ko dekha aur samajhne ki kosis ki,
fir mujh par jor si cheekha. “Kya hai ye, hai kya ye aakhir????”
Me –“Didi, ap to samjh hi chuki hai, Ye planning hai ki kaun kisse
chudegi aur kaise chudegi.”
Didi –“Lekin tune aadha sketch hi banaya hai kya? Pura kar isko,
fir main dekhti hoon.”
Me –“Didi, sketch to lagbhag pura ho hi chuka tha, ki tum aa gayi.”
Didi –“To kya ye pura sketch hai.”
Me –“Ha nahi to aur kya!!!! Ab isme Katrina Kaif aur Kareena
Kapoor ka naam bhi likhu kya????”
Didi –“Main kya Katrina se kam hu? Ahhhhammm.... Ye sab kya
hai bhai, main bahut gussa hoon tujh par.”
Me –“Kyu didi, main jawaan ho gaya hu, kuch to karunga na apni
hawas mitane ke liye.”
Didi –“To kya teri hawas itni jyada hai ki tujhe 5-6 ladkiya
chahiye, wo bhi kori kori, aur badle me tu apni maa ki gand bhi
marwane ko taiyar hain.”
Me –“To kya hua didi, Maa ki hazaro baar chudi gand ke badle
agar mujhe naya sealband gand mil rahi hai to, aap kyu gussa ho
rahi hai.”
Didi –“Are gussa kyu na karu, iss sketch me to mera naam hai hi
nahi. To gussa nahi karungi kya.”
Me –“Didi ........ ye kya bol rahi ho didi. Iss sketch me tumhara
naam kyu dalunga main.”
Didi –“Jab tu apni Maa chudwa sakta hain, to apni Didi aur Bahan
nahi chuda sakta kya? Mujhme aisi kya burai hai ki tune mujhe
shamil nahi kiya iss sex ke mahabharat me mera naam.”
Me –“Didi, main apse bahut pyar karta hoon, apko kaise kisi aur ke
samne daal sakta hoon, aap meri didi ho koi mutton nahi, jo kisi
bhi kutte ke samne daal diya.”
Didi –“To kya teri Maa meat ka tukda hai jo apne kutte dost ko
khilane ki soch raha hai?????? Bol bol na”
Me –“Didi, uske badle to mujhe makkan jaisi gand bhi to milegi na.”
Didi –“Agar Maa ki itni chudi hui gand ke badle tujhe makkan jaisi
gand mil sakti hai, to soch meri Angoor si jawani ke badle tujhe
kya kya mil sakta hai.”
Me –“Lekin main......”
Didi –“Are soch mat jyada, ban ja mera dalaal, meri hawas ki aag
bahut jor ki jal uthi hai Saurav, ab tu jaldi se mujhe bhi chudwa
de kisi se, setting kara de meri bhi bhai.”
Me –“Didi, main apse bahut pyar karta hu, apko kisi se chudte hue
dekh nahi paunga. Ap ungli kyu nahi karti hai.”
Didi –“Tu bhi to muth marta hi hai, lekin fir bhi tune boor aur
gand ke khatir itna intezam kiya hai na.”
Me –“Didi, main muth marta hoon, ye tumhe kaise pata.”
Didi –“Mujhe sab pata hai, bathroom me meri panty me muth
maar ke rakh dete ho. Kya sochte ho humko nahi pata chalega.”
Me –“Didi, lekin maine aapki panty par kabhi muth nahi mara,
agar mujhe jarurat hoti bhi hai to main Maa ke kapdo par muth
maar deta hoon.”
Didi –“Tumne aisa nahi kiya hai to Priya aisa karegi, nahi to Maa
ke laude nikal gaye hai?”
Me –“Sach me didi maine teri panty par kabhi muth nahi mari hai,
Pinki Promise.”
Didi –“To fir kisi na kisi ne to aisa kiya hai na, ki khud meri panty
ne muth nikal diya hai.”
Me –“Mujhe lagta hai Papa ne kiya hoga, kyuki unke siwa aur koi
aur hai bhi to nahi land wala ghar me. Kahi aisa to nahi hai ki Papa
tumko chodna chahte hai.”
Didi –“Ho sakta hai, ho ne ko to kuch bhi ho sakta hai, lekin main
Papa se bolungi kaise??”
Me –“Matlab tum Papa se chudne ke liye ready ho didi. Tumhi ko
suruat karni hogi, nahi to Papa to kabhi tumse nahi bolenge ki
unko tumhari boor chahiye.”
Didi –“Lekin agar maine Papa se jakar kaha ki mujhe aapse
chudwana hai aur Papa ne thappad maar kar bhaga diya to, GCPD
hoga to hogi hi. Fir, bahar bhi kisi se marane nahi ja paungi kyuki
Papa ghar se nikalne to denge nahi fir.”
Me –“Didi itna mat socho, Papa tere jaise komal kachnar kali ko
chode bina rah nahi payenge, itni mast item jo koi mard chhod
kaise sakta hai.
Didi –“Koi chhode na chhode. tum to chhod hi rahe ho aisi maal. Ha
bhai, tum mujhe kyu chodoge, tere paas to ab 36-38 size ki gand
wali laundiya hai jo”
Me –“Kya 36-38”
Didi –“Are wahi 36 ki gand wali Renu hai na tere pas, aur Maa ki
gand to 38 hai, to tu mere 34 ki gand par kyu nazar daalega.
Tujhe to bade bade gand pasand aati hai na.”
Me –“Didi, aisi baat nahi hai, apki gand abhi tak kabhi chudi nahi
hai na, isliye 34 ki hai, ek bar aapne gand me laude lene suru kiye
to aapki gand to Maa se bhi chaude ho jayenge. Aur, Papa ke land
se apne gand maraya to 1 mahine me apki gand 38 ki ho jayegi.”
Didi –“To tu kyu nahi kar deta meri gand 38 ki chod chod kar.
Kya tera land nahi tanakta mera gand dekh kar.”
Me –“Didi, aisa nahi hai mujhe to Pooja Didi ki kori gand mil hi
rahi hai, tu Papa ko chakhana apni virgin gand. Sacchhi Papa maze
se pelenge teri mastani gand ko.”
Didi –“Bhai, kabhi mana nahi karte garam boor aur mastani gand
ko, milte hi maar lena chahiye. Jab main tumse chudne ko taiyar
hu to tu kyu mana kar raha hai. Chakh le na meri boor aur gand bhai.”
Me –“Didi, aise bhi pahle din teri boor aur gand to chod paunga
nahi, kyuki boor fatne ke baad gand to tum khud nahi dogi. Pata
nahi kitne din chal bhi na paao.”
Didi –“Bas itni si baat, to chal tu pahle meri gand hi maar le. Fir
baad me meri boor chod dena. Aise bhi dono taraf se mera seal
tight hai, aj tak kabhi ungli bhi nahi daali hai, bahut garam hoti
hu to bas ragad leti hu hath se.”
Me –“Didi, pahle boor chodna chahiye, jab ladki ki boor paani
chhod de, tab hi gand ke bare me sochna chahiye. Maza dono ko
aana chahiye na. Tum pahle Papa se chudwao, hum to fir hai ki
tumko bhogne ke liye daily.”
Didi –“Lekin pata kaise kare ki Papa mujhe chodna chahte bhi hai
ya nahi, kahi aisa to nahi hai ki Papa bas masti ke liye meri panti
par muth marte ho, Aur main jab unse chudne jau to wo thappad
mar kar bhaga de.”
Me –“Kya didi, ek hi baat bar bar ratt rahi ho, nahi bhgayenge
Papa aapko, land ki pyaas aisi hoti hai ki mard kisi bhi chudne
aayi aurat ko wapas nahi bhej sakta. Chahe uski dadi ki kyu na
chudne aayi ho.”
Didi –“Lekin Saurav, Papa ka land to bahut mota hoga, mere itne
chhote se boor aur gand ka kya hoga, kabhi socha hai, bilkul fail
jayegi, Gali(Street) se GTRoad(Grand Trank Road-NH1) ban
jayegi, mujhe apni boor aur gand ka highway nahi banwana hai, tu
chod kar pakki sadak hi bana de meri boor ki, wahi kaafi hogi.”
Me –“Didi, kitna bhi bacha lo, bhosda to banegi hi teri boor, kyuki
mera land bhi kuch kam nahi hai.”
Didi –“Ban jane de bhosda meri boor ka, tu agar dariya bhi bana
de to koi gham nahi, lekin Papa se mujhe bahut dar lagta hai.
Pahle ek bar to mujhe chudwana hi hai , tabhi Papa ke pas chudne jaungi.”
Me –“Thik hai Pammi didi, lekin abhi to ye possible nahi hai. Aur,
tum itni chudasi ho gayi ho ki tumko ab ragadna hi padega. Jao
bathroom, ek bar ragad lo. Main tab tak Maa ki gand par nazar
rakhta hoon.”
Maine Pammi didi ke dono kandho par hath rakha aur didi ko
dhakka dete hue bathroom ke andar ghusa diya. Tabhi Maa didi ki
room me aayi.
Maa –“Kya hua, kyu dono lad rahe ho fir se??”
Me –“Kuch nahi Maa, bas Didi nahane nahi ja rahi hai aaj, maine
kitna bola naha le, kai mahino se nahi nahaya hai tune, par ye hai
ki samajhti hi nahi hai.”
Pammi Didi –“Tumko to main abhi batati hoon, aur Pammi Didi
mere pichhe daudi.”
Main waha se bhag nikla, pata nahi fir didi ne bathroom me kya
kiya. Lekin, jo bhi kiya hoga accha hi kiya hoga. Maa ne Didi ke
drawer se kuch nikala aur rasoi me chali gayi. 09:30 baj chuke
hai, aur main abhi tak taiyar bhi nahi hua hoon. Main jaldi se
bhaaga apne room ki orr. Jaldi se nahaya, kapde pahne, taiyar
hua, aur chal diya college Nilesh aur Vicki ke sath. Man me
chulbuli si sawaalo ki jhadi lagi thi. Nilesh bhi kafi khush tha, ki
main uske aur Annu ke bich se hatt gaya hu.
Me –“Kya bhai, bade khush nazar aa rahe ho, kya baat hai teri to
lottery hi nikal padi hai.”
Vicki –“Kya hua bhaiyo kis baat ki lottery nikal padi hai, aur kiski
nikli hai.??”
Me –“Are tum to puchho hi mat, sun nahi payega tu, Nilesh ji ko
pyar ho gaya hai, ab pucchega ki kis-se. Puchh puchh hey”
Vicki –“Are kya baat hai. Ab bata bhi do kis-se pyar hua hai bhai ko.”
Nilesh ki to “teen tiya barah” ho rahi thi dar se, kuch bol bhi nahi
sakta tha, aur na mujhe rok sakta tha, chupchap khade chehre
par banawati muskan liye has raha tha. Main bhi tang khichne ka
mauka khona nahi chahta tha.
Me –“Ab to na college me man lagega Nilesh ko, na hi ghar me.
Bas chain aayega to bathroom me. Ha hahah”
Nilesh –“Abe bas karo, bahut bol rahe ho tum, tezz mat bano to Saurav.”
Vicki –“Kya bol diya be aisa ki aag-e ugalne lage ho bhayanak
type ka yar. Bas itna hi to bola hai ki pyar karte ho. Kyu
bathroom me pyar nahi karte ho kya, ooooo to fir room me hi
karte hoge ahhaha hahah”
Me –“Abe ab bas karo yar, bhai ke dil ka Volleyball mat banao to
ab. Chalo class chalte hai.”
Class me aj kuch man nahi lag raha tha. Soch soch kar maza bhi
aa raha tha aur aane wale dino ke liye taiyar bhi hona tha. Jo bhi
ho, lekin ab Pooja Didi apne saath thi, bas khali time par pahuchna
tha. Aur fir le... dhaka dhak......... fucka fuck..........
Yeh sab baat sochte sochte ek period khtm ho gaya. Fir dusre
class me Bipin aakar mere saath bagal me baith gaya, hum dono
dhire dhire baat karne lage.
Me –“Kya bola didi ne, gand marane ke liye ready hai kya?”
Bipin –“Gand marane ke liye bekarar hai didi to, lekin bolti hai ki
pahle mujh se marwayegi.”
Me –“Are yar gajab musibat hai ye bhi, ab nahi maan rahi hai to
pakad ke jabardasti pel dete hai bolo to.”
Bipin -“Nahi yar Didi hai meri, aj nahi to kal maan hi jayegi,
jabardasti balatkar thhode karna hai. Fir jabardasti karenge to
Bhabhi ko kaise patayenge. Dono hath se nikal jayegi.”
Me –“ha yar, baat to sahi hai, dekh mere to kuch samjh me nahi
aa raha hai, tu hi ab kuch soch, mujhe to nind aa rahi hai, kal raat
so nahi paaya yar isi tension me.”
Bipin –“Tu tension mat le yar, main Didi ke gand nahi fadunga
pahle, Pahle tu aram se gand marna, fir agar didi fir se gand
marane ko ready hui to hum lenge.”
Me –“Ha yaar, bas ek baar rasta khulne ka der hai, fir to jitna
chahe chod sakte ho. Tera land ka kya haal hai, kal bhi to raat
bhar chudai chala hoga.”
Bipin –“Ha yaar, badi chudasi maal hai yar Pooja Di, jab dekho
tang faila ke bolti hai lauda do boor me, sala 2 hi din me
bahanchod 7 pose me chudwa chuki hai, gajab experiment kar rahi
hai mere land par, kabhi upar kabhi niche, kabhi bed par, kabhi
sofa par, saala aaj to nahaye bhi saath hi hai.”
Me –“Bhag sala, kya baat kar raha hai.. Kasam????”
Bipin –“Kasam se yar, Garam garam badan par jab thanda thanda
pani pad raha to, oo ho ho.... kya bataye. Nahane se pahle bhi ek
round ho gaya dhaka dhak.... Aur pata hai iss baar to Didi ne mera
land chusa bhi, wo bhi pura andar tak le ke.”
Me –“Dekha bole the na, ek baar chusegi to fir land chhodegi nahi,
hamesa chusti rahegi, ab to Pooja Didi 10 inch ka land bhi pura
ghusa legi muh me. maine pura rasta clear kar diya hai jo.”
Bipin –“Maza to khub aa raha hai Didi ko bhokiyane me, lekin teri
Maa ka gand mil jaata na to gajab chodte suta suta ke, teri Maa
ki gand kya chiz hai yar. Utna bada to mera takiya bhi nahi hai
yar. Mann karta hai tere maa ki gand par sar rakh kar soya rahu.
Jugaad bhida raha hai ki nahi. Jaldi se dilaa de yar, teri maa ki gand.”
Me –“Teri maa ki bhosda, itna try kiya fir bhi koi baat nahi bani
hai abhi tak, pata nahi maa ki boor kab milegi thokne ko, upar se
agar maa ne gand marane se mana kiya to, dono khelte rahenge
apna apna khutta se, samjhe.”
Bipin –“Abe nahi yaar, try kar na, teri maa ka gand ke bare me
sochte hi land khada ho jata hai yaar, aaah dekh fir khada ho
gaya hai. Dard bhi kar raha hai ab to land, bahut chudwayi hai
didi. Yaha se sidhe mere ghar chalna be, kahi didi fir chodne boli
to tum hi chod dena, mera haalat kharab kar di hai.”
Me -“Thik hai, chalenge. Teri didi ko khatarnak randi ho gayi hai
yaar, aise hi progress karti rahi to “Jynx Maze” ko bhi fail kar
degi saali.”
Bipin –“Sahi bola, lekin madarchod wali, tere se gand marwane me
kya problem hai usko, ek hi baar to marwana hai, fir hum marenge
na daily. Lekin, bahanchod taiyar hi nahi ho rahi hai.”
Me –“Abe bahanchod Pooja Didi nahi, tu hai,samjha laude ke 13.”
Bipin –“Ha be laude ke 8, hum tumko roke hai kya apni bahan
chodne se, tu kyu nahi chodta Pammi Didi ko, ek kaam to hota nahi
hai, humko bol raha hai.”
Maine socha Maa ko to approach kiya nahi hai, Pammi Didi to
mujhse marwane ko ready hi hai. Aur, garam to aisi thi ki gadhe
se bhi pelwa legi. Maa ke badle Didi ki deal kar lete hai, aur Didi
ki gand pahle maar ke isko denge 2nd hand maal. Aur, fir Maa ke
gand ke badle iski bhabhi ki gand le lenge. ekdum sahi rahega.
Me –“Yaar Bipin, ek baat bolun”
Bipin – “ha bol na, ek nahi 100 baat bol. Hum kya tera jujji pakad
ke rakhe hai jo tera baat nahi nikal raha hai.”
Me –“Yaar Maa meri taiyar hogi ki nahi pata nahi, ek kaam karte
hai ki teri Didi ki gand ke badle me tu meri Pammi Didi ki gand le
le, Fir teri maa ya bhabhi ki gand dilawna tab meri Maa ki gand le lena.”
Bipin –“Nahi yaar, mujhe to bas teri Maa ki gand hi acchi lagti
hai. Talab lagi hai abhi mujhe teri maa ki, aur tu mujhe Pammi
Didi ki gand dekar nipta raha hai.”
Me –“Nahi yaar, Maa ki gand pata nahi pa raha hu tere liye dost,
kya karun.”
Bipin –“Dekh mujhe tujh par pura bharosa hai, main Pooja Didi ko
tujhse gand marwane ke liye patata hoon, tu mere liye apni Maa ki
gand tel laga kar taiyar kar. Kya????”
Me –“Kosis karunga aj ghar wapas jate hi. Everything will be
planned.”
Bipin –“Madarchod, teri plan ki maa ki 21 naa ho jaye, sambhal kar.”
Me –“Chal ab ghar chalte hai, sochne ka nahi ab kuch karne ka
samay aa gaya hai.”
Bipin –“Bye, see u tomorrow..”
Charo dost ‘Me-Nilesh-Bipin-Vicki’ apne-apne ghar chale jate hai
college se wapas. Mujhe ab tak ye bhi pata nahi tha ki meri garam
Pammi didi ne mere jane ke baad bathroom me kya kiya. Apki
boor ki garmi ragad kar nikala, ya jalti bhatti par paaani daal kar
aag bujha di. Abhi didi ki bhatti ki aag puri tarah shant nahi hui
thi, aag bujhane ke baad bhi dhuwaa to uthta hi rahta hai, wo
Pammi didi ki aankho se pata chal hi raha tha. Mere ghar
pahuchte hi Pammi didi ki aankho me ajib si hunger dikhay de rahi
thi, jaise mujhe aagaah kar rahi ho ki beta mil kone me batati hu,
jam kaar chodungi tujhe..
Update 10
Main apni Pammi Didi ki aankho me vasna ki dorre saaf dekh raha
tha, jo unki aankho ko surkh laal bana rahe the, Pammi Didi ko
jyada der tadpane ka matlab tha ki kisi aur ke hatho me Pammi
Didi ki boor soupna. Didi itni chusadi ho chuki thi ki kisi na kisi se
marwa hi leti agar main jaldi unhe nahi chodta to. Aur agar didi
Papa se chudti bhi to usse pahle mujhse chudne ki iccha thi unki.
Ab pahli baar chudne wale ki har icchha puri ki jati hai, aisa
niyaam hai mere hisaab se. Pahli baar chudne wali ladki ki har
icchha main apne sar-aankho par rakhta hoon, kam se kam ek din
to ho, jab wo apni icchha anusaar chude, fir baad me to use
rakhail ban-na hi hai, aur mere saare hukum bajane hi hai. Isliye
unki zindagi ki gulami ke badle ek din ki marmarzi to de hi sakta
tha main.
Sham ke 4 baje main ghar pahucha. Dophar ko kuch nahi khaaya,
bhukh se pet me chuhe daud rahe the, kuch bhi samajh me nahi
aa raha tha ki karoon to karoon kya. Maine apne kapde khole jaldi
se aur dress bhi change kar liya. Main jaldi se Pammi Didi ke pas
gaya aur bola –
Me –“Didi, kya kiya aapne subah bathroom me. Ragda ya nahi boor
apni. Paani nikala ya paani daal diya.”
Pammi Didi –“Ragda to bhai, lekin tu kab ragdega mujhe, ab der
mat kar jyada.”
Meri didi bhi mere hi jaise kuch ishaqmizaz hai, har situtation ko
gaane me batane ki unki bhi aadat hai hi. Jiska jawaab maine bhi
song me hi diya.
Pammi Didi –“Apne hi rang mein mujhko rang de..... Dheeme
dheeme rang mein mujhko rang de....
Saundhe-saundhe rang mein mujhko rang de..... Rang de na, rang
de na, rang de na.. aa.....”
Me –“Ek bhi saans alag nahin leni..... Khich lena praan tan ke.....
Haaye.. nahin rehna dooja banke....
O rangrej tere rang dariya mein..... Doobna hai bas tera banke.....
Haaye.. nahin rehna dooja banke....”
Pammi Didi –“Khana laga deti hoon, kha lena pahle, main apne
kamre me tera intezar karoongi.”
Me – “Ok Didi, main 5 minute me aaya tere piche.”
Meri nazar wapas jate hue Didi ki matakt gand par hi gadi thi.
Maine jaldi se kahana khaya, aur Didi ki kamre ki taraf bhaga.
Maa kahi dikhayi nahi de rahi thi, shayad gand matka-matka kar
bazaar gayi hogi.
Me –“Didi, maa dikhayi nahi de rahi hai. kahi gayi hai kya??”
Pammi Didi –“Bazaar gayi hai, jaldi se kuch kar na bhai. Aag lagi
hai badan me. Kuch to thanda kar.”
Me –“Abhi to koi bhi aa sakta hai, pata nahi kab Priya aa jaye,
achanak Maa bhi aa sakti hai.”
Pammi –“darwaza band kar de, aur jaldi se kuch bhai, without risk
no gain, dear...”
Me –“Thik boli Didi. I agree.”
Maine jaldi se darwaja band kar diya. Aur, Didi ki aur lapka. Main
bhi bahut der se chhatpata raha tha kuch masalne ki liye, mauka
milte hi maine Didi ki doodho ko dhar dabocha, Didi mere achanak
hamle ke liye taiyar nahi thi. Wo siskar uthi. Uski sisak me maze
aur dard ka ek balanced mishran tha.
Pammi Didi –“Aram se Sourav, aise utawale mat do.”
Me –“Didi, mat roko, tumhe nahi pata, tumko chodne ke liye kitni
bechain hoom main. Jaldi se salwar kholo na.”
Pammi Didi –“Are, badi jaldi hai tujhe, itni asani se nahi chudungi
mai, Meri pahli chudai to special honi chahiye na Saurav.”
Maine der na karte hue didi ne kapde utarne suru kiye. Kurta,
Spaghetti aur Salwar jhatt se alag kar diye Didi ke badan se.
Abhi unka color batane ka time nahi tha mere paas. Main bas Didi
ko jalsi se bhokiyana chahta tha, dono ki garmi charam par thi.
Didi bhi kafi der se jal rahi thi. Didi ne bhi mere sarir se kapde
nochne suru kar diye. Dekhte ho dekhte main aadamjaat nanga ho
gaya. Didi besharam hog ayi thi, usne meri underwear tak nahi
choodi, ek hi baar me mujhe puri tarah se nanga kar diya. Didi ke
sarir par bas bra ar panty bachi thi, Didi ki bra panty normal
white color ki thi. Sayad Didi nahi janti thi ki, aj unka encounter
aisa hoga mere se. Nahi to pakka designer inners pahanti wo.
Maine bhi Didi ki normal white bra panty ko normal value hi diya
aur khich kar alag kar diya. Didi ab puri tarah langti ho chuki thi.
Didi ko aadamjaat langte dekh kar mera land kaboo se bahar ho
gaya. Didi sab kuch pahle se janti thi. Sex theory me wo bhi mere
jaisa kafi educated hai. Bas practical abhi suru kiya hai didi ne.
Didi ne jhat se mera land tham liya apne mulayam hatho me. Aur,
dhire dhire muthyane lagi. Didi ke hath se sat-te hi mere samaan
fanfana utha, aur apne original size me aa gaya, mere tanke hue
land ko dekh kar didi dar gayi.
Pammi Didi –“Itna lamba, mota bhi bahut hai tera Sourav.”
Me –“Ha didi, bas 3.5” mota hai, aap aram se le logi, tension mat lo.”
Pammi Didi –“Nahi Sourav, mujhe to maja ayega tumhare mote
land se chudne me.”
Me –“Didi tum bahut sexy ho, mujhse control nahi ho raha hai Didi.”
Didi ka gora badan mujhe pagal kar raha tha. Pammi didi ki size
34-30-34 hai, gora badan sangmarmar ki tarah chamak raha tha,
samanya se ball ki jaise kadak kadak chuchiyan, patli kamar aur
ubhrati hui gand 34 ki, mujhe madhosh kar rahe the. Didi Ajanta-
Ellora ki gufao ki nang murtiyo si sex ki devi pratit ho rahi thi.
Itni sudol badan ko jakad kar mera land to thanthana utha tha.
Gala sukh raha tha, maine Didi ke hotho par apne hoth jama diye,
aur chusna suru kiya. Didi ne bhi apna gulabi lips khol kar mere
jibh ko andar daal liya. Didi ki dono chuchiyon ko maine hatho me
bhar liya aur dabane laga, khade hone ki wajah se didi ke sarir
par meri pakad kamjor hui, kyuki mere hath to didi ki chuchiyon
par vayast the. Maine Didi ko deewar par sta diya, aur Didi ke
jangho ke bich apna land ghusa diya.
Didi ne mere land ko hath se pakda. Aur, apne boor ke upar
ragadne lagi. Didi mere land ko apne boor par ragde ja rahi thi.
Ragad itni hard thi ki mano mera land jhad jayega. Shayad didi
ko ragadne se hi maza aata hai, aadat si ho gayi hai didi ko
ragadne ki. Unko asli chudai ke maze ka zyan hi nahi hai. Maine
didi ko ulta kiya aur deewar par daba diya. Fir maine picche se
didi ki dono chuchiyo ko pakaad kar masla. Chuchiyo ke dono
nipples par chutkiya kati. Didi sisiyane lage.... Aur apna right
picche karke mere land ko pakad liya. Aur apne jangho ke bich
daba liya. Left hand se didi ne mere land ko apne boor par rakha
aur ragadna suru kar diya. Mujhe bhi maza aane laga. Maine did
ko chuchiyo ko aur jor se masalna suru kiya. Didi ka maza duguna
badh gaya. Wo aur jor jor se ragadne lagi mere land par apni boor
ko. Maine didi ke kaan ko muh me bhar liya aur chusne laga, main
didi ko betahasa chume ja raha tha, aur chuchiyo ko bhi masalta
raha. Didi ko bahut maza aa raha tha.
Mujhe bhi accha lag raha tha, maine didi ko roka nahi. Didi
dhanush ki tarah jhukti ja rahi thi picchhe ki orr. Mai bhi jhuk kar
didi ki boor par land ragad raha tha. Achanak didi ne mere land
ko chhod diya aur sidhi ho gayi. Maine didi ki chuchiyo fir se tham
liya aur dabane laga. Didi ne fir se mere land ko pakda aur apne
boor me bhida diya. Didi bhi bahut garam ho chuki thi, mera
taapmaan bhi hadd se bahar ho rha tha. Agar iss waqt koi
thermometer lagata mere muh me, to thermometer to faat hi
jata. Ye garmi mujhse bhi bardast nahi ho rahi thi. Fan bhi full
speed par chal rahi thi, Maine didi ke gardan ko pakad kar
deewar par daba diya, aur lips ko muh me daal kar chusne laga.
Didi ab bhi mere land ko ragde ja rahi thi. Achanak didi dhili se
padne lagi shayad Didi skhalit hone lagi thi. Mai bhi charam par
pahuchne hi wala tha, maine bhi kamar chalana suru kar diya.
Land didi ke jangho ke bich fasa tha, aur naram naram boor par
ragad kha raha tha. Achanak mai bekaboo ho gaya, aur mere land
se garam lava fut pada. Mere land se muth nikal kar didi ke
jangho se bahne laga. Kuch chiitte deewar par bhi lage. Dono jhad
chuke the aur dhile pad rahe the. Maine didi ko uthaya ko bistar
par gir pada. Didi bhi sikud gayi thi.
Tabhi achanak doorbell baj uthi. Ting tong ting tong!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!
Mai hadbada kar khada ho gaya, mai darr gaya tha, didi bhi jhat
se khadi ho gayi aur bathroom ki orr bhagi. Mai bhi apne room ke
orr bhaga, bhagte hue maine apne kapde utha liye. Aur, bathroom
me ghus gaya, Jaldi se land ko saaf kiya aur kapde pahne, Didi
bhi bathroom se nikal kar apnr room ka darwaja andar se band
kar liya tha, mai bhag kar darwaja kholne gaya. Maine dhire se
darwaja khola to dekha Priya khadi thi. Maine Priya se puchha
–“Kaha gayi thi tum????”
Priya –“Kya bhaiya, ek to main bahar se aa rahi ho, garmi bhi itnii
hai, darwaja kholne me itna late bhi kiya, aur ab andar bulana
chhod kar sawaal kar rahe ho.”
Me –“O O O andar aao jaldi se. main tumhare liye kuch drink
banata hoon.”
Priya muskurayi, aur boli –“Bhaiya, drink banana matlab wine
daalna glass me. Boliye, colddrink laata hoon.”
Me –“Haa yaar, aate hi lecture class suru tera. Bhaiya ye nahi
karo, bhaiya wo galat. chal andar aa ab.”
Main fridge ki orr badha, aur Priya hall me jakar baith gayi.
Maine fridge se Maaza ki bottle nikali aur 2 glass me bhar kar
hall ki orr badha. Maine ek glass Priya ki orr badhaya. Priya ne
glass pakadte hue pucchha –“Bhaiya match nahi dekh rahe ho,
India ka match aa raha hai, aur aap nahi dekh rahe ho, impossible.”
Me –“Are yaar, baat hi mat karo India team ki tum, kab jitega
kab harega pata ki nahi, saala match dekh kar 4 ghanta kaun
barbaad karega.”
Priya –“Kya bhaiya, 4 match khela India ne, aur charo match jita
hai, ab aur kya expectation hai aapki Indian Cricket Team se ki 4
me se 5 match jeet le. Kya bhaiya aap bhi na. Apne goroup me top
par hai. Aur kya kar sakte hai, bechare.”
Me –“Chhod yar, chal TV on kar, remote de idhar, last kuch overs
bache ho sayad.”
Priya –“Remote kaha hai, idhar to nahi hai.” Priya ne sofa ke kono
me khojte hue kaha.
Me –“Idhar bhi nahi dikh raha hai, drawer me dekh, kahi kisi ne
recks par to nahi rakh diya, ya fir se Maa kitchen me kahi rakh
kar bhool gayi.”
Priya –“Kya musibat hai yaar, ye remote to aise gayab hota hai,
jaise kisi Govt scheme ka fund ho. Bill pass hua aur fund gayab.”
Me –“Shant ho ja Priya, itna gussa nahi karte, mil jayega, yahi
kahi hoga.”
Priya –“Aap pahle dhoond ka nahi rakh sakte the. Ab sara ghar
remote khojte chalo. Pakka didi apne room me lekar chali gayi hogi.”
Me –“Didi ka to darwaja bhi band hai. Mujhe khana dekar darwaja
band karke so gayi, pata nahi jagi bhi hai ya abhi tak so rahi hai.”
Priya –“Maa kaha hai, kahi gayi hai kya.”
Me –“ha, Didi ne bataya, bazaar gayi hai, ab tak to aa jana
chahiye tha, aati hi hogi, tu ruk main dekhta hu Didi ke room me.”
Priya –“Ok, main fir baithi hoon aram se. Sahi jagah par kuch
milta hi nahi ghar me to, sabkuck messed up(ast-vayast). ”
Main Didi ke room ka darwaja knock karta hoon. –“Didi, its me,
Priya has came. (Didi, main hoon, Priya aa gayi hai)”
Didi –“Ok, wait just 1 sec!”
Didi ne darwaja khola, to main andar jakar idhar udhar remote
khojne laga. Didi mere taraf ab bhi pyar se dekhe ja rahi thi.
Me –“Didi please, don’t overreact, It happens sometimes. You
know already, then also (Didi, atyadhik pratikriya mat dijiye, aisa
hota hai kabhi kabhi. Aap to janti hai, fir bhi).”
Didi –“How you can be so much calm (Tum itna shant kaise ho).
You ejaculated on me (Tumne mere upar virya giraya). You should
tell me before cumming (Tumhe shkalan se pahle mujhe batana
chahiye tha). Aur, ab kya dhoond rahe ho mere kamre me.”
Maine dekha to deewar par virya ke nishan nahi the, sayad Didi
ne saaf kar diya tha. Maine didi ko dhanyawaad kaha.
Me –“Thank you didi. Bahut maza aaya mujhe to. Aur, thank you
fir se, deewar saaf karke mujhe bachane ke liye, ab jaldi se
remote dijiye. Priya ko match dekhana hai. nahi to match bhi khtm
ho jayega.”
Priya –“Kya bhaiya mila kya. Ab to match bhi khtm ho jayega. Tab
kya PMP (post match presentation) dekhenge.”
Me –“Nahi mila yaar, Didi chalo tum bhi remote dhoondo.”
Didi –“Remote computer table par hai. Akal to hai nahi aur yaha
waha khoj rahe ho dono.”
Didi bhi bahar hall me aa jati hai. Ab didi ko dekh kar aisa bilkul
nahi lag raha tha ki hamare bich kuch hua hai. Didi ab puri tarah
se normal thi. Maine bhi chain ki saans li.
Didi –“Tum log dono maaza pi rahe ho, aur mujhe pucchha tak nahi.”
Priya –“Didi, aapko kisi ne roka hai kya. Glass le aayiye, aur le lijiye.”
Didi –“Saurav ja na mere liye glass le aa.”
Main utha aur didi ke liye glass ke aaya, glass me cold drink
daala aur Didi ko diya. TV chalu hua, aur humlog match dekhne lage.
Priya –“Kya baat hai, bhaiya, aj to Didi ki baat ek bar me hi maan
gaye. Tabiyat to thik hai na.”
Tabhi Maa ghar me in (pravesh) karti hai. Maa –“Kiski tabiyat,
kya hua kis-so????”
Priya –“Kuch nahi hua kisi ko, baitho ab tum aram se pahle.”
Ab main kaise batata Priya ko ki, Didi ke boor ke liye glass kya
pura kitchen bhi utha kar lana pade to le aaunga main. Hum sabhi
match dekhne lage. India jeet rahi thi. It was a clear win for
India, so not so interesting match. Main abhi bhi soch raha tha ki
ye kaise ho gaya – Mere Land ne to Dhokha de diya...
Isse pahle aap logo ne padha ki kaise mere land ne aain waqt par
dhokha diya. Aise dhokha to dono taraf se hone hi tha, itna waqt
hi nahi tha ki puri chudai ho paati, ek tarah se thik hi hua ki jaldi
se main jhad gaya, kam se kam kuch der ke liye shanti to mili.
Udhar Bipin Pooja didi ki chudai me vayast tha to main idhar apni
Pammi Didi ko puri chudai bhi na kar payaa. Abhi Maa mere saath
sat kar sofe par baithi hui thi. Bipin ki baato ne mere maan me
maa ke prati vichar jaga diye the. Meri Maa ke moti moti jange
meri jangho se sate hue the. Abhi maa bazaar se aayi thi to badan
garam tha, maine dhire se apna ek haath unki jangh par rakh
diya. Maa ko to pata bhi nahi chala, sabhi match dekhne me vayast
the. Maine dhire dhire maa ki jangho par hath chalana suru kar
diya. Maa ne iska koi virodh nahi kiya, shayad unhe ye ehsash hi
nahi tha ki main kis iraade se unki janghe sahla raha hoon.
Me –“Maa, bahut thak gayi hogi na, chalo main tumhare pair daba
deta hoon, bologi to maalis bhi kar dunga.”
Maa –“Are nahi beta, abhi dher sara kaam baki hai, baad me
dekhte hai. Abhi to zara bhi time nahi hai. tere Papa bhi aate hi
honge.”
Didi ne mujhe chitti kati, aaouch. Didi shayad samjh rahi thi ki
main kyu maa ki maalis karna chahta hoon.
Pammi Didi – “Main sab samjh rahi hoon, tu kyu maa ki maalis
karna chahta hai, bahut bada kameena hai re tu bhai. Abhi Didi ke
boor me muth giraye aadha ghanta bhi nahi hua hai ki maa ke
badan se satne jage jakar. Yahi haal raha tera to, Priya ko bhi
khatra hai tujhse.”
Me –“Didi, Priya abhi bacchi hai, usko kyu bich me la rahi ho,
tumhare assets itne mast hi hai ki main fisal gaya, lekin Priya ke
liye to main aisa soch bhi nahi sakta.”
Didi –“Nahi soch raha hai to sochna suru kar de, nahi to kahi aisa
na ho ki wo bahar marwana suru kar de. Wo ab koi bacchi nahi rahi
hai, jawani fut fut kar bahar aane ko tadaap rahi hai uski. Maine
to kisi tarah sambhal liya tha khud ko, lekin ab zamana wo nahi
rah gaya hai, 20-25 ladke dost hai uske, kisi ko bhi mauka mila to
tangein utha kar pel dega usko.”
Me –“Didi, aap Priya ke liye aisa kaise bol sakti hai.”
Didi –“Kyu? Tu apne Maa ki gand marne ki soch sakta hai, aur
main apni chotti bahan ka khayal bhi nahi rakh sakti.”
Me –“Really didi, you are too much, & Priya is a kid now, she
needs at least 2-3 years to prepare mentally. I don’t think she
even have any idea over sex (Didi aap bhi na hadd ho, Priya abhi
chotti hai, kam-se-kam 2-3 saal aur lagenge usko mansik roop se
taiyar hone me, aur mujhe lagta ki use sambhog ke bare me kuch
bhi pata hai).”
Didi –“Only you think so, but the truth is she is completely a ripen
fruit now, which should be consume faster, otherwise someone
else will suck her JUZZY mangoes (Sirf tum aise sochte ho, lekin
sach ye hai ki, wo ab ek paki hui faal ban chuki hai, jisko jaldi se
kha lena chahiye, nahi to koi aur uske RASBHARI aamoo ko chus
lega).”
Me –“Didi, are you fantasizing her, damn you are such a slut
(Didi, Kya tum uske bare me sochti ho, sachmuch tum aise hi
randi ho).”
Didi –“Randi to main ho hi bhai, lekin teri randi hu re. Ab jaldi se
2-4 boond andar bhi daal de raja, booriya fadwane ke ke fadak
rahi ho raja.”
Me –“Didi, jab tum hadd se jyada gandi baatein karti ho, to
sachmuch mujhe bahut maza aata hai, tum meri sabse pyari randi
banogi didi.”
Didi –“Dekh Maa bhi garam hai aur Priya bhi taiyar hai, pahle
mera game baja acche se, meri aag mita saka, to main tera pura
saath dungi Maa aur Priya ko patane me, main nahi chahti ki Priya
bahar marwane jaye aur maa ke liye to 10-10 land bhi kam hi hai,
tera bhi le hi legi.”
Update 11
Match khtm hone ke baad Pammi Didi aur Priya apne kamre me
chali gayi. Main bhi apne kamre me chala gaya. computer start
kiya aur Xossip.com par incest stories padhne laga, maine apne
threads par aaye request aur appreciation par reply karna suru
kiya. Tabhi achanak Pammi Didi mere kamre me dakhil hui, Didi
ne socha ki main kisi dost ko email kar raha hoon.
Didi –“Kya, ab kise mail kar rahe ho. Bata rahe ho sabko apne
land ke kisse, ki kaise chodne se pahle hi tumhara tapak jata hai,
tap tap tap....”
Me –“Didi, aisa pahli bar hua tha, Pooja ko to 20 minutes tak
choda tha, fir 5 minute chuswaya tha, tab kahi jakar nikla tha.”
Didi –“Tune Pooja ke muh me hi chhod diya tha kya??”
Me –“Aur nahi to kya, pilaa diya randi ko apna muth.”
Didi –“Aaah bhai, bada maza aaya hoga na. Mujhe kyu nahi pilaya
muth. Aise bhi bahar hi gira diya tha, to pila deta na.”
Me –“Didi, ye koi chwanprash nahi hai jo pikar tumko energy
milegi, ek bar muh me jayega, tab pata chalega ki kitna salty
hota hai. Fir bologi ki muh me kyu gira diye.”
Didi –“Nahi bolungi, tu pahle chakha to sahi apna muth mujhe.”
Me –“Chak lo, maine kaun sa apna land locker me band karke
rakha hai. Ek zip hi to hai, khlo aur chusna suru kar do.”
Didi ne mere room ka darwaja band kar diya, aur mera pant khol
kar niche kar diya. Mera land so raha tha, lekin Didi ke hath me
jate hi halchal suru ho gayi land me. Didi ne dhire se sahlaya mere
land ko, aur jibh nikal kar supade ko chata, main anand vibhor ho
utha. Land tanakne laga, didi ne mere land ko upar se niche tak
chatna suru kar diya tha. Didi ne apne left hand se mere dono
aando ko pakad rakha tha, aur jibh se land ko chat-ti ja rahi thi.
Me –“Didi, muh ke andar daalo na ab.”
Didi –“Daalti hu baba, itni jaldi kya hai, koi railgaadi chhute ja
rahi hai kya??”
Didi ne jaise hi mere land ko apne muh me daala, mera land fanak
kar apne pure size me aa gaya. Mujhe naisargik anand ki anubhuti
ho rahi thi, aur Didi mast rand kutiya ki tarah mere land par muh
maar rahi thi. Maine didi ke muh ko chodna suru kiya, Didi mere
aur dekhne lagi, jisne aag me ghee ka kaam kiya. Ab didi bhi jor
jor se mera land kha rahi thi, land didi ki laar se puri tarah geela
ho chuka tha. Aasani se didi ke muh me aa ja raha tha. Maine
speed badhayi aur fir achanak land me didi ke dant gad gaye.
Main cheekh utha, aur land muh se bahar nikal liya.
Me –“Aaah, aah, Didi yeh kya kiya, dant kyu kaata mere land par.”
Didi –“Pahli baar hai na bhai, galti se ho gaya. Tum to aise muh
chod rahe ho ki jaise kitna din se marwa rahi hu main. Pahli baar
to land muh me liya hai, aur tum randi ke jaisa pel rahe ho muh
me. Dant galti se lag gaya.”
Me –“Jao main nahi chusata tumko apna land.”
Didi –“Dekhne to de, kahi lagi to nahi mere land par. Kata to nahi.”
Me –“Are wah, ab mera land tera ho gaya.”
Didi –“Jab mai chud rahi hu tere land se, to mera hi na hua.”
Me –“Abhi ek bar bhi chudi nahi ho ki itna haq jata rahi ho, chudne
ke baad to mujhe kahi orr jane hi nahi dogi tum.”
Didi –“Bilkul sahi, kahi nahi jane dungi, ghar me 3 tiya 9 ched hai,
to tu bahar kya karne jayega? Pahle yaha ghar me sabki khujli
mita de, fir bahar jana Dooja Pooja ko chodne.”
Me –“Accha, chal ab jhuk kar khadi ho ja bed par. Main iss bar to
teri chut mar kar hi rahunga. Wo to tune ragad ke nikal di thi
paani nahi to usi waqt chod deta tumko.”
Didi –“Time bhi to nahi tha utna, abhi aram se chod, Priya padh
rahi hai, aur Maa kitchen me busy hai, Papa kahi bahar hai, jaldi
se daal de na.”
Maine Pammi Didi ko bistar ke jhuka ke lita diya, Didi ke gand
bistar ke kinare thi aur pair niche latak rahe the, didi aadhi
bistar par leti thi, main Didi ke pichhe khada ho gaya aur jhuk kar
Didi ke boor par land sata diya. Boor utni gili nahi thi, main niche
baith gaya aur didi ke fank me muh ghhusa kar chatne laga. Ab
Didi ki chut puri gili ho chuki thi, maine Didi ke boor par thuk
diya, aur apne land par bhi thuk lagaya, aur Fir jhuk kar Didi ke
chut ke muhane par apna land bhida diya.
Ab meri kunwari Pammi Didi ki seal tutne wali thi. Maine didi ke
sar par ek takiya rakh kar daba diya, taki agar didi cheekhe bhi
to awaz bahar na nikle. Maine ek hath se didi ko dabaya aur ghapa
ghap 3 shot maar diye jor ke. Didi dard se bilbila uthi, Didi ki
cheekh nikal gayi thi, Mera supada didi ki boor me ghus chuka
tha. Didi ki boor ki jhilli bhi fat chuki thi, main apne land par Didi
ka garam garam khun ko mahsus kar sakta tha, Didi rone lagi thi.
Maine Didi ko pichhe se daboch rakha tha, aur takiye se Didi ke
sar ko daba rakha tha. Didi ne hilne ki bahut kosis ki, lekin koi
fayda nahi hua. Maine didi ko halal huye murge ke jaise daba
rakha tha, didi ke boor se khun ris ris kar bahar aa raha tha.
Farsh par khoon ke 4 bunde tapak chuki thi, aur mera land didi ke
boor me 4” ghusa hua tha. Main bhi bilkul hila dula nahi, aur ek
haath se Didi ki pith sahlata raha, fir jab Didi puri tarah se shant
ho gayi to maine dhire se pakad dhili ki, Didi aadhi behosh ho
chuki thi.
Maine socha ki kahi aur choda to Didi behosh na ho jaye. Land
boor me abhi bhi fasa hua tha, maine pas me pade paani ka bottle
uthaya aur Didi ko diya. Didi ne bottle khol kar thoda paani piya.
Ab Didi ka dard kuch kam ho chuka tha.
Didi –“Kya jaldi thi tujhe itni, samajh kyea rakha hai tune mujhe.
Aise karta hai kya koi bhala.”
Me –“Are didi, pahli bar to seal toda hai, koi rozz ka kaam to hai
nahi thoda jor se lag gaya.”
Didi –“Ab 2 minute shant rah, nikalna mat land apna, nahi to fir
se andar nahi jayega. Tu bada nirdayi hai bhai.”
Me –“Didi ab ghoda ghaas se dosti karega, to khayega kya????”
Didi –“Tu ghoda hai ye to dikh raha hai tere ghode jaise land se,
main ghaas kaise hui.”
Me –“Mera chara jo ho tum, main tumko kha raha hoon jo. Jab koi
khata hai jaldi jaldi to bolte hai gapa-gap kha raha hai, jab koi
chodta hai jaldi jaldi to bolte hai ghapa-ghap chod raha hai,
jyada fark bhi to nahi hai, bas ek h hi to extra hai Didi.”
Chal ab baate mat mana, dhire dhire andar bahar kar, isse jyada
andar mat daalna abhi aur. Maine Didi ki baat maan li, aur dhire
dhire land chalane laga Didi ki boor me. Kareeb 5 minute tak main
aise hi Didi ko chodta raha, Didi ko bhi dard aur masti ka mila jula
sukh mil raha tha. Fir maine didi ko sidha lita diya aur pel diya
Didi ke boor me land, 4” se jyada ghusane ko didi se mana kiya
tha, isliye main sambhal kar chod raha tha. Didi bhi aah uhh kiye
ja rahi thi.
Lagbhag 10 minute baad, mujhe aise laga ki mera land khadne
wala hai. Ghar me hone ke karan main jor jor se gaaliya bhi nahi
de sakta tha, aur na hi Didi cheekh sakti thi. Fir bhi jitna mumkin
tha, ho raha tha.
Me –“Didi, main aa raha hu ab. AAah aaah.”
Didi –“Mera bhi chhutne hi wala hai bas gati banaye rakh.”
Main usi tezzi se pelta raha aur Didi ke boor me apna sara muth
udhel diya. Didi ne bhi takiye ko jor se pakad liye, aur jhad gayi.
Pahle round ka khel ho chuka tha. Didi aur Main dono qualify ho
chuke the, second round me jane ke liye. Ab second round raat ko
hi hoga.
Udhar Priya kaafi der se kamre me akeli thi. Priya soch rahi thi ki
Didi aj Bhaiya ke room me itni der se kya kar rahi hai. Usne
socha ki jaakar dekhti hoon, use andaaz hua ki koi na koi khichdi
to ban rahi hai dono ke bich, khichdi ka taste to ban-ne ke baad
pata chalega. jab tak Khichdi banti hai...
Pammi Didi –“Saurav, Iss bar bhi tune mujhe apna muth nahi
chakhaya, Chal koi baat nahi, jaldi se kamra thik kar le, kahi koi
aa gaya to, aur agli baar se dhire chodna samjha.”
Didi uthi aur ek gande kapde se farsh par gire khoon ki bundo ko
saaf kiya, aur bathroom jakar khud ko bhi saaf kar liye. Didi
bathroom se nikal kar mere paas aayi, aur bistar par baith gayi.
Didi –“Kya re, itni jor se kyu daala tha. Faad di meri bbor puri
tarah se.”
Me –“Kya karta Didi, aj se pahle kabhi kisi ki seal nahi todi hai na
to pata hi nahi chala ki kitni tezi se shot marna hai.”
Didi –“Thik hai, par agle baar se dhyan rakhna, dard to ho raha
hai abhi bhi, 2-4 rahega abhi lagta hai.”
Me –“Chalo koi baat nahi, Didi. Ab tum apne room me jao, nahi to
Priya ko shak ho jayega, fir chudai ka inam thukai milega dono ko.”
Didi –“Ha ha ha ha!! Ok, chal See u again, at 12.”
Me –“Again, fir se raat ko. Didi Priya ko pata chal jayega aise to.”
Didi –“Are tu chinta mat kar, main use bahar se band kar dungi.
Fir wo aram se andar soti rahegi.”
Bahar jane ke liye Didi ne jaise hi mere room ka darwaja khola to
dheka Priya bahar khadi thi. Hum dono sakpaka gaye ki kahi Priya
ne hamari baate sun to nahi li hai na.
Didi –“Are tu kab aayi, aur knock kyu nahi kiya aakar????”
Priya –“Abhi to aayi hu, knock karne hi wali thi ki aapne darwaja
khol diya. Ap aj bhaiya se itni friendly kyu ho rahi hai, kya plan
ban raha hai aap dono ka. Mujhe pata hai, kuch na kuch program
to ban hi raha hai.”
Tabhi, Maa kitchen se bahar aati hai hall me. Maa ke haath me
roti ki hotpot thi. Shayad wo rotiya dining table par rakhne ja rhi thi.
Maa –“Are, teeno yaha aram se gapp mar rahe hai, aur, padhai
kaun karega????? hummm....”
Priya –“Hey Mamma, we were just Xossiping a bit!!!!!”
Maa –“Chalo sabhi ab hath-muh dho lo jaldi se, khana lagane ja
rahi hu main. Papa bhi aa chuke hai, kuch kaam kar rahe hai
laptop par.”
Me –“Are baap re, Papa kab aaye? Thanks XB, sidhe mere room
me nahi aaye, warna aaj to laude lagne pakke the.”
Didi –“Chalo koi baat nahi, Ab fresh ho jao.”
Me –“Kya har par koi baat nahi, koi baat nahi, laga rakha hai.
Lapataganj2 ke Lala samjhe ho kya khud ko????”
Didi –“Chalo koi baat nahi, hi hi hi hi hi!!!!!!!!!! Chal jaldi kar ab,
table par aa.”
Main bathroom gaya, jor ki mutwass lagi thi, mutkar halka hua,
hath pair dhoye, aur tauliye se pochte hue bahar aaya hall me.
Sabhi Dining table par mera intezar kar rahe the. Are, saare ke
saare Flash ban gaye hai kya?? Itne tezz?? Kahi Didi ko chod kar
meri battery to down nahi ho gayi hai?? Are yar, main bhi kya
kya logic lagata rahta hu. Insano me battery kaha hoti hai. Par ek
din aisa aayega, jab insan bhi battery se hi chalenge. Khair chalo
koi baat nahi....
Maa –“Aao khana khao, ya wahi khada khada sochta rahega, pata
nahi din bhar kya sochta rahta hai.”
Papa –“Aa jao beta, bekar ka tujhe sab sunate rahti hai. Aa jao ab.”
Maine wallclock ki orr dekha, 10 baj chuke the, isliye sabhi bol
rahe the ki der ho gayi hai, Didi ki seal todne me kuch jyada hi
samay lag gaya. Maine socha tha ki 8 baj rahe honge, lekin 2 baj
chuke hai, matlab humne kaafi lambi chudai ki hai. Isliye thakavat
bhi bahut ho rahi hai.
Ab khakar sounga yaar, sounga kha yaar, Didi ne to bola hai ki
raat ko bhi Balam-Pichkari khelegi. Uffff, meri pichkari kuch
jyada hi rang chhod rahi hai aj kal. Udhar Pooja Didi ki gand nahi
mil rahi hai, aur Didi risk par risk leti ja rahi hai. Kahi pakde
gaye to bas ho jayega bella-faad(a game played with tops, rural
boys will familiar with it ) gand ka to.
Didi –“Ab aaoge bhi khane ki wahi gadhi dekhte raat bhar khada rahoge.”
Me –“Hmm, aaya.” Fir hum sabne khana khaya, aur sone ke liye
apne apne kamre me chale gaye. Main dekh raha tha ki Pammi
Didi Priya ko kaise sulati hai. Agar Pammi Didi ko ‘Balam-
Pichkari’ khelni hai to Priya ko sulana hi hoga, Mere man me ab
bhi ye daar tha ki kahi Priya ne hamari baat sun to nahi liya hai.
Main isliye aashwast ho jana chahta tha. Maa kitchen ke saare
bache kamo ko niptane me jutt gayi. Main Pammi Didi aur Priya
ke kamre me gaya, dekha dono khit pit kar rahi hai kisi baat par.
Me –“Kya ho gaya, ab kis baat par.”
Didi –“Are kuch nahi, bol rahi hai, aaj rat bhar nahi soyegi, padhai
karni hai.”
Mera shak aur bhi prabal hota gaya. Pakka Priya ne kuch na kuch
to suna hai. Maine man bana liya ki agar Priya ne kuch nahi kaha
to thik hai. Agar kuch puchha to bol denge ki movie dekhe rahe
the, tune wahi awaz suni hogi, aur movie me to kuch bhi dialogues
hote hai, jinka satya se koi lena dena nahi hota.
Me –“Rat bhar jagogi to tabiyat bigad jayegi, so jao, subah uth
jana, fir padhai kar lena.”
Didi ne Priya ke doodh(milk glass not choochi) me nind ki ek goli
mila di, aur Priya ko pila diya. Ab Priya to rat bhar sone wali thi,
maine Didi se ke kano me kaha –“Didi, to aj raat to tumko dono
taraf se baja dunga. Puri raat bhar ke liye tum aaj meri ho.”
Didi –“Main to hamesa ke liye teri hi hoon, Priya ko to sula diya
hai, ab Maa aur Papa ka kya kare.”
Me –“Unki chinta mat karo, wo log khud busy rahenge, agar jage
bhi rahe to wo kamre se bahar aane wale nahi hai, aaj ka khana
accha tha, to kuch to asar hoga raat ko.”
Didi –“Badmash, Maa Papa ko to chhod de re.”
Me –“Didi, tum bahut acchi ho, ab mujhe chodne ke liye Bipin ke
ghar bhi nahi jana padega, ab to apne ghar me hi meri randi didi
ready hai. Jab time milega chod liye.”
Didi –“Aur chod chod ke rula diya, Kyu?? hai na??”
Me –“Didi, sorry to bola na, ab kitni baar bologi, sach much pata hi
nahi chala tha ki itni jor ki fat jayegi tumhari. Ab to thik ho gaya na.”
Didi –“Nahi thik hui hai, abhi bhi dard hai, lekin, jsi tarah loha lohe
ko kat-ta hai, usi tarah dard bhi dard ko kat-ta hai.”
Me –“Hmmm, bada na, band karo apni philosophy.Aur, jakar dekho
Priya soyi ya nahi. Pata nahi Maa ko aur kitna time lagega kitchen
ka sara kam niptane me. Tu ja sone ka natak kar, aur jab sab so
jaye to mere kamre me aa jana, main darwaja khula hi rakhunga.
Chupke se aa jana.”
Main apne kamre me aakar so gaya. Aur, didi bhi apne kamre me
chali gayi....
Update 12
Didi ne kamre me jakar dekha to Priya gahri nind me so rahi thi.
Main apne kamre me bade hi besabri se Didi ka intezar kar raha
tha. Aur, idhar Maa ab bhi kitchen me kaam kar rahi thi. Waqt to
mano kate nahi kaat raha tha. Ghadi ki tick tick ke awaz mano
meri chhati par moong daal rahe the. Haramkhor ye ghadi itna
shor kyu macha raha hai, sayad madarchod mujh par haas raha
hai. Main gadhi ke orr ek-tak taake ja raha tha, ki kab ye
madarchod 12 ka alarm bajaye. Aur, Didi mere baho me aakar
shama jaye. Raat ka aalam aur Pammi Didi ka sath, wo bhi pure raat.
Suhag-subah Pooja Didi ke saath mana chuka tha, Suhag-sham
bhi Pammi Didi ke naam kar chuka tha. Aaaj pahli baar ratri
sambhog karne ka mauka mila tha, Wo bhi ekaant me, bina koi rok
tok, naa koi adchan. Bas der thi to ess baat ki kab ye bahanchod
gadhi 12 bajaye. Main man hi man soche ja raha tha aur khud se
hi baate kiye ja raha tha. Aankho me nind kaha aane wali thi, 21
ki jawaan ladki meri aaj ko raat rangeen banane wali thi,aur wo
ladki agar apni Didi ho to kya kahne!!!! Aise duskar samay me kis
kambakht ko nind aa sakti hai. Har bhai ka yahi sapna hota hai ki
uski Didi uski raat ki raani ban jaaye, aur agar wo khud se uske
kamre me aaye to, matlab purn roop se swachhand sambhog ki
prapti nischit hai, jo ess dharaa par ek matra moksha ka marg hai.
Pammi Didi ki intezar ki ye gadhi bahut hi kastkari ho rahi thi,
lekin Didi ki virah ki agni se mere land ki jwala aur bhi prajwalit
ho uthti thi, kisi bhi tarah se ess waqt ko paar karna hi tha. Iss
muskil gadhi me mera ek matra saathi tha, maine apne uss saathi
ko yaad kiya, aur computer on karke ‘Xossip.com’ par logon kiya.
Ab intezar tha ki bas ab 12 baje aur, Didi mere kamre me aaye.
Main man hi man Maa ko bhi gaali diye ja raha tha, ki wo itne der
tak kitchen me kaar kya rahi hai. Waqt kaatna mano nark katne
ke barabar ho raha tha. Ab karu bhi to kya karu. Ye chinal gadhi
to saali aage badh hi nahi rahi hai. Main apne bistar par aakar let
gaya, aur fir gadhi ko niharne laga. Kuch bhi kaho yaar intezar ka
maza bhi alag hi hota hai. Main apne kamre se bahar nikal kar hall
me aakar baith gaya, kitchen me jhank kar dekha to Maa andar
bartan saaf kar rahi thi. Mera dhyan ghumte ghumte Maa ki gand
par jakar atak gayi, Maa ki gand me tarbuzz hi tarah gol gol dikh
rahi thi, Maan me aaya ki Maa ki gand ka footaball bana kar goal
maar doon. Main ab Maa ki gand marne ki sochne laga, mera hath
khud ba khud land ke upar chala gaya, main dhire dhire land ko
pant ke upar se hi masalne laga. Ab mera soya land me bhadakne
laga tha. Maa ke gand ka jadoo chalne laga tha mere HD (Harley-
Davidson) par. Ghaan ghaan karke mere land ka engine start ho
chuka tha, der thi to bas Didi ki aane ki. Didi ki aate hi 5th gear
par daal dena tha apne HD ko, aur Didi ko highway ki shair par le
chalta. Maa ki labalab hilte gand ne apna jadoo to chala diya tha,
par sirf mujh par nahi, mere Papa par bhi. Achanak Papa bhi apne
room se hall me nikal aaye.
Papa –“Tum yaha kya kar rahe ho, TV bhi on nahi hai, to kar kya
rahe ho.”
Me –“Papa, nind nahi aa rahi hai. Kya karta room me mann bhi
nahi lag raha hai. Aur, aaj Didi aur Priya bhi itni jaldi so chuki hai.”
Papa –“Chalo koi baat nahi, Tum jakar so jao, main dekhta hoon
teri Maa kya khajana dhoond rahi hai kitchne me.”
Me –“Kya Papa, aap bhi LALA ban gaye.”
Papa –“Tum sabhi bolte rahte ho, sun sun kar mere muh se bhi
nikal gaya.”
Main room me chala gaya, aur darwaje ke pichhe se chhup kar
Papa ko dekhne laga ki Papa kya karenge Maa ke saath. Papa
kitchen me gaye aur Maa ko pichhe se pakad liya, aur Maa ki gand
me land ragadne lage jhuk kar.
Maa –“Kya karte ho, koi dekh lega na, chalo 2 minute me aati hoon.”
Papa –“Hay meri Shweta rani, bardast kaha ho raha hai ab, aur tu
yaha maa chudwa rahi hai kitchen me. Aaja kamre me tere maa ki
chudai to mast karunga aaj.”
Papa Maa se maa ki maa yani nani ki chudai ki baat kar rahe the,
matlab Papa Maa ki maa ko chodne ki fantasy rakhte hai.
Maa –“Meri maa ki boor ka to bhosda bana diya hai aapne, ab kya
chodenge. Aaj meri maa aapse nahi chudegi, samjhe.”
Papa –“Teri maa aage se chudne ko taiyar nahi to, aaj pichhe se
maaar leta hoon uski.”
Maa –“Aaj meri maa na boor degi na gand, aaj aap apni maa ko
chodiye, samjhe.”
Main Maa aur Papa ki aisi nasty(gandi) vartalaap se aur bhi
uttejit ho gaya. Apne Papa ko apne maa aur saas ke bare me
baate karte sun main OOC ho gaya(out of control). Ab kar bhi kya
sakta tha, abhi muth marta to, Didi ko kaise chodta, ghanta mere
pass land hi hai, mastram ki kitaab ka Paltu to main hu nahi jiska
land nal jaise bahta rahta hai, Lekin ye bahan ki laudi gadhi
chalne ka naam hi nahi le rahi hai. Maa ke laude, ab pakaude
khakar chalega kya aage.
Papa –“Chal na kamre me jaldi, bachhe bhi sare so gaye hai, aur
meri maa kamre me chudne ko taiyar baithi hai, bolti hai bahu ke
samne chudungi.”
Maa –“Jao bas 2 minute, chhodo ab, Sourav jaag hi raha hai abhi.”
Papa –“Wo madarchod to khub teri gand dekh dekh kar land ghis
raha tha. Dant kar room me bhagaya hai abhi. Mauka milte hi teri
gand ka “nau nava chhihattar” bana dega, samjhi(9x9=76).”
Fir Maa aur Papa hasne lage, Papa apne kamre me chale gaye.
Main unki inn bato se achambhit ho gaya tha, ki Maa aur Papa ko
pata hai ki main Maa ki gand dekhta hoon, aur unhe iss baat se koi
aitraaz nahi hai. Shyad dono itne khush isliye rahte hai, kyuki
dono bistar par har tarh ke masti khul kar karte hai. Aur, main
itna bada madarchod, bahanchod isliye hoon, kyuki ye mere khoon
me hai. Mere Papa bhi madarchod hai, aur ab main bhi madarchod
banunga. Lekin, ye gadhi bhi kuch kam madarchod nahi hai, bhosdi
wali itni slow kyu chal rahi hai. Maine gadhi ki aur dekh kar kaha
–“Teri Maa ki gand me lauda daal kar barah(12) baja dunga
madarbhagat, apni maa ki gand bachani hai to saali jaldi 12 baja,
nahi to karke uski tange chaude, de dunga uske gand me laude.”
Itni muskil se abhi tak sirf ek ghanta hi paar hua tha, abhi bhi 30
minutes baki tha. Aur, mere land ki haalat kharab thi, Didi ki
intezar me mere land ne kuch bund aashu bahaye, mere chaddi ne
mere land ke aanshu poch kar santvana diya. Main bhi apne land
ko samjha hi raha tha ki bas beta 30 minute sabr kar fir to
Suhag-raat suru hone hi wali hai. Mera land Maa aur Papa ke
baato se bahak chuka tha. Maa ne sare kaam niptaya aur apne
kamre me jakar darwaja band kar liya. Maine socha ki kyu na
darwaje ke samne jakar andar ki kuch baate suni jaye. Ya fir
khidki se jhaka jaye. Sath hi sath dar bhi lag raha tha ki kahi Maa
ya Papa ne dekh liye to khatiya khadi kar denge meri. Aise unko
pata to hai ki main Maa ki gand dekhta hu. Par, agar pakda gaya
red-handed to fir khair nahi.
12 bajne me abhi bhi 25 minute baki the. Maine socha kyu na, aaj
‘Maa ki Chudai’ live dekhi jaye, socha to kitni hi baar hai, sapne
me Maa ko choda bhi hai kai baar, lekin aankho ke samne Maa ki
chudai hote dekhne ki baat soch kar rom rom romanchit ho utha.
Main paani pine ke bahane kitchen ke paas chala gaya, dekha to
Maa ke kamre ka darwaja band tha, khidki ke paas gaya, dekha
khidki khuli thi, maine khidki ke ek palle ko dhire se dhakela.
Andar ka nazara dekh kar main achambhit ho gaya, aur wahi
freeze hokar khada ho gaya, jo ho raha tha hota raha, aur main
khada dekhta raha.
Main Khidki ke paas khada tha aur Maa-Papa ke room me jhank
raha tha, 12 bajne me bache 25 minutes to ab katt hi jayenge
lagta hai.
Maine khidki se andar jhanka to dekha ki maa nahane ke baad
sirf saaya (petticoat) aur bra pahankar bathroom se bahar nikli.
Iske baad maa moisturisor ki bottle lekar bed ke kinare ek chadar
daal kar let gai aur moisturiser lagane lagi apne hatho aur pairo
par. Achanak maine dekha ki Papa apne kapde utarne suru kar
diye hai. Papa puri tarah nange ho gaye to Maa ke bagal me jakar
let gaye. Aur Maa ke hath me apna land pakda diya.
Maa –“Aaj to aapka pura tanka hua hai, bahut bada lag raha hai,
nahi le paungi itna mota main.”
Papa –“Kuch nahi hoga. Aram se le logi. Hamesa leti ho na aram
se, to aaj aisa kya special ho gay hai.”
Maa –“Nahi, aj kuch jyada hi lamba lag raha hai, rozz itna nahi
lagta hai, mota bhi jyada lag raha hai.”
Papa –“Are kuch nahi, Saurav tumhari gand dekh dekh kar land
masal raha tha, ye dekh kar mera kuch jyda hi tanak gaya hai.”
Maa –“Tanak gaya tha to mujhko chodne bolte na, meri maa ko
kyu chodna chah rahe the. Ab meri maa to nahi chudegi, aaj aapki
maa ko chodiye.”
Papa –“Haa, chalo tum aaj meri Maa ka role play karo, main
tumhari gand marunga.”
Maa Papa se boli–“Beta Kailash, apni maa ko chodega beta????”
Maa ab Dadi ka role play kar rahi thi, aur Papa apni Maa ko
chodne wale the. Maine socha Papa to bade wale madarchod hai
yaar. Maa bhi har baat par Papa ka sath de rahi thi. Dono apne
rati krida me masgul the, aur, mera land jhukno ko taiyar nahi
tha, kya karta ab main.
Maine dekha, Papa ka land bahut bada tha, lagbhag 9” lamba aur
4” mota lag raha tha, jaise gadhe ke land ho. Main sochne laga ki
aaj to Maa ki gand fat hi jayegi itna mota land kya Maa gand me
le payegi. Papa roz raat Maa ki gand marte the. Maa bhi alag alag
role play karti hogi daily. Aaj Maa Papa ke Maa ke role me thi,
jiske karan Papa pure josh me the. Aur, unka land apne charam
tak lamba aur mota ho chuka tha. Yaha tak ki Maa ko bhi dar lag
raha tha aaj, ki kahi unki chaudi gand na fat jaye.
Papa –“Maa, aaj apki gand marne ki ichha ho rahi hai, Maa.”
Maa –“Beta, boor maar de aaj, gand me kya rakha hai, mujhe to
mazaa aayega nahi beta.”
Papa –“Maa, aapki gand dekh dekh kar mera land thanthana gaya
hai Maa, ab palat jao na Maa. Aapki gand ka ched dikhao na
betachod Maa.”
Maa palat nahi rahi thi. Papa ne Maa ko jabardasti ulta kar diya,
Maa nahi nahi kar rahi thi, lekin Papa sun ne wale nahi the. Ab
Maa ki gand ki ched saaf saaf dikhai de rahi thi. Maa pet ke bal
jameen par ulti leti thi. Papa Maa ke pairo ke bich baith gaye aur
Maa ke gand ko failate huye gand ke ched me ungli daalna suru
kiya. Ungli bahut tight ja rahi thi. Lagta hai Maa ne kai dino se
gand nahi marwai thi.
Papa –“Maa, aaj to apki gand bahut tight lag rahi hai. Aur mera
land bhi aaj lamba ho gaya hai, to aaj to aapki gand gayi kaam se.”
Maa –“Kailash, aram se marna apni maa ki gand, pahle koi cream
laga ke soft kar le meri gand ke ched ko, nahi to aaj fatt hi
jayegi. Aur, kal main hagg bhi nahi paungi bete.”
Papa –“Kuch nahi hoga Maa, aapke jaise randi bhi royegi to duniya
se gand marne ka prachalan hi samapt ho jayega.”
Maa –“Beta, tel laga kar chod na apni maa ki gand.”
Papa pas me pade moisturiser ki bottle utayi aur apne hatheli par
dhel sara cream nikal liya, aur Maa ke gand me udel diya. Papa
maa ki gand ke ched ki maalis karne lage aur use chodne ke liya
taiyar karne lage. Maa bhi gand utha utha kar cream lagwa rahi
thi. Papa Maa ke pusht nitambo (gand ke dono hisse, gol gol
pawroti jaise, aardh golakar, hemispheres) ki bhi maalis kiye ja
rahe the.
Papa –“Maa, taiyar ho apne bete se gand marwane ke liye, ab to
tumhari bhuri bhuri gand ke ched ko soft bhi kar diya hai. Ab daal
du kya teri gand me maa.”
Maa –“Beta, tumhari maa ki gand sirf tumhari hai, jaise chodne ki
ichha ho chod lo, beta tum ek number ke madarchod bete ho.”
Papa –“Ha maa main madarchod hu, aur galiyaa do na maa. Mujhe
maza aata hai jab aap gandi gandi gaaliya deti ho.”
Maa ke gand ki maalis karne ke baad Papa ne apne land par bhi
kuch cream lagaya. Jaise hi maine Papa ke land ko dekha to mujhe
laga ki aaj to Maa ki gand fatne wali hai. Maa ke gand me cream
lagane ke baad Papa ne apne land ko Maa ke gand me jaise hi
sataya Maa ne apne dono hatho se gand ko faila diya. Ab Papa ne
Maa ke gand me land sata ke jor ka dhakka mara. Maa jor se
sisiyai, aur gardan utha kar pichhe dekhne lagi. Maine dekha ki
Papa ka land Maa ki gand me ghus gaya tha. Maa kaap uthi aur
unke muh se awaj nikal padi aahh?. Dhire Dhire Dhire Dhire.
Maa –“Kailash, fad di tune apni maa ki gand, beta dhire chodo,
main tumhari maa hu madarchod.”
Papa –“Ha maa, main sabse bada madarchod hu, aaj aapki gand
me land daal kar manthan karunga.”
Papa Maa ke upar let gaye aur Maa ke gand me apne land ko aur
andar thelne ki kosis karne lage. Papa ne ab dhire dhire dhakke
lagane suru kar diye the. Papa har 5-6 halke halke dhakko ke
baad ek jor ke dhakka marte the. Maa ke muh se aaaahh aaaa
auuuuuuu aaaaahhhhhhh ki awaz nikal rahi thi. Lagbhad 5 minute
ke baad maine jab dhyan se dekha to paaya ki Maa ki gand me
Papa ka pura 9” ka land chala gaya hai. Maa dhire dhire chilla
rahi thi. Aur, galiya bhi deti ja rahi thi. Papa ka land Maa ki gand
me puri tarah atak chuka tha. Ab sirf shata shat dhakko ki
jarurat thi. Maine socha kal to Maa chal bhi nahi payegi. Maa ke
aankho se aanshu nikal rahe the.
Papa –“Ro kyu rahi ho maa, maza nahi aa raha hai kya, apne bete
ka land gand me lene me.”
Maa –“Aaah beta, tune to meri gand ke tanke hi khol diye, jara
dhire chodna beta, nahi to kal kya chodega beta.”
Papa –“Chinta mat karo maa, kal tum chudne layak bhi nahi
rahogi, kal main apni biwi ya uski maa ki gand marunga maa.”
Maa –“Beta, harami ho tum beta, apni maa to chodte hi ho saath
saath apni saas ko bhi chodte ho.”
Papa –“Maa main harami hu ya nahi ye to aap hi bata sakti hai, ki
aapne mujhe paisa karne ke liye kitno ke laude liye hai.”
Maa –“Hatt re maiyachod, yaad bhi nahi hai kitno ki paidaish hai
tu beta, uss samay main bahut badi randi thi, har roz 4-5 land
liya karti thi.”
Maa ki gandi gandi baato ka Papa par bura asar ho raha tha. Papa
ko apne maa ke bare me aur gandi baate sun-na accha lagta tha.
Itne garam chudai ko dekh kar mere bhi bura haal tha, 12 bajne hi
wala tha, lekin main waha se puri chudai dekhe bina hatne wala
nahi tha. Ab Maa dhire dhire chilla rahi thi. Aur, Papa dhakke par
dhakke lagayeja rahe the, unki chudai ka khel kuch der tak yunhi
chalti rahi. Maa aur Papa dono pasine se sarabor ho chuke the.
Papa jor jor se Maa ki gand mare ja rahe the. Maa bhi gand utha
utha kar Papa ka land le rahi thi. 12 baj chuke the, maine gadhi
ki orr dekha, aur fir usko galiya di. Madarchod pahle dhire chal
raha tha, ab maza aa raha hai to fa se 12 baja diya. Ab Didi mere
kamre me aane wali thi, lekin main aisi chudai chhod kar kaise ja
sakta tha. Maine aage bhi dekhne ka faisle kiya. Papa Maa ki
gand mar chat chat chapat lagye ja rahe the. Maa dhire dhire
chilla rahi thi, har dhakke par Maa ke muh se siskiya nikal jati thi.
Maa –“Aur jor se chodo beta, fad do apni maa ki gand. Aaaah
madaarchod bete mere, maa ki gand marne me maza aata hai tujhe??”
Papa –“Aaah maa, aaah, bahut mast hai aappki gand, randi maa
meri, lo apne bete ka land gand me, kutiya saali randi maa, kitne
se land liye hai tune maa, bata na maa, mere paida hone me kitno
ka hath hai.”
Maa –“Pata nahi beta, randi ke bete, tu kiska khoon hai pata bhi
nahi mujhe, 6-6 laude leti thi tab main rozana, jo mil gaya usi ko
de deti thi apni bhatti roti sekne ko....”
Papa –“haa Maa tu bahut chudasi maa hai meri, aaaha ahahha,
mera muth nikalne wala hai maa. aaha ahahah”
Maa –“Ha beta, daal do apni maa ke gand me apna saara ras.”
Papa ne jor jor se 10-12 jor jhatke diye, aur apna saara maal Maa
ki gand me bhar diya. Ab dono shant ho gaye the main samajh
gaya ki Maa ke gand me Papa ne bhar diya hai. Papa 2-3 minute
tak Maa ke upar lete rahe aur unhe sahlate rahe. Fir uthkar apne
land ko Maa ke gand se nikala aur bathroom ki orr chale gaye.
Main niche baith gaya ki kahi Papa mujhe dekh na le. Maa kuch
der usi tarah leti rahi. Jab papa bathroom se wapas aaye to Maa
uthi aur bathroom me ghus gayi. Aisi chudai dekh kar main
jwalamukhi sa garam ho chuka tha. Mera lava kafi bhi fut sakta
tha. Maine socha, itni jaldi to ye chudai khtm ho nahi sakti hai,
dusra round bhi jarur hoga. Maine socha ki yahi rahte hai, dekhte
hai ki aage kya hota hai. Lekin udhar Pammi Didi bhi aane hi wali hogi.
Update 13
Main wahi khidki par khade hokar agli chudai ki pratiksha karne
laga. Maine waha se hilna bhi nahi chahta tha.
Idhar, Pammi Didi mere kamre me aane ki taiyari kar rahi thi.
Pammi ne dekha ki Priya aram se so rahi hai. Pammi utthi aur
apne bistar par do takiye rakh kar chadar se dhak diya. Fir,
Pammi ne dhire se darwaja khola aur bahar aakar, bahar se apne
kamre ko band kar diya, taki Priya agar jaag bhi jaye to bahar na
aa paye.
Pammi dhire dhire Sourav ke kamre ki taraf jati hai. Jakar dekhti
hai ki darwaja khula hua tha, wo andar aa jati hai aur, jaldi se
darwaje ko band kar leti hai, jab Pammi picchhe palat kar dekhti
hai to mera bistar khali tha. Pammi sochti hai ki shayad Sourav
bathroom me hoga. Wo badh kar bathroom ke darwaja ko dhakka
dekar check karti hai, lekin bathroom ka darwaja bhi khula hua tha.
Pammi ne socha ki badmash bina darwaja band kiye hi mutne gaya
hoga, lekin bathroom ke andar se to koi awaz nahi aa rahi thi.
Pammi ne socha ki kyu na Sourav ko mut-te hue pichhe se pakda
jaye. Iss vichar se khush hokar wo bathroom me pravesh hui, lekin
bathroom bhi khali tha. Pammi ko samjh me nahi aa raha tha ki ye
kya ho raha hai.
12 baje ka time dekar Sourav khud farar hai, ye kaise ho sakta
hai. Pammi ne socha ki shayad Sourav paani lane kitchen me gaya
ho, lekin Computer Table par paani ki bottle bhari hui rakhi thi, to
fir paani lane bhi nahi gaya hoga. Pammi Didi ne mere kamre ka
darwaja khola aur guest room me check karne gayi.
Lekin guest room ka darwaja to bahar se hi band tha, to mere
andar hone ka sawal hi nahi tha. Didi sochne lagi ki, ye pakka ya
to kitchen me biscuit churane gaya hai ya kahi bahar nikal gaya
hai ghar se. Lekin itni raat ko wo bahar kyu jayega. Kahi Sourav
Maa ke kamre me to nahi hai, ho sakta hai, Maa ne bulaya ho, lekin
12 baje raat ko, jarur kuch na gadbad hai, kahi Sourav aur Papa
ek saath to Maa ki chudai to nahi karte.
Shayad isliye Sourav Maa ki gand ko dekhte rahta hai, aur Maa
bhi kabhi mana nahi karti. Pammi ne socha kyu na chal kar dekha
jaye khidki ke fank se. Pammi hall se hoti hui Maa ke kamre ki
aur jati hai. Aur, mujhe waha khada dekh chaunk jati hai. Didi
dhire dhire dabe paav mere paas aati hai aur mujhe pichhe se
jakad leti hai.
Aise kisi ke pakadne se main dar jata hu, aur hadbada kar pichhe
bhag jata ho. Maine dekha ki wo Pammi Didi thi. Maine didi ko
ishara kiya ki chup rahe. Didi ne bhi kuch nahi kaha. Par Didi ko
samjh me kuch nahi aa raha tha. Maine Pammi Didi ka hath pakda
aur khichte hue apne kamre me le gaya. Aur apna darwaja band
kar liye.
Didi –“Are kya hua, tu waha kya kar raha tha. Mujhe 12 ka time
dekar waha kya dekh raha tha.”
Me –“Didi, kya khatarnak chudai chal rahi thi yaar Maa aur Papa
ki, kya batau yar....”
Didi –“Tune dekha kya.... Bata kya dekha tune, aur Papa ne maa
ko kaise choda ,, bata na .”
Me –“Dhire bol, maa bathroom me hai, mere kamre ke bathroom se
kahi awaz udhar chali gayi to, maa aa jayegi yaha aur apni
suhagraat ki laude lag jayenge.”
Didi –“Main bhi bahut muskil se rah paayi abhi tak, sham ki chudai
ke baad to aur chudne ka man kar raha hai.”
Me –“Koi baat nahi, lekin, Maa ki chudai agar tu dekh leti to wahi
tera boor panni chhod deta.”
Didi –“Aisa kya, itna mast chudai ho rahi thi kya.”
Me –“Are pucchho mat ab tum, chal kar dekhte hai, chal na.”
Didi –“Kahi Maa ne dekh liye to, akele pakde jao to koi baat nahi,
2-4 thappad padegi, lekin dono bhai bahan pakde gaye to acche se
padegi, samjhe. main nahi jane wali.”
Me –“Chal na, 5 minute dekh kar aa jayenge, fir teri mast chudai karunga....”
Didi –“Chudai to tum aise bhi karoge, kuch special doge to jaungi.”
Me –“Kya special chahiye tujhe, apna land to already de diya hai,
ab kya du. Kuch aur chahiye to bol tuhi.”
Didi –“Ha chahiye to, lekin tu promise kar tu dega hi.”
Me –“Dunga baba , dunga tu mang to sahi pahle.”
Didi –“Mujhe tera land apni gand me chahiye. Dega kya tu mujhe??”
Me –“Are Didi, mangna to mujhe chahiye tumse tumhari gand,
tum khud mang rahi hai to main kyu mana karunga. Tum jab
chahe apni gand marwa sakti ho mujhse, main mana nahi karunga,
Pinki Promise.”
Main aur Didi dono Maa ke kamre ke bahar khidki ke pas
khade hokar kamre me jhakne lage. Maa bathroom se
bahar aayi. Maa puri tarah se nangi thi, Didi bhi ek tak
dekhe ja rahi thi, Main Didi ke pichhe khada ho gaya
aur dono andar dekhne lage. Maa Papa ke paas aa gayi
aur, Papa ka land apne hath me le liya, Papa ka land
jhadne ke baad sikud gaya tha, Maa ne Papa ke land ko
hath me lekar hilana suru kiya. Maa ke hath me aate hi
Papa ka land fir se khada hone laga. Maa Papa ke land
ko dekh kar muskura rahi thi, Papa ka land dekh kar
Didi pagla gayi thi.
Didi –“Bhai, Papa ka land to bahut lamba aur mota hai.
10” lamba lag raha hai aur mota 4” hoga.”
Me –“Ha Didi, mere to bas 6” ka hai, Papa madarjaat
hai na isliye, aur main muskuraya.”
Andar Maa aur Papa chudai me lage the, aur kamre ke
bahar main aur Didi garam ho rahe the. Hum dono bhi
dhire dhire khusfus baate kar rahe the. Fan on hone ke
kaaran hamari baate Maa aur Papa nahi sun sakte the.
Lekin main baar baar didi ko chup rahne ka ishara de
raha tha. Papa ka land fir se tanakne laga tha, idhar
mera land bhi Didi ki gand ke fanko me set ho gaya
tha. Hum dono dekh rahe the aur garmi badhti ja rahi
thi. Maa ne Papa ke land ko muh me lekar chusna suru kar diya.
Mera land bhi Didi ki gand ki garmi se khada ho gaya,
Didi ne pichhe dekh kar muskuraya. Mera land Didi ke
gand me chubh raha tha, aur Didi ko bhi maza aa raha
tha. Didi bhi pichhe dhakka de rahi thi apne gand se aur
mera land Didi ki naram sponge jaise gand ke daraar
me ragad khane laga. Didi to aage chal rahi chudai me
mast thi, aur main to double maza le raha tha. Samne
Maa-Papa ke chudai ka khel chal raha tha, aur idhar
mera land Didi ki gand ke fank me atka tha. Aisa maza
pahle kabhi nahi aaya tha.
Maa aur Papa bhi baat kar rahe the aur asli chudai bhi
suru hone hi wali thi.
Maa –“Apni maa ki gand maar kar apka land to kuch
jyada hi mota ho gaya hai aaj.”
Papa –“Ha Shweta, ek bar teri maa ki gand bhi dila do darling.”
Maa –“Ji nahi, ek din me ek hi milegi, kal meri maa ki
gand maar lijiyega. Ab ek baar mujhe bhi to chodiye.”
Didi ko kuch samjh me nahi aaya, to mere orr dekhne
lagi. Mano puchh rahi ho ki chal kya raha hai andar.
Maine Didi ki kamar pakad kar unko picche palatne se
roka, aur dhire se unki kano me kaha.
Me –“Chaukne ki jarurat nahi hai, Papa Maa ko Dadi ya
Nani ka role dete hai, aur fir unki gand maarte hai.
Abhi Papa ne Maa ko dadi ka role diya tha, aur unki
gand maari thi. Ab lagta hai Maa ko Nani banakar
chodenge. Bahut bade madarchod hai Papa.”
Didi –“Aah bhai, tune sab dekha tha, sach me bahut
mast chudai hogi wo, main pahle aaati to main bhi dekhti.”
Didi garam ho rahi thi aur apni gand ko mere land par
uchhal rahi thi. Mera land didi ki gand ke ched me lag
raha tha.
Didi –“Aise nahi karo upar se, meri gand nangi karke
ragdo na meri gand me Sourav.”
Maine Didi ki baat sunte hi Didi ke paijama ko niche kar
diya. Didi ne andar Panty bhi nahi pahna tha, Didi
chudne ke liye puri taiyar hokar aayi thi. Didi ki gand
nangi hote hi maine bhi apna zip khol kar land ko bahar
nikal liya, aur Didi ke mast guddedar gand me sata
diya. Didi bhi gand matka matka kar mere land ko apne
gand ke fank me ragadne lagi. Udhar Papa Maa ko Nani
ka role play karne ke liye mana rahe the. Lekin Maa
maan nahi rahi thi.
Papa –“Janu, do na apni maa ki gand mujhe.”
Maa –“Nahi, ek din me yaa to Maa milegi yaa saas, Apni
maa ko to chod chuke aur ab meri maa kal se pahle nahi
mil sakti.”
Papa baar baar vinti kar rahe the, Maa ka dil bhi pighal
gaya aur Maa ab nani ke role ke liye taiyar ho gayi.
Maa –“Accha thik hai, lekin tum gand nahi maroge, abhi
thodi der pahle hi to gand maari thi, iss baar boor chodo na.”
Papa –“Tumhari gand maine kab maari, main to apni
Maa ko chod raha tha, ab tumhari maa ko chodunga,
tumhari gand kaun marega, tumko marwana hai to jao
apne bete ke paas marwane, main apni maa chodta hu,
tum usko uski maa chodne ka mauka do.”
Papa ki baat sun kar Didi bhi puri garam ho chuki thi.
Papa ki yeh baat sun kar mera land bhi jor se fufkar
utha. Aisa scene na maine kabhi socha tha na dekha
tha. Didi ne ek hath pichhe kar liye aur mere land ko
jakad kar muthiyane lagi. Maine didi ka hath jhatak
diya. Kyuki mujhe laga ki kahi mera maal nikal na jaye.
Didi gussa ho gayi. Aur jane lagi, Maine Didi ka hath
pakda aur khich kar khidki par sata diya aur, unki gand
par land bhida diya. Didi ne chhutne ke liye jor lagaya,
par maine jor se pakad rakha tha, isliye chhut na payi.
Main Didi ke gand par apna land ragadta raha aur
andar dekhta raha. Udhar Papa ne Maa ko Nani ke role
ke liye mana liya tha, Papa ne Maa ko doggy pose me
jhuka diya aur Maa ke picche aakar Maa ki gand chatne gaye.
Didi –“Bhai ab Papa Maa ki gand marne wale hai, mauka
bahut accha hai, mujhe bhi tumse gand marwana hai,
jaldi se yahi ek baar meri gand maar do na.”
Me –“Kyu nahi Didi, main bhi to aaj aapki gand marna
chahta tha, isliye kamre me tel bhi rakha hai katore bhi,
yaha to kuch bhi lube nahi hai, aur aapki pahli baar hai
to jayegi nahi.”
Didi –“Lube ki jarurat nahi hai, tum chat kar gili kar do,
dekho Papa bhi Maa ki gand chat rahe hai.”
Me –“Thik hai try karta hoon. Lekin mujhe nahi lagta ki
sirf chatne se jayega andar. Thodi cream ki to jarurat
padegi hi.”
Main jhuk kar Didi ke gand me muh ghusa diya. Didi ki
gand utha utha kar mere muh par maar rahi thi. Didi ki
gand me maine apni jibh daal kar ghumana suru kiya.
Samne chalte Maa-Papa ki chudai aur mere gand
chatne se Didi ko double maza mil raha tha. Wo puri
tarah se chudne ke liye chatpatane lagi. Papa bhi ab
Maa ki gand chat chuke the. Papa Maa ke pichhe khade
hokar Maa ki gand me land daalne lage aur idhar main
Didi ko jhuka kar unke gand me land daalne ki kosis
karne laga.
Papa aur Maa ki chudai mast chal rahi thi. Didi bhi jhuk
kar land lene ke liye taiyar thi. Maine dekha Papa Maa
ke gand ke land daal chuke the. Maine bhi Didi ke gand
par land sata kar ek halka sa dhakka mara. Didi ki gand
itni gili nahi thi ki Land le sake.
Me –“Didi, tumhari gand sukhi hui hai, nahi jayega
andar. Kuch to chiknai lagana hi hoga.”
Didi –“Aise hi sukhi gand maro na meri bhai, suna hai
sukhi gand marwane me jyada maza aata hai.”
Me –“Kya khak maza aata hai, pura fat jayega tera
gand sukhe marwaogi to. Chal bhi nahi sakogi kal pakka.”
Didi –“Mujhe sukhi hi marwani hai, andar nahi ja rahi hai
to thoda thuk laga le na, boor me daalne se pahle to
thuk hi to lagaya tha.”
Me –“Are boor aur gand me fark nahi hai kya?”
Didi –“Mujhe nahi pata, sukhi marna hai to maro, nahi to
main chali.”
Me –“Jaogi to ye Maa ki chudai kaise dekhogi.”
Didi –“Chodo na itna discussion kyu kar rahe ho.”
Maine Didi ko jhukaya, aur Didi ki kamar pakad kar unki
gand me apna supada rakh diya aur jor ke 3-4 dhakke
laga diye. Jaise unki boor fati thi, usi tarah gand bhi
fat gayi. Lekin kisi tarah 3” land Didi ki gand me ghus
gaya tha, Didi kasmasa uthi. Lekin, muh se koi awaz
nahi nikal sakti thi. Dard ke mare Didi thartharane lagi.
Maine Didi ki gand ko sahlate hue 2 aur dhakke laga
diye, 4” land andar ja chuka tha, Didi ab mere giraft se
nikalne ki kosis kar rahi thi. Main Didi ke kamar ko
jakad kar dhana dhan 1-2-3 aur jhatke laga diye, Didi
ke aankho se aanshu tapakne lage, main to bas apna
muth girana chahta tha, bahut der se land paresan tha
maa ki chudai dekh kar, aur aise samay me Didi khud
apni kori gand marwane chali aaye to ye to unki hi galti
hui na. Didi ko apni galti ki saja mil rahi thi.
Maine Didi ke anshuwo ki parwah naa karte hue 2 aur
dhakke laga diye. Didi ka dard kam nahi ho raha tha,
balki aur badhte ja raha tha. Didi ki gand to puri tarah
se fat chuki thi, sukhi gand marwane ki zidd ne Didi ko
aise haalat me la diya tha ki, wo kuch bol bhi nahi sakti
thi. Main bhi kya karta, 2 minute tak main aise hi khada
raha gand me land daale. Fir Didi ki dono chucchhiyo ko
haatho me lekar sahlane laga. Chuchiyo ko sahlane se
Didi ko kuch rahat mili. ab wo apna dard bhul rahi thi,
aur maza le rahi thi. Maine samay na gawate hue dhire
dhire dhakke lagane suru kar diye. Gand sukhi hone ke
karan land aache se fisal nahi rahi thi.
Me –“Bola tha na, bahut dard hoga sukhi gand marwane
me tujhe.”
Didi –“Bahut maza aaya bhai, dard me kuch baat hai.
Rula diya tumne fir se. Bahut gande ho tum.”
Me –“Abhi kaha Didi abhi to puri chudai baki hai.”
Didi ne bhi ab kamar uchhalna suru kar diya tha. Wo bhi
josh me aane lagi thi. Ab unhe dard ka ahsash kam tha,
maine bhi mauke ka fayda uthaya, aur jhuk kar jhatke
marna suru kar diya. Didi dhire dhire sisiyane lagi, gand
itni sukhi thi ki land chalana bhi muskil ho raha tha,
lekin meri randi Didi ka shauk bhi koi kam to nahi tha.
Land bhi jalne laga tha sukhi gand marne me, pata nahi
kis gadhe ya gadhi ne ise ye baat batayi thi. Maine Didi
ke boor se tapak rahe paani ko haath me liya aur apne
land par lagane laga, didi ke boor ke pani se kuch to gili
hui Didi ki gand. Maine land ko bahar nikala aur thuk
diya land par, land ko chikna banaya aur fir se Didi ki
gand me pel diya. Didi ko ab maza aane laga tha, gand
ke fatne ka dard bhul kar wo land ka maza lene lagi thi.
Aaj to maza hi aa gaya, Didi ki kori boor ki seal bhi kholi
sham ko, aur ab Didi ki gori gori kori gand bhi chod
raha hu, Maa ki gand marai bhi dekhne ko mil gaya, aur
kya chaiye tha. Mujhe mano sarvasv mil gaya ho. Lekin
kahte hai na, jab milta hai to chappar faad kar milta
hai. Abhi kuch aur bhi milna baki hi tha. Kya????
Mai Maa ki gand marai dekhte hue sata sat Didi ki gand
maar raha tha, Didi bhi chup chap land kha rahi thi.
Shartiya unhe bhi maza aa raha tha. Udhar Papa bhi
Maa ko saas ke role me uda uda kar chod rahe the. Main
Maa ko chudte hue dekhne laga aur chudai ka double
maza lene laga. Maa ab tarah tarah ki galiya de rahi
thi, aur Papa jor jor se Maa ki gand maar rahe the.
Maa in MIL mode (Mother-in-law)–“aaah, haa, chodo
meri maa ki gand Kailash. Meri randi maa ko tumhare
land ki bahut jarurat hai, Kailash.”
Papa –“Ha, sasu maa, apki gand bahut tight lag rahi hai,
maza aa gaya apki gand maar kar.”
Maa –“Madarchod, apni maa ko bhi chodta hai aur biwi
ki maa ko bhi chodta hai. Biwi ki chudai kyu nahi karta
hai re harami.”
Papa –“Kya bolu sasu maa, meri biwi to ek number ki
randi hai, uski bhari gando ko mere land se aaram hi
nahii milta hai, uski gand ko sukun bas apne bete ke
land se hi mil sakta hai. Lekin darti hai Sali randi ki
bete se kaise chudaye.”
Maa(MIL) –“Ha Shweta ko kitni baar bola hai ki chudwa
le apne bete se, Uska pati jab itna bada madarchod hai
to bete me bhi kuch gun to honge ki. To bolti hai ki uska
to land abhi bahut chhota hoga, meri gand ki khaaj mita
nahi payega…”
Papa –“Nahi, sasu maa mujhe mere bete par pura
bharosa hai, wo pakka apni chudaas maa ki khujli mita
dega puri tarah se. Ek baar apni beti ko mere bete se
chudne to dijiye.”
Maa(MIL) –“Chhod wo sab beta, pahle apni saas ki gand
ko pahle shant kar de tu ab, aaah, madarchod Kailash,
Maa Biwi Saas sabko chodta rahta hai, bata apni beti ko
kab chodega re. Betochod bhi banega na tu.”
Papa –“Haa, maa apni beti ko bhi chodenge jab tum
dilwa dogi. Aahh Pammi, lo apne Papa ka land gand me,
ghap ghap....”
Papa Pammi Didi ka naam le le kar chod rahe the Maa ki
gand, Pammi Didi ye sun kar aur bhi uttejit ho gayi ki
uske Papa use chodna chahte hai. Pammi Didi mere aur
sar ghuma kar mere chehre ko dekhne gayi ki meri
pratikriya kya hai. Lekin, main to apne dhun me Didi ke
gand bajaye ja raha tha, Maine dekha ki Didi jaise kuch
kahna chahti ho. Maine Didi ke pith kar jhuk kar Didi ki
kano me kaha.
Me –“Kya hua meri randi didi, kuch bolna hai kya. Dard
jyada ho raha hai to bolo rok deta hua dhakke lagana.”
Didi –“Nahi, mat roko, ghopte jao mere gand me apna
musal jaisa land. Bhai, tu thik bol raha tha ki Papa bhi
mujhe chodna chahte hai. Dekho Papa mera naam lekar
Maa ki gand chod rahe hai.”
Papa ab apne saas ke bare me bhul kar Pammi Didi ke
naam par Maa ki gand bajane lage. Maa bhi gand utha
utha kar chudwa rahi thi. Papa ne cream ki bottle utha
kar kholi aur apne land par cream ki bunde girane lage,
Papa ka chiknai paar aur tez chalne laga, ab Papa
humach humach kar Maa ki gand maar rahe the.
Maa –“Kailash, apni beti ke naam se to tum bahut
uttejit ho gaye ho. Lagta hai ab Meri gand se jyada
tumhe tumhari beti acchi lagne lagi hai.”
Papa –“Ha Shweta, teri beti hai hi itni mast maal ki
mera land jhumne lagta hai uski gand dekh kar. Kaise
wo apni gand matka matka kar chalti hai puri ghar me.”
Maa –“Aur meri gand par dhyan nahi jata hai kya
tumhara. Sirf apni beti ki gand dekhte raho, idhar apni
Maa aur meri Maa ko chodo. Mera number to kabhi aata
hi nahi hai.”
Papa –“Isliye to bolta hu, chuda le apne bete se, wo bhi
khush ho jayega, Pata nahi usne aaj tak kabhi muth bhi
mari hai na nahi. Teri to lottery lag jayegi Darling.”
Update 14
Papa ke muh se apne bare me baate sunkar main khud
ko rok nahi paaya. Aur, Didi ki kamar ko jor se pakad
kar jhadne laga. Jor jor se do char jhakte lagaye aur
apna sara muth Didi ki gand me bhar diya. Main nidaal
hokar Didi ki pith par gir pada. Kamre ke andar Papa
bhi apni beti Pammi Didi ko chod rahe the, Papa ne
tabadtod dhakke lagaye 2 minute tak aur aur kaanpte
hue Maa ke pith par let gaye. Main samajh gaya ki Papa
ka kaam bhi ho gaya.. Main aise hi 2 minute Didi ki pith
par leta raha. Papa bhi Maa ke pith par lete the. Aisa
to maine kabhi socha bhi nahi tha, lekin aaj bahut maza
aaya sach me. Papa Maa ke upar se uthe, Maa ko baho
me uthaya, aur Dono ek saath bathroom me ghus gaye.
Main Didi ke upar se utha. Didi bhi uth khadi hui, Dono
ne apne kamde thik kiye. Aur, mere kamre ki aur chal
pade. Tabhi maine kuch aisa dekha ki acchambhit rah
gaya. Maine Didi se uss orr dekhne ka ishara kiya. Didi
ne meri nigaho ka pichha karte hue khidki par nazar
daali. Didi bhi sakpaka gayi, aur jaldi jaldi apne kapde
thik karne lagi. Khidki Par Priya khadi thi, wo bhi
aardhnagn sthiti me. Paiya kisi table ya stool par khadi
thi sayad, aur khidki ke upari hisse se hume dekh rahi
thi. Saath hi saath apne boor ko ragde ja rahi thi. Priya
ko ye ahsash bhi nahi tha ki hum use dekh rahe hai.
Apne ghar ke chudai mahotsav ko dekh kar Priya
unmatt hokar apne boor ka paani nikalne me jutti thi.
Humne socha ki ye kya besharmi hai. Hume dekh kar bhi
ruk nahi rahi hai, ragde ja rahi hai.
Khidki ke palle band hone ke karan awaz to nahi aa rahi
thi, lekin dekh kar saaf pata chal raha tha ki Priya
siskiya bhar rahi hai. Maine Didi ki orr dekha aur Didi
ne meri orr. Dono ek dusre se kuch puchhna chahte the.
Maine dekha ki Priya ki aankhe band thi, aur wo puri
masti me apni muniya ko ragde ja rahi thi. Isse pahle ki
Priya aankhe khole aur usko ye pata chale ki humne use
dekh liya hai. Hame waha se nikal jana chahiye tha.
Pammi Didi ne mujhse kuch bolne ke liye muh khola hi
tha ki maine Didi ki muh daba kar chup kara diya. Aur,
Didi ka hath pakad kar khicha. Didi ko pakad kar main
apne room le aaya. Aur darwaja band kar diya. Ab
saikado sawaal aise the, jiska uttar ya to Didi ko dena
tha ya Priya hi sahi sahi bata sakti thi.
Me –“Didi, apne Priya ko nind ki goli di thi na, fir wo
kaise jag gayi.”
Didi –“Shayad goli ka asar 2 ghante hi ho. Shyad usne
doodh piya hi na ho.”
Me –“Ye kaise ho sakta hai, khali glass to apne khud
wapas liya tha usse.”
Didi –“Lekin maine use, doodh pite hue nahi dekha tha.
Ho sake usne doodh khidki se bahar fek diya ho.”
Me –“Ho sakta hai, agar aisa hai to bahar doodh ke
girne ke nisaan to honde na. Chalo chal kar dekhte hai.”
Didi –“Sourav ye CID ka episode nahi chal raha hai ki
hum har baat ki baariki se janch kare, aur aise bhi ye
jaan kar hume milega kya, ki Priya ne doodh khidki se
feka tha, ya, Commode me daal kar flush kar diya tha.
Ab sacchhai ye hai ki Priya ne hame dekh liya hai
Balam-Pichkari khelte hue. Aur, ye sab tumhare zidd ka
natija hai. Naa tum waha jate, aur na mujhe le jate.
Aur, naa hi mujhe apni gand baramade me marwani
padti. Aur naa hi Priya hame dekhti.”
Me –“Didi, ye bas ek ittefaq hai ki humlog aaj waha the,
ho sakta hai Priya rozz Maa Papa ki chudai dekhti ho
khidki se, aur, aaj hamari maujudgi se usse bonus scene
ka gift mil gaya. Yaa ye bhi ho sakta hai ki aapne Priya
ko sab kuch pahle hi bata rakha tha, aur Priya ko nind ki
goli dene ka natak kiya ho.”
Didi –“Bro, tum mujh par shak kar rahe ho, main itne
pyar se gand marwa rahi thi tumse, aur tum mujh par
hi ilzaam laga rahe ho. How mean you are bro????
Disgusting thoughts???? Maine agar Priya ko bataya
hota to waha chudne kyu jaati, aur agar mujhe pata
hota ki Priiya hame dekh rahi hai to, main ek na ek baar
to udhar dekhti hi na. Aur, tumko pata chal hi jaata.”
Me –“Oh hell, Ab kya hoga kahi Priya ne Maa ko bata
diya to, Tum apne kamre me jao yaar, nahi to kahi Priya
yaha aa gayi to kya jawaab denge usko.”
Didi –“Kaise jau apne room, wo to puchhegi pakka ki
kaha gayi thi. Kya bolungi? Ajib tarike se fas gayi hu
main to. Udhar Chotti Bahan se nazre bhi nahi mila
sakti aur idhar mera chodu bhai mujh par hi shak kar
raha hai. Main to dono taraf se gayi. Kori kori Boor aur
kori kori Gand dono dene ke baad bhi tujhe mujh par
yakeen nahi hai, Sourav. Kitna bada madarchod hai tu
dikh raha hai.”
Me –“Didi, gussa mat ho, ab jab Priya ne dekh hi liya hai
to hum kar bhi kya sakte hai. Hum to koi action le nahi
akte, ab uske move ka hi wait karte hai. Dekhte hai ki
wo kya karti hai. Aise bhi use ye pata nahi hai ki humne
usse dekh liya tha. Wo to apni Boor ghisne me busy thi.
Agar hum usse kuch bhi na bole to usse kuch pata hi
nahi chalega, aur Maa ko bolna ya na bolna to sab uss
par depend karta hai. Aur, aise bhi, maza to usne bhi
liya hai, hamari chudai to dekhi hi dekhi, Maa aur Papa
ki chudai bhi dekhi hai. Agar Priya ne Maa se sikayat ki
to bol diya jayega ki isne hi hame bataya tha ki khidki
se Maa-Papa ki chudai dikhti hai, aur wo kai baar dekh
chuki hai.”
Didi –“Aise to teeno ki gand maregi fir, tum bachane ka
plan bata rahe ho marane ka, tum apna dimaag to rahne
hi do, mujhe hi kuch sochna hoga. Nahi to tere dimaag
se kuch der aur chali to pata nahi aur kya kya ho jaye.
Bada shauk tha na Maa ki gand ki chudai dekhne ka.
Khud to double double maza liya to fasa diya mujhe.”
Me –“Kya didi, maza to aapne bhi 2 x double liya hai, ek
taraf Maa ki chudai to dekhi so dekhi hi, Priya ki chut
bhi to dekhi na, Aur, aapko to ye bhi pata chal gaya hai
ki Papa aapko chodna chahte hai. Ab bas aapko haath
badhana hai aage, fir to aapko 9” ke land ka maza milne
lagega, fir aap mere iss chhote se land ko bhul jayengi.”
Didi –“To kya tujhe koi labh nahi hua hai. Papa ne saaf
saaf Maa se kaha hai ki wo tera land le le apni Gand
me, aise bhi tujhe to Maa ki matakti ithlati gand hi
pasand aati hai. Ek baar tujhe Maa ki chaudi chudaas
gand mili to tu bhi mere 34 ki iss patli se gand ko bhul jayega.”
Me –“Nahi Didi, aisa nahi hoga kabhi, tumhari jaisi bali
umar ki maal ko main kaise bhul sakta hu, kaha tum aur
kaha Maa. Mana ki Maa ki gand 38 ki hai aur mujhe
bahut pasand hai, Lekin tumne to mujhse apna aage aur
pichhe dono ka dhakkan khulwaya hai. Tumhare boor ke
ras ke ek ek bund par pahla haq mera hai Didi. Main
aapko kabhi bhul hi nahi sakta.”
Didi –“To kya aaj tum meri chudai se khush hue, bhai.”
Me –“Haan Didi, zindagi me pahli baar mera land kisi ke
boor aur gand me ghusa hai. Wo bhi seal todte hue.
Maza gya Didi sach me.”
Didi –“Jhut mat bol, tune Bipin ki Didi Pooja ko bhi to
choda hai, Aur pata nahi aur kitno ko chodega tera ye
madarchod land. Mujhe pakka yakken hai ki 10 din ke
andar tera land Maa ki gand me jarur ghusega.”
Me –“Didi, tere muh me ghee shakkar. Ab to bas kisi
tarah Maa ki gand mil jaye, Bipin ko maa ki gand dila
dunga, aur mujhe Pooja ki unchudi gand mil jayegi. Aur
thoda moda jhut to chalta hai na.”
Didi –“Ab kisi bhi tarah karke Priya ko rokna hi hoga.
Nahi to hamara khel tamaam samjho.”
Me –“Didi, Priya aisa nahi karegi. Ghar ki shanti puri
tarah bhang ho jayegi. Priya ab badi ho gayi hai, aur,
samajhdar bhi. Mujhe nahi lagta ki wo aisa karegi.”
Didi –“Achha, jo bhi ho, main ab chalti hu kamre me,
nahi to Pooja darwaja pitne lagegi.” 89
Me –“Didi, ruko 10 minute pata nahi Priya ka paani nikla
hai na nahi abhi tak, pahle usse ungli to kar lene do
aaram se. Fir, jab uska paani nikal jayega tab jaana
uske pas. Nahi to gusse se aaga bagula ho jayegi. Paani
bina nikle shanti kaha hota hai Didi. Ye apse behtar
kaun jaan sakta hai.”
Didi mere bistar par baith gayi. Aur maine computer on
kiya. Xossip.com par logon kiya, aur apni aage ki kahani
update karna suru kiya. Ab response dekhte hai update
ka, ki kaisa aata hai. Main man hi soch raha tha ki maine
iss update ka naam to rakha tha “Kamre ke andar Maa,
kamre ke bahar Didi”. Lekin, Pooja ke akasmat pravesh
ne to shirshak hi badal daala.
Iska shirshak to “Kamre me Maa, Baramade me Didi,
Khidki par Bahan” hona chahiye tha. Par jo bhi ho,
kahani solid ja rahi thi, aise hi chalti rahegi. Samay ke
sath aur garmi badhne ke aasar hai..
Main aur Didi mere room me baate kar rahe the. Papa
aur Maa ki mast chudai bhi ho chuki thi, jiska aankho
dekha haal aapne pichhle update me suna. Maine Didi ki
boor aur gand dono maar li thi, Didi ki Boor ka bhujia
aur Gand ka Golgappa ban chuka tha. Didi ki sukhi gand
chudai se mere land ka bhi bura haal tha. Kahi kahi se
kat sa gaya tha, isliye condom lagana jaruri hota hai
yaar. Agli baar se kori maal ko chodte waqt condom
jarur lagaunga. Lekin, yaar fir mere land ko khoon
chakhne ko nahi milega. Fat-te hue Boor ke taaza taaza
khoon ka land me lagna kitna mazedar hota hai, ye to
sarvzyat hai. Mujhe iss par koi bhi tika tippani karne ki
koi jarurat nahi hai.
Khair, Koi baat nahi. Didi ki itni damdaar chudai ke
baad bhi kahi koi kasar baki rah gayi thi kya ab. Didi ke
chehre par khusi to dikh rahi thi, lekin sath hi sath ess
baat ka daar bhi tha ki kahi Priya kuch gadgad na kar
de. Didi ab roz chudna chahti thi. Mere kamre me pada
wo tel ka katora unchuwa hi rah gaya. Didi ne table par
rakhe room freshner ki bottle utha yi aur, kamre ke
kono me spray kar diya. Room sugandh se bhar gaya.
Pata nahi ab Didi kya karna chahti thi. Par shayad didi
ki kuch icchha ab bhi baki hi thi.
Didi –“Sourav, mast chudai ki tune to meri aaj. Sham se
raat tak maza diya, aisa to maine sapne me bhi nahi
socha tha ki, apne hi bhai ke land se meri pahli chudai
hogi. Lekin jo bhi hua sahi hua, bahut aram ho gaya dil me.”
Me –“Dil me aram to mil gaya, par teri boor aur gand ki
halat kaisi hai. Dard to nahi hai na.”
Didi –“Thodi si dard to kar rahi hai, lekin sab thik ho jayega.”
Me –“Didi, itna halke me mat lo, dekhne do mujhe kya
haal hai tere boor ka.”
Didi –“Haa dekh lo, tumhe bhi to pata chalna chahiye, ki
teri land ne kaise jeet haasil ki hai. Ess jit ke liye koi
medal bhi to nahi milega bhai.”
Me –“Bahanchod ka tagma hi kaafi hai Didi. Certified
Bahanchod ho gaya hu main aaj.”
Didi –“Bol to aise rahe ho, jaise kitni badi degree mil
gayi ho. Sharm bhi nahi aati tumhe.”
Me –“Kahe ki sharm. Jab tum apna chonga utha kar
mujhse marwane aayi thi, to tumhe sharm aayi thi kya.”
Didi –“Haa, aur tumne mere chonge ko baja baja kar
bhopu bana diya hai. Dekho kaisi fadak rahi hai meri muniya.”
Me –“Didi ab tum ladki nahi rah gayi ho, aurat ban
chuki ho, ab tere gand ka ubhar aur badhega. Jise dekh
kar sabki muth tapak jayegi. Aise hi Papa tujhe chodne
ke liye chhatpata rahe hai, ab to unko bardast bhi nahi hoga.”
Didi –“Tere 6” ke land ne mere boor ka ye haal kiya hai,
Pata nahi Papa ke land se kya hoga.”
Me –“Kuch nahi hoga, ab tum Papa kya gadhe ka land
bhi le sakti ho. Haa bas thoda dard hoga. Fir to aram se
ucchhal ke logi.”
Didi –“Baad ka baad me sochenge, lekin abhi to boor
aur gand dono fulkar cupcake ban gayi hai. 2-4 din to
dard rahega kam se kam.”
Me –“Dekhne to do ki kya haalat hai, tere stadium ki.
Ab dono end se batting hui hai to pitch thodi rukhdi to
hogi hi na. Fir, agle din roller chalega aur pitch plain.
Ye to har match ke baad hota hai Didi.”
Didi –“Rukhdi pitch par hi to spinners ko madad milti
hai. Tune dono innings me acchi batting ki hai bhai.
Lekin, ab T20 khelne se man nahi bharta, ab mujhe Test
Match ki icchha hoti hai bhai.”
Me –“Ek hi din ke chudai ne teri bhukh itni badha di hai
ki tujhe panch-divasiya chudai ki aawashyakta ho rahi
hai. Pata nahi Papa ke land se khelne ke baad tumhari
ranking ka kya hoga.”
Didi –“Kuch nahi hoga, Maa se niche hi rahegi meri
ranking hamesa. Maa to regularly do baar gand marwati
hai. Mera to ek hi baar me haalat kharab hai.”
Me –“Maine kitni baar bola tha, ki kuch laga leta hoon,
lekin tumhe hi sukhi gand marwane ka shauk tha na.
Khud ki gand to fadwai hi fadwai sath me mera land bhi
chhil diya.”
Didi –“Bhai Kele ka chhilka hata kar hi khana chahiye
na. Isliye chhilka hata rahi thi.” Didi hasi.
Me –“Ye kela chhilka ke sath hi khaya jata hai Didi. Ab
aao bistar par let jao, dekhne do mujhe tumhare boor ki haalat.”
Update 15
Didi bistar par let gayi. Main bhi bistar par chad gaya.
Aur, ek hi jhatke me Didi ke paijama ko utar diya. Didi
ki chikni nangi tange aur boor ke baal dikhne lage.
Maine Didi ki dono tango ko pakad kar thoda failaya,
aur gardan niche karke boor ko paas se dekhne ki kosis
ki. Didi ki boor buri tarah se lal ho chuki thi. Kaafi fuli
hui bhi lag rahi thi, tabadtod chudai ki wajah se Didi ki
boor ki pankhudiya sooz kar halki gulabi se gahre laal
rang ki ho gayi thi. Maine socha thoda daba kar dekhta
hu, dard hoga to Didi rokegi hi. Maine apni tarjani ungli
se boor ke bahri hisse ko chhuwa. Aur, halke se dabaya.
Didi dard se sisiyayi. Didi ki boor ful kar cupcake si ho
gayi thi. Abhi to hath lagana bhi sahi nahi tha, maine
Didi ki boor ke bahri hisso ko daba kar check kiya ki
kahi dard jyada to nahi hai. Har dabav par Didi ke muh
se aah aah ki awaz nikal jati thi.
Me –“Didi, tumhari boor to suz kar buri tarike se lal ho
gayi hai, mujhe nahi lagta ki 2-3 din tak tum land le
paogi dubara. Aur, lena bhi nahi chahiye.”
Didi –“Ha, halka halka dard bhi ho raha hai chalne par.
Par koi baat nahi hai, kal subah tak thik ho jayegi.”
Me –“Didi, tumhari gand ki bhi aisi hi haalat ho gayi
hogi, dekhne do to kya haal hai.”
Didi ne tange upar hawa me utha kar mujhe apni gand
dikhayi. Didi ke gand ka ched lal surkh ho chuka tha.
Mano, hath lagate hi khoon nikla aayega. Maine samajh
gaya ki jo bhi ho 2 din tak Didi ko aram karna hi
chahiye. Nahi to dard se wo uth bhi nahi payegi aur
Maa ko pata chal jayega.
Me –“Didi sakht aram ki jarurat hai 2 3 din tak. Tisre
din hi ab kuch ho sakta hai tumhari boor ka, Iss bich
tumhe ragadna bhi nahi hai. Main thodi tel laga deta hu
tumhari boor aur gand par. Tel lagne se thoda dard
kam hoga.”
Didi –“Ha, thodi maalis kar do, janghe bhi daard kar
rahi hai. Pahle din hi kuch jor ki chudai ho gayi. Shayad
aaj gand nahi marwana chahiye tha.”
Me –“Bilkul, boor fatne ke baad tumne hi zidd ki thi
gand marane ki, nahi to mai to boor hi chodna chahta
tha Didi.”
Didi –“Ek baar chud kar itni lal ho gayi, agar dubara
chod dete meri PUKU (telegu for boor) ko, to pata nahi
kya haal hota hai. Thik hua ki dusri baar gand me hi
liya. Warna tum to gadhe ke jaise chod dete aur main
pakka kal chal nahi pati.”
Maine Tel ki katori utayi, aur dono hatho me tel lekar
didi ki boor aur gand par halke halke lagane laga. Main
bahut halke hatho se Didi ki boor ki maalis kar raha tha.
Didi ko kuch aram mila mere aisa karne se. Didi ki
jangho me bhi dard tha, to maine Didi ki dono tango ko
sidha kar diya, aur dher sara tel lekar Didi ki moti moti
chikni jangho par ragane laga. Didi ki moti moti janghe
kele ke ped ke tane si lag eahe the. Bilkul chikni, baal
na namo nisaan nahi. Lagta hai Didi ne picchhe din hi
waxing hi hogi. Maine dono hatho se Didi ki jangho ki
naap li. Dono hatho se pakadne ke baad bhi 6 inch ki
duri thi dono angutho ke bich. 22” se 24” hogi Didi ki
janghe. Dono hatho se pakad kar maine Didi ki jangho
ko pakda, aur upar niche karne laga. Aisa lag raha tha
ki maine haathi ka land pakad rakha hai, aur muth maar
raha hu.
Didi –“Ha ha ha, Bhai kya kar raho ho upar niche, Tel
laga rahe ho ki sadka maar rahe ho.”
Me –“Didi sadka maarne ki hi soch raha hu, lekin itna
mota land kiska hota hai. Blue whale hi hota hoga.”
Didi ne soft soft jangho ki maalis ke baad maine boor
aur gand par ungliya chalana suru kar diya. Thoda tel
aur daala aur dhire dhire ragane laga. Jisse Didi ka
dard kam hota gaya. Soozi hui boor aisi lag rahi thi
jaise 1 hafte tak ab kisi kaam ki nahi hai. Maine hi ye
haal kiya tha Didi ki boor ka to mujhe hi thik karna tha.
Tabhi fir se chodne ho milti. Nahi to fir kisi aur boor ka
intezam karna hoga..
Maalis se Didi garam hone lagii thi. Aur Didi ke sarir ki
garmahat se main bhi garam hone laga tha. Agar aise hi
raha to mera land fir se khada ho jayega. Maine Didi ki
tshirt ko bhi utar diya. Aur tel ki kuch bunde Didi ki
chuchiyo par daal diye.
Didi –“Ye kya kar rahe ho bhai, chuchiyo me dard nahi
hai. Inki maalis karne ki jarurat nahi hai. Rahne do ab.”
Me –“Didi mera land khada ho raha hai, aur tum boor
aur gand to mara chuki ho, aur abhi mera land le bhi
sakti to fir ab ek hi upay hai ki main tere chuchiyo ke
bich ragad kar apna maal nikalu.”
Didi –“Wo to hai hi lekin tune abhi tak mujhe apna muth
chakhaya nahi hai. Is baar mukhmaithun karungi main
tumhara bhai.”
Me –“Didi thik hai wo lekin, tum dant kaat leti ho land
par. Maan lo fir se dant lag gaya to. Aise hi mera land
tumhari sukhi gand maar kar dard kar raha hai.”
Didi –“Nahi, iss baar dant nahi lagegi, abki baar dhire
dhire aram se chusungi.”
Me –“Tum to aram se chusogi, lekin kahi main tez ho
gaya to. Tab to puri chance hai na ki dant lag jaye.
Jaise sham ko hua tha. Ab mera land aur chot bardast
nahi kar payega didi. Aise hi dard kar raha hai.”
Didi –“Dikha mujhe kya haal hai tere land ka, kahi usse
bhi to maalis ki jarurat nahi hai.”
Me –“Jarurat to hai, par tu rahne de, main laga lunga
baad me kuch. Abhi ek baar aur paani nikalna hai, to
teri chuchiyo par hi ragad kar nikal leta hoon.”
Didi –“Ek aur upay hai bhai.”
Me –“Wo kya.??”
Didi –“Jaise pahli baar mere jangho ke bich ragadte hue
jhad gaye the, ussi tarah fir se kar le, aur ab to maine
waxing bhi kar li hai. Tujhe aur maza hi aayega.”
Me –“Didi, lekin main aapki chuchiya chodna chahta ho.
Accha tum chus bhi lena.”
Didi –“Mujhe sirf chusna nahi hai, mujhe tumhari muth
bhi chakhna hai bhai.”
Me –“Didi, Pooja ke muh me mera nikal gaya tha, kya
ajib sa face banaya tha usne. Mat try karo didi. Fir
baad me bologi ki bataya nahi tune.”
Didi –“Jo bhi ho, ek baar try to karungi bhai.”
Me –“Thik hai, try kar lo. Lekin iss baar dant nahi lagna chaiye.”
Didi ne meri trouser ko niche kiya. Mera land bahar aa
gaya. Land puri tarah se khada to nahi tha, lekin nange
hone se thoda thoda khada hone laga tha. Didi ne land
ko hath me liya aur charo taraf se dekhni lagi ki kahi
chot to nahi lagi hai. Maine ek hath se Didi ki chuchi
pakad li aur haule haule dabane laga. Mera land ab
tanakne laga tha. Aaah.... Land me dard ho raha tha.
Aisi sukhi chudai ke baad land ki haalat kharab thi. Didi
ne land ko dekha to land kai jagah se kata hua tha.
Didi –“Bhai tere land me to kitni chot lagi hai. Tujhe bhi
maalis ki jarurat hai.”
Me –“Haa Didi thoda sa tel lekar laaga do, shayad kuch
aaram mile usse. Dard bhi ho raha hai.”
Didi –“Aisi galti ab nahi karenge bhai. Chudai se pahle
taiyari karni hi padti hai. Bina taiyari ke aur bina
chiknai ke chudai ka anzaam khatarnaak hi hota hai.”
Me –“Didi Maa ki aisi damdaar chudai dekh kar control
hi nahi hua, warna main to tumhe yaha apne kamre me
chodne wala tha na, aur maine taiyari kar rakhi thi.
Dekho tel ka katora bhi rakha tha, aur room freshner
bhi laya tha. Aur, ek surprise rakhi thi tumhare liye.”
Didi –“Kya surprise thi bhai. To fir bataya kyu nahi.”
Maine apne computer table ke drawer se Dairy Milk Silk
nikali aur didi ki orr badha di. Didi khushi se uchhal
padi. Didi ko choclates bahut pasand thi. Isliye maine
shaam ko hi ek chocolate kharid li thi.
Didi –“Wow, bhai you are so sweet. Tumne chocolate layi
thi, aur ab tak mujhse chuppa kar rakhi thi, not fare
bhai. Ab jaldi se do. Mere muh me paani aa raha hai bhai.”
Me –“Didi, ye sirf tumhare liye nahi hai, ye hum bant
kar khayenge. Chocolate bant kar khane se pyar badhta
hai na isliye.”
Didi –“Is it?? Aur ye tumhare chocolate khane ka
bahana hai.”
Me –“No Di its true, but maine ye chocolate direct
khane ke liye nahi layi thi.”
Didi –“To kya karne tha tumhe.”
Maine chocolate khola, aur ek tukda tod kar apne land
par lagane laga. Mere land ke garmi se chocolate
pihalne lagi thi. Pighal kar mere land par failti ja rahi
thi. Maine apne land ko chocolate se lapet diya. Aur Didi
ki orr badha. Didi ko samjhte der na lagi. Didi muskura rahi thi.
Me –“Didi lo ab chuso. Choclate ki mithash se tumhe
land bhi mithaa lagega, aur tum bade pyar se chusogi.”
Didi –“Ab to main tumhara pura land kha jaungi. Wow,
bhai land choclate roll khila rahe ho apni Didi ko.”
Me –“Ab der mat karo didi, jaldi se muh me le lo.”
Didi ki kaamaagni fir se jal uthi thi. Didi ek bahut hi
kaamuk ladki, nahi aurat hai. Jo matra do baar chud kar
hi puri chudaas ho gayi thi. Ab Didi har waqt chudna
chahti thi. Pata nahi ab Didi kitno ka land legi. Didi ne
jhat se mera land muh me le liya aaur land par lage
chocolate ko chatne lagi. Didi ne sara chocolate chat
chat kar kha liya, aur mere aur dekhne lagi jaise aur
mang rahi ho. Maine fir se chocolate ka ek tudka lekar
apne land par lagaya. Didi ne fir se chat chat kar saaf
kar diya. Didi ki muh ke garmi se mera land tantana
gaya tha. Dard to tha, bas maal gira kar hi sukun milta.
Aise hi main bar bar chocolate lagata gaya aur Didi
chat chat kar khati gayi.
Me –“Didi ab meri baari, main bhi tumhare boor par
chocolate laga kar chatunga.”
Didi –“Aaj nahi bhai. Aaj dard bhi hai aur mujhe fir se
chusa kar chudne ki icchha nahi hai. SIliye fir kabhi kar
lena aisa.”
Main kursi par baith gaya. Aur, Didi ko niche baithakar
uske hath me land land thama diya. Didi ki chuchiyo ki
orr ishara karke maine Didi ko aage ka plan bataya.
Didi ne apne dono chuchiyo me dono hatho se pakda aur
bich me mere land ko daba kar upar niche karne lagi.
Kuch der baad maine didi ki dono chuchiyo ko pakda.
Aur, daba kar apne land ko Didi ki chuchiyo ke bich
ragadne laga. Didi ki chuchiyo bahut narm thi, Mano rui
ke faahe ho. Mujhe aisa lag raha tha jaise kisi takiye
me ched karke maine land ghusa rakha ho. Mera land ab
charam ki aur badhne laga tha.
Itne me Didi mere upar aakar baith gayi. Aur Mere land
ko apne boor par sata kar ragadne lagi. Didi ki ragadne
ki aadat purani thi. Wo hamesa ragad ragad hi apna
paani nikalti thi. Didi ne bataya tha ki usne kabhi ungli
tak andar nahi daali thi. Mera land hi pahli baar Didi ke
boor me ghusa tha. Didi ke boor par mere land ka
sparsh mujhe pagal banane laga. Didi kamar aage
pichhe karke mere land par apna boor de maar rahi thi.
Dono hatho se land ko boor me sata rakha tha didi ne.
Aise hi wo 4 minute tak mera land boor par ragadti
rahi. Main bhi Didi ki chuchiya pakad kar halke hatho se
daba raha tha. Main Didi ke chuchiyo ki ghundiyo ko
ungliyo ke bich lekar dhire dhire minz raha tha. Jaise
jaise main didi ki ghudiyo ko daba raha tha, didi ki
siskariya fut rahi thi. Fir Didi mere upar se utar gayi.
Aur pose change kar liya.
Didi ne fir se mera land apne muh me bhar liya. Didi ke
boor se nikle paani se land gila ho chuka tha, jise Didi
chat chat kar kha rahi thi, maine mauka ka fayda
uthaya, aur chocolate lekar land par laga diya, Didi
apne boor ke paani aur chocolate ke mile jule swad se
khus ho gayi. Aur jor jor se apne muh me mera land
ghusane lagi. 2 minute ke baad Didi ne fir se pose badla.
Mera land ab kabhi bhi jhad sakta tha. Itne der tak to
main khud kabhi muth nahi marta tha. Kaafi der se didi
mere land ko chuse ja rahi thi. Didi rukne ka naam hi
nahi le rahi thi, jaldi se jaldi Didi mera muth pinaa
chahti thi. Ab mera land bhi jhadne wala hi tha. Didi ne
paitra badla, aur picchhe palat kar mere land par apna
gand rakh diya. Mera gand Didi ki gand ke fanko ke
bich laga tha, aur Didi kamar aage picchhe hilane lagi.
Land boor se lekar gand ke ched tak ghis jata tha har
chot par. Ab mujhse control nahi ho raha tha, mera
muth kabhi bhi nikal sakta tha.
Maine Didi ko dhakka diya aur apne upar se hata diya.
Didi ka hath pakad kar niche baithaya aur uske muh me
ghap se land pel diya. Didi mast hokar apni gardan upar
niche karne lagi. Aaah aahah .... mera maal nikalne hi
wala tha. Didi lagatar jor se chus rahi thi. Aur, tip tip ..
churr churr.... Mere land ne muth ki dhaar chhod di Didi
ke muh me. Didi ko muth ka namkin swad accha nahi lag
raha tha, maine turant ek chocolate ka tudka didi ke
muh me daal kar band kar diya. Didi ne mera muth
chocolate ke sath pi liya. Didi ab bhi muh banaye ja rahi
thi, maine baki ke bache chocolate ko bhi Didi me muh
me bhar diya. Didi apne chehre par faile mere baki ke
muth ko ungli se chat chat kar khane lagi.
Me –“Didi, kaisa laga mera muth pikar, maza aaya, Isi
ke liye tum itnaa paresaan thi na.”
Didi –“So salty but not bad. Accha laga mujhe to. Tu
aise hi chocolate laga lagakar apna land chusayega to
main rozz tera land chusungi.”
Didi aur main dono hasne lage. Maine Didi ko uthaya
aur hall wale bathroom me chale gaye. Kyuki mere
bathroom se awaz Maa ke kamre me jati thi. Didi ne
khud ko saaf kiya aur apne kapde pahle. Maine bhi apne
kapde pahne. Aur, kamre me aa gaya. Maine gadhi ki orr
dekha to 5 baj chuke the. Matlab, hamari chudai 5
gahnte se chal rahi thi. Dono puri tarah tut chuke the.
Me –“Didi, ab tumhe jana chahiye, Priya ka kaam bhi ho
gaya hoga. Aur, wo so bhi gayi hogi.”
Didi –“Ha jati hoon. Pata nahi ab Priya se kaise nazre
mila paungi.”
Didi ne apna kamra khola. Aur, andar chali gayi. Andar
Priya bhi so rahi thi. Priya so rahi thi ya sone ka natak
kar rahi thi, ye mujhe nahi pata. Ye to baad me pata
chalega ki Priya kya karegi sab dekhne ke baad. Maine
bhi apna kamra band kiya, aur sone ke liye bistar par
let gaya.
Update 16
Didi apne kamre me jakar so jati hai. Priya bhi soyi hai.
Mujhe nind 6 baje aati hai. Maa uth gayi thi 6:30 baje
aur kitchen ke kaamo me lag gayi thi. Papa kitchen ke
darwaje par khade hokar Maa ke sath shararat kar rahe
the. Main to 11 baje se pahle uthne wala nahi tha aj.
Papa Maa se ab bhi maze lene me jute the.
Papa –“Kya Shweta, kal raat maza aaya na tumko?”
Maa ne papa ko ghurte hue dekha aur boli –“Ye
pucchhne ka ab time mila tumhe, Aur kahi nahi to
kitchen me, Kisine sun liya to. Jao room me, news paper
padho, main chai lati hoon.”
Kal raat ki damdaar chudai ke baad Papa ka dil Maa par
aa gaya tha, sach bhi hai, agar biwi hi maa, saas, aur
beti ka role play karke chudaye to bahar jane ki jarurat
hi nahi hai. Aise bhi aankhe band karke kisi ke bhi bare
me soch kar chodte jao to kya pata chalta hai ki biwi
chudi ya Maa. Asli chudai to manaspalat par chalti hai.
Papa hall me aakar sabke kamre ki orr dekhte hai. Sab
ke sab so rahe hai. Papa ne mauke ka fayda uthate hue
Maa ko picchhe se pakad liya, aur Maa ke gand par apna
land sata diya. Aur halka halka dhakka dene lage.
Maa sakpaka jati hai. Aise to meri Maa itni garam aurat
hai ki koi bhi aaram se roti sek le unki gand par. Lekin,
Papa ke 9” ke land ke baad Maa bhi apni tava thandi
kar leti hai. Aur, thande tave par rotiya nahi seki ja
sakti. Lekin, Papa ne Maa ko mere kabab khane ka
aadesh de diya tha, ab bas mujhe apne manspind laude
ko kabab ke jaise Maa ki bhatti par sekna tha. Maa ne
zor se gand ko picchhe dhakka diya aur Papa ko hatane
ki kosis ki. Papa ne Maa ki kamar jor se pakdi thi. Isliye
Maa ki kosis bekar gayi. Papa ne dhire dhire apna haath
upar ki taraf le jana suru kiya.
Papa ka land nighty ke upar se hi Maa ki gand me
ghusne laga. Papa ne jhat se apna land pant se bahar
nikal liyaa aur Maa ke gand me sat kar ragadne lage.
Maa ko jaise hi pata chala ki Papa se land bhar nikal
liya hai, wo palat gayi, aur Papa ko dantne lagi.
Maa –“Ye kya hai, kitchen me itni besharmi, chalo jao
room me, aur andar karo ise. Koi bhi jag sakta hai ab.”
Papa –“Koi nahi jagne wala, maine dekha sabke darwaje
band hai aur, sab aram se so rahe hai.”
Maa –“To iska kya matlab hai ki aap yaha kitchen me
apna land bahar nikal kar ghumiye.”
Papa –“Darling, tumhari gand itni sexy hi hai ki dekhte
hi land khada ho jata hai. Aur fir tumhari gand marne ki
icchha hone lagti hai. Aur main khud ko rok nahi pata.”
Maa –“Raat bhar mere gand marte ho, kabhi Maa
banakar, kabhi saas banakar, fir bhi tumhari land ki
pyaas nahi bujhti. Aur ab to beti ke badle bhi meri hi
gand chodoge. Itni pasand hai Pammi to uski gand kyu
nahi bajate.”
Papa –“Shweta, kya bol rahi ho tum. Pammi apni beti
hai yaar. Mere man me uske liye khayal uthne lage hai,
iska ye matlab to nahi hai ki main uske saath sone lagu.”
Maa –“Acchha, to tumhe itna samajh me aata hai ki beti
ko nahi chodna hai, aur ye samjh me nahi aata hai ki
meri maa ko bhi nahi chodna hai, aur tumhari maa ka kya.”
Papa Maa ke paas jakar Maa ko baho me bhar lete hai
aur bolte hai –“Darling, meri maa ki gand, aur teri maa
ka bhosda.”
Maa gussa jati hai –“Aur Pammi ki kya??”
Papa –“Are tum kyu itna gussa kar rahi ho, kal aise hi
main bahak gaya tha, aur Pammi ke bare me socha to
sochta hi rah gaya.”
Maa –“Acchha, aapko jab jo man karta hai karte hai, jab
man hua apni maa ki jagah meri gand maar liye, fir
man hua to meri maa ki jagah bhi meri gand maar liye.
Aur ab apni beti ke jagah bhi meri gand maroge kya????”
Papa –“Darling, aisa kuch nahi hai, wo to bas ek din ho
gaya, ab aisa kabhi nahi hoga, Swear.”
Maa –“Kya nahi hoga, maza nahi aaya kya apni beti ki
gand marne me.”
Maa ke iss sawal se Papa chaunk gaye the. Ye kya ho
gaya, pahle gussa fir jorr. Kya jawaab denge ab Papa.
Haa bolenge tab bhi fasenge, naa bolnege tab bhi
fasenge. Papa soch me pad gaye, ki kya jawab de ab iska.
Maa –“Kya sochne lage ab, jawab do ab. Maza aaya ki
nahi Pammi ki gand marne me.”
Papa –“Are bola na, wo bas aise hi ho gya tha. Ab nahi hoga.”
Maa –“Kyu nahi hoga ji, hona chahiye naa, roz hona
chahiye, aaj se main Pammi aur Priya banungi. Fir aap
meri gand marna, madarchod to bahut bade ho tum, ab
betichod bhi ban jao. Mujhe pata hai ki tum Pammi aur
Priya ki gand ko dekhte rahte ho.”
Papa –“Kya bol rahi ho, maine aisa kab kiya.”
Maa –“To kya tumko kal raat maza nahi aaya sachmuch.
Jhoot mat bolna.”
Ab Papa kya bolte. Maza to unhone liya hi tha Pammi
didi ki gand ko soch soch kar. Aur naa bolte to fir
shayad wo maza dubara nahi milta. Isliye Papa ne haa
bol diya.
Papa –“Haa, maza to aaya, lekin mera man nahi hai aisa
fir se karne ka.”
Maa ne Papa ka land pakadte hue kaha -“Kyu nahi hai
Kailash darling, tumhari beti ki gand ke chotti se ched
me jab tumhara 10” ka land jayega, to socho kaise
chhatpatayegi wo, rone lagegi ekdum, aur tum chhap
chaap ke pelna uski gand me. Faad dena meri beti ka
gand. Dekhi hai na tumne ki tumhe dekh kar kuch jyada
hi matka matka kar chalti hai wo. Wo chahti hai ki tum
apna ye mota land uski gand me dalo.”
Maa ki baato ne Papa ke dimaag par jadoo sa kar diya.
Maa ke hath me Papa ka 10 inchi land sansana ke khada
hone laga. Maa Papa ko Pammi Didi ke naam par uttejit
karti rahi. Ab teer kamaan se chhut chuka tha. Papa
par Didi ki gand ka nasha aur Maa ki baato ka jaadoo
kabza kar chuke the. Papa ab bekaboo hokar Maa ki
gand ko pakadkar dabane lage. Papa ke land me gilaa
aata lag gaya tha, jo Maa ke hath me tha. Maa aata
gund rahi thi, isliye wo kuch chhunna nahi chahti thi,
lekin Papa ne Maa ko garam kar hi diya tha itna ki wo
kya karti.
Papa –“Haa Shweta, thik bolti ho tum, mujhe Pammi ki
unchudi boor aur gand ka maza lena chahiye, nahi to koi
na koi uska ras chus hi lega. Koi bahar wala nahi to
Sourav to chus hi lega. Ek number ka madarchod aur
bahanchod hai wo. Mauka milte hi tumhari gand bhi
maare lega dekhna.”
Maa –“Haa Kailash, tum apni beti Pammi ki gand marna,
aur main apne bete Sourav se boor chudwaungi, tum to
kabhi meri boor chodte nahi, jab dekho iska gand marna,
uska gand marna hai. Ab to dono betiyo ka bhi gand
chahiye tumko Kailash.”
Maa aur Papa puri tarah garam ho jate hai. Subah
subah kitchen me aisa kabhi nahi hota hai, lekin Pammi
Didi ki gand ki masti Papa ko kitchen tak khich layi thi.
Maa ne Papa ko dur hataya. Aur gadhi dekhte hui boli
–“Aise hi bahut der ho gayi hai, Ab jao tum, bahut kaam
hai, Jo karna hoga raat me kar lena. Beti ki kunwari
gand ke liye itna to sabr karna ho padega na.”
Papa –“Nahi, tum bolo to aaj office se chutti hi le leta
hoon, aur fir din bhar chudai chalegi. Ek baar Pammi
ban ke dena, ek Priya baar banke.”
Maa –“Ji nahi, aisa nahi hoga. Bacche bhi to hai ghar
par. Unke rahte possible nahi hai. So jakar taiyar ho jaiye.”
Papa –“Aisa mat karo, Nahi to aaj din bhar har jagah
mujhe Pammi ki gand hi dikhai degi. Naa kaam ho
payega na khana.”
Maa –“Accha hai na tab to, din bhar ki tadap nikalegi
Pammi ki gand par, tumko bhi maza aayega aur mujhe bhi.”
Papa –“Ha thik hai lekin office se aane ke baad tum
meri patni nahi rahogi. Office se aate hi main tumhe
apni beti ke roop me dekhna chahta hoon.”
Maa –“Thik hai. Lekin meri bhi ek shart hai ki Pammi ki
gand se pahle ek bar meri boor bhi chodenge aap.”
Papa –“Ok, fir deal pakki. Bye, main jakar taiyar hota
hu. Tum nasta ready karo.”
Papa apne kamre me chale gaye to Maa nasta banane
me jut gayi.
Update 17
Subah ke 10 baj chuke hai. Lekin abhi tak na Pammi Didi
uthi hai. Aur na Priya, aur main to soya hi tha 6 baje, to
uthne ka sawaal hi paida nahi hota hai. Main apne bistar
par gahri nind me soya hua tha. Sabse pahle Priya uth
jati hai. Brush karne ke baad Pammi Didi ko uthane ki
kosis karti hai. Priya ke bartav se aisa pratit hi nahi ho
raha tha ki usne kal raat ko Didi aur bhai ki chudai
dekhi ho, aur sath hi sath Maa ki gand bhi chudte dekhi
ho. Priya dhire se Pammi Didi ko hila kar jagane ki kosis
karti hai. Par Didi uthti nahi hai. Priya Didi ko sone ke
liye chhod deti hai. Aur khud taiyar hokar nasta lene
kitchen me pahuch jati hai. Maa ab bhi kitchen ke kaamo
me juti hui thi.
Maa –“AA gayi Priya, Chalo nasta laga do table par, aur
sabko bula lo, sabhi nasta kar lete hai. Papa to tumhare
office bhi chale gaye kab ke.”
Priya –“Mummy, abhi tak koi jaga hi nahi hai. Bhaiya
aur Didi dono ke dono so rahe hai. Maine to didi ko
jagaya bhi lekin uthi nahi.”
Maa –“Ja ek baar aur kosis karke dekh, aur Sourav ko
bhi jaga de. Kitna soyega aur.”
Meri kaano me Maa ki aawaz gunji. Meri nind tut gayi
thi, meine gadhi ki orr dekha. 10 baj chuke the. Main
jaldi se utha aur bathroom ki orr bhaga. Jaldi se brush
kiya, fresh hua. Aur, bhagta hua dinner table par
pahucha. Maa aur priya table par maujood the. Main
Priya se nazre nahi mila pa raha tha. Aur, wo mujhe
ghure ja rahi thi. Main soch raha tha ki kahi Priya ne
Maa ko kuch bata to nahi diya hai. Lekin Maa ke chehre
ko dekh kar aisa lag nahi raha tha.
Maa –“Priya, ja Pammi ko utha de ab. Main tab tak
plates lagati hu.”
Maa plate lagane lagi aur main Maa ki chuchiyo ko
ghurne laga. Maa bich bich me meri orr dekh kar
muskura rahi thi. Shayad unhe bhi pata tha ki main kya
dekh raha hoon. Lekin chori chori tirchhi nazro se main
maa ki chuchiya dekhe ja raha tha. Priya ne Didi ka
hath pakad kar uthane ki kosis ki. Lekin ye kya, Didi ka
hath to garam tha. Priya ne Didi ke sar par ungliya
rakh kar dekhi. Didi ko bukhar ho gaya tha. Priya ko ye
pata tha ki ye bukhar hua kyu hai. Lekin wo kuch bolna
nahi chahti thi.
Priya –“Didi, utho, tumhe to fever ho gaya hai. Main
abhi Mummy ko batati hoon.”
Pammi Didi –“Maa ko mat bata, main koi tablet le lungi,
thik ho jayega thodi der me.”
Priya –“Aise kaise Didi, Maa ko abhi nahi to thodi der
baad pata chal hi jayega. Abhi bata dungi Maa ko to
shayad unhe kuch pata nahi bhi chale, lekin agar
chhupaenge to Maa ko shak ho hi jayega.”
Pammi –“Kya pata nahi chale Maa ko. Haa, bol.”
Priya –“Didi, mujhe sab pata hai ki tumhari taiyat kyu
bigad gayi hai.”
Pammi –“Kyu?? Aur kya pata hai tumhe.”
Priya –“Didi, maine kal aapko aur bhaiya ko dekha tha
raat ko. Bhaiya ne apki khub gand maari thi baramade
me, wo bhi bina kisi chiknai ke. Aur, Maa ke kamre me
Papa Mummy ki gand maar rahe the. Maine sab dekh
liya tha, par maine kuch bhi nahi bola.”
Pammi Didi –“Aur, tu kya kar rahi thi. Khidki par khade
hokar, hame dekh dekh kar apni muniya ko ragad rahi
thi. Ungli bhi karti hai kya tu????”
Priya –“Par tumhe kaise pata Didi ki main khidki par thi.
Kya aapko pahle se pata tha??”
Didi –“Nahi , wo to humne jate waqt tumhe khidki par
dekh liya tha, tumhari aankhe band thi aur tum ungli
karne me busy thi.”
Priya –“Didi, main ungli nahi daalti andar, jarurat padne
par upar se hi ragad leti hoon bas. Lekin, tumne to khub
maze se bhaiya ka land liya gand me. Bina kuch lagaye
marwaogi to fever to hoga na. ”
Didi –“Pahle main bhi sirf ragda hi karti thi, lekin ragad
kar kitne din kaam chalati, isliye socha ki ek land ka
intezam kiya jaye. Bahar wale kisi se marwane se
badnami hoti, isliye ghar par hi marwa liya. Papa ka to
bahut mota hai, unse chudwane ke liye pahle acchhe se
rasta khulwana hoga. Aur, iske liye bhai se acchha aur
koi tarika bhi to nahi tha. Isliye maine bhai ko kisi tarah
fasa kar chudwa liya.”
Priya –“Papa to mummy ki gand marte hue tumhara hi
naam le rahe the, Papa bhi tumhari gand maarna chahte
hai. Lekin tumhari tabiyat bigad gayi bhaiya se
chudwakar. Pata nahi Papa ka land logi to kya hoga.”
Didi –“Tune Papa ka land dekha tha kal kya?? Aur
Sourav ka land bhi dekha hoga????”
Priya –“Ha, Didi Papa ka to kitna lamba aur mota hai,
Bhaiya ka land to Papa ke land se aadha hai bas. Jab
aadhe me teri ye haalat ho gayi hai to tu Papa se
chudwane ki sochna bhi mat. Kya karu Didi, Maa ko
batau ki nahi, ki Tumhe bukhar hai.”
Didi –“Bata de, lekin bolna ki kam hai thik ho jayega.
Nahi to bekar me Maa hospitol le jayegi. Aur, doctor ne
Maa ko kuch bata diya to lag jayegi meri bhi aur
Sourav ki bhi. Isliye jyada pressure dekar bolne ki
jarurat nahi hai.”
Priya kamre se bhaagti hui nikli, aur table ke paas
aakar boli –“Maa, Didi ko fever hai, siliye nahi uth rahi
hai. Aise jyada to nahi hai, ek tablet me thik ho jayega.”
Didi ki bigdi hui tabiyat ke bare me sun kar Maa jaldi se
Didi ke kamre me gayi. Aur, didi ke pas baith kar Didi
ka hath pakad liya. Maa dekh rahi thi ki Didi ko kahi
jyada bukhar to nahi hai.
Maa –“Koi baat nahi hai, thoda sa fever hai. Koi
infection sa hoga. Priya ja, medicine box le aa mere kamre se.”
Priya –“Maa, puri box lane ki kya jarurat hai, bolo na
kaun si tablet chahiye, wo le aaungi, ek tablet ke liye
box lao, fir le jao. Itna muskil kaam ooh.”
Maa –“Ja ek Avintis aur ek Paracetomol le aa. Ja jaldi ja.”
Priya Maa ke kamre ki orr gayi, Priya ke picchhe main
bhi gaya. Pata nahi main Priya ke picchhe kyu gaya tha,
jaise tablets nahi koi bhari samaan utha kar lana ho,
jisme Priya ko meri jarurat padegi. Priya ne Maa ke
kamre me box dhoondi. Par medicine box kahi dikh nahi
rahi thi. Maine kamre ke darwaje ke paas khada tha,
par main box dhoond nahi raha tha.
Priya –“Bhaiya, waha khade khade kya kar rahe ho, jaldi
se medicine box dhoondo na kaha se.”
Me –“Dekh yahii kahi hoga, mil jayega.”
Priya –“Didi ki ye haalat apke wajah se hi hui hai. Aur,
aap Didi ke liye ek tablet bhi nahi khoj rahe hai. Main
didi ko bol dungi.”
Me –“Kya???? Meri wajah se. Meri wajah se kaise?”
Priya –“Ab bano mat bhaiya. Aapne jo kal sham Didi ki
boor fadi hai, aur fir raat ko gand bhi chod di, wo bhi
bina tel lagaye, usi ke karan Didi ko fever hua hai.”
Me –“Priya ye tu kya anab sanab bak rahi hai. Sharm
nahi aati tujhe mere samne ye sab bolte hue. Chal ja
tablets le aur maa ko de.”
Priya –“O ho ho, aap didi ko kutiya ke jaise daba daba
kar chodiye din raat, aur main apke samne kuch bol bhi
nahi sakti. Itne sidhe to tum nahi ho bhaiya. Maine sab
dekha tha ki kaise tum Didi ki gand ki chatni bana rahe
the. Main bhi garam ho gayi thi, itni tabadtod chudai
dekh kar.”
Me –“Tu hamari chudai se garam hui thi, ya Maa Papa ki
chudai se, ye kaise paa chalega.”
Priya –“Kya bhaiya, dono hi scene mast tha, aapne bhi
kya chodi Didi ki gand. Par tel to lagana chahiye tha na.
Aisi chodi ki Didi ko bukhar hi aa gaya. Bechari, ab nahi
aayegi aapke niche. Ab aapka kya hoga, bhaiya.”
Me –“To kya hua, Didi ki tabiyat to thik ho hi jayegi. Fir
Didi mujhse chude bina thode rah payegi.”
Priya –“Didi ab Papa se chudne ki soch rahi hai. Papa ke
mote land se chudne ke baad kabhi aapke paas aayegi
bhi nahi.”
Me –“Tu ye sab mat soch, ja jaldi tablets le ke.”
Priya Tablets hatho me liye apne kamre ki or chali. Main
bhi picchhe ho liya. Priya ne Maa ko medicines di. Maa
ne paani ka glass Didi ke hath me dekar dono tablets de
di. Didi ne dawa kha li.
Maa –“Dawa le li ho. Ab jaldi se kuch kha lo. Bina khaye
itna heavy dose tablets nahi khana chahiye.”
Didi –“Maa bhukh nahi hai, fir bhi aap yahi kuch bhejwa
dijiye. Main kha lungi.”
Maa ne naste me aaloo ke parathe banaye the. Maine
Maa se bola ki Didi ke liya aaloo ke parathe thik nahi
honge abhi. Unke liye bread toast karna chahiye. Lekin,
Maa ne kaha koi problem nahi hai, bas thoda sa fever
hai. Wo parathe kha sakti hai. Thandi chize nahi khani
hai use bas. Priya ne plate me do parathe liye, orr Didi
ke kamre me chali gayi. Main bhi Priya ke sath gaya.
Maa –“Are ab tu kaha chala. Tu nasta to kar le ab.”
Me –“Maa, Didi ki tabiyat kharab hai. Aur aapko nasta ki
padi hai. Main bhi yahi nasta karunga.”
Maa –“Thik hai le apna plate, aur Priya ki plate bhi le ja.”
Maine apni aur Priya ki plate li, aur Didi ke pas aa
gaya. Mere picchhe picchhe maa bhi aa gayi apni plate lekar.
Pammi Didi –“Kya yaar, mujhe thoda sa fever hai bas,
tum log sabhi mere picchhe hi pad gaye ho. Mere kamre
ko dining room bana diya. Chalo niklo sab ke sab.”
Maa –“No beta, sabko tumhari fikar hai. Aisa nahi bolte.”
Pammi Didi –“Mammy, khane ki icchha nahi ho rahi hai.
Rahne do na. Baad me kha lungi na.”
Maa –“Nahi Pammi beta, kha lo. Tablets powerful tha
na, to khana to khana hi hoga.”
Maine Priya ke hatho se didi ki plate li, aur bola –“Didi,
acchha main aapko apne hatho se khilata hoon. Fir aap
jaldi se thik ho jayengi.”
Didi –“Ha tune jo khilaya tha na usi ke karan to ye
bukhar hua hai, ab aur na khila abhi. Baad me ji bhar ke
khaungi naa.”
Maa –“Kya khilaya isne aisa ki bukhar ho gaya.??????????”
Didi –“Kuch nahi Maa, kal Sourav mere liye chocolate
laya tha. Maine kuch jyada hi kha liya lagta hai.”
Priya –“Didiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiiii, aapne akele akele chocolate
khayi. Mujhe diya bhi nahi. Katti.”
Didi –“Are chhotta sa to tha hi, mera bhi mann pura
nahi bhara.”
Me –“To fir le aaunga, isme kya hai.”
Priya –“Mere liye bhi lana, mujhe bhi chocolate chahiye.”
Maa –“Acchha baba, main chalti hoon ab. Tum log Pammi
ka khayal rakho. Main khana banati hoon. Pammi beta,
hospitol jaogi kya.”
Pammi –“Kya Maa, har baat par hospitol. Nahi jana.
Dophar tak sab thik ho jayega.”
Maa nasta karke sabke plates lekar kitchen me chali
jaati hai. Sabne nasta bhi kar liya tha. Maine Didi ka
hath apne hatho me le rakha tha. Didi mere aankho me
aankhe daale dekh rahi thi. Main bhi Didi ke aankho me
dub gaya tha. Jaise mujhe apni Didi se hi pyar ho gaya
tha. Ye pyar hi tha, ya sirf chudai ki kamna. Didi ke
sarir ki bhini bhini khusboo mere nathuno me ja rahi thi.
Main dhire dhire Didi ke karib hote ja raha tha. Ek ajib
se kashish mahsoos ho rahi thi Didi ki nazro me. Dono ek
dusre ko dekhte hue kho gaye. Pyar ka ek anokha rishta
sa bandh gaya tha Didi se ab. Aise to wo meri sagi Didi
thi, lekin ye rishte usse bhi mazboot ho chuka tha. Kya
tha ye?? Main khud se ye sawaal kiye ja raha tha, lekin
meri aankhe to Didi ko ek tak dekhe ja rahe the.
Achanak, aisa mahsoos hua ki Didi ki ye haalat sirf meri
wajah se hui hai. Aur, Didi ke prati mera pyar aansu ke
ek boond ke roop me aankho se tapak pade. Mere
aanshu se Didi aur pighal si gayi. Aur, dono ek dusre ke
aankho me dub gaye. Priya ki mauzoodgi to jaise hum
bhul hi gaye the. Mere man me bas ek hi baat ghum
rahi thi – “ Kya yahi pyar hai????? ”
Update 18
Pammi Didi aur main ek dusre ke aankho ke jahnke hue
kho se gaye the. Priya wahi khade thi. Abhi tak to usne
koi pratikriya nahi di thi. Main dhire dhire Didi ki karib
badh raha tha. Didi bhi mujhe rok na payi. Tabhi,
Priya –“Ahemmm, kya, kya, Koi movie sa scene chal raha
hai kya???? Aise khoye ho ek dusre me ki kisi aur ka
khayal bhi nahi hai. Aise to bhayanak pitoge dono ek din.”
Me –“Kya hua, kuch bhi to nahi. Didi ki tabiyat kyu
kharab hone se mujhe acchha nahi lag raha hai. Sab
meri hi galti hai. Mujhe aisa nahi karna chahiye tha.”
Didi –“Sourav tum apne kamre me jao, yaha mera
khayal rakhne ke liye Priya hai.”
Me –“Didi sorry Didi, meri wajah se tumhari tabiyat
kharab ho gayi. Ab aisa nahi hoga.”
Didi –“Oye pagal ho gaya hai kya, mujhe bas thoda
fever hua hai. Tu ab jyada acting mat kar aur ja apne
kamre me. Main thode der me thik ho jaungi. Aur aise jo
bhi hua, uski jarurat mujhe jayada thi tumse. Tumhare
paas to Pooja thi hi, tum usse kaam chala sakte the.”
Me –“Didi, Pooja to sirf boor chodne di thi, gand wo
pahle Bipin se marwana chahti hai, fir agar uska man
hua to mujhe degi. Lekin, tumne to mujhe kunwari boor
aur gand di marne ke Didi. Aur maine dono baar tumhe
rula diya. Mujhe dhire chodna chahiye tha didi, sab meri
hi galti hai.”
Didi –“Koi baat nahi, ab tu ja yaha se. Rone dhone ki
jarurat nahi hai. Itna touchy bhi hone ki jarurat nahi
hai bhai.”
Me –“Priya Didi ka khayal rakhna. Main apne kamre me
jata hoon.”
Main apna kamre ki orr badha. Man hi man soch raha
tha ki aaj to Didi chudegi nahi mujhse. Main apne kamre
me gaya aur computer on karke laga surfing karne. XB
par login kiya to dekha sabne update manga hai mere
kahani ka. Kuch hua hi nahi hai aaj, to kya update
likhunga, jhutti kahani hi deni padegi kya next update me.
Maine update likhna suru kiya. Kam se kam 3-4 ghante
to lagenge ki ek masaledar update likhne me. Udhar
Maa kitchen me kaam kar rahi thi. Aur, Pammi aur Priya
apne kamre me baate kar rahi thi. Main bhi Xossip par
busy ho gaya.
Priya –“Didi, mujhe ab bhi samajh me nahi aaya ki, sirf
gand chudane se aapko bukhar ho gaya. Maine dekha to
tha, lekin mujhe nahi lagta ki sirf yahi karan hoga.”
Didi –“Are nahi, kal sham ko main Sourav ke kamre me
gayi thi, to waha usne meri boor chod daali thi. Bahut
jor se pel diya tha bhai ne, pahli baar tha mera to dard
bhi bahut jyada hua tha. Lekin thodi der baad mujhe bhi
maza aane laga tha. Fir raat ko to tumne dekha hi tha.”
Priya –“Lekin didi aisa kya hua to jo apke sarir ko itna
garam kar diya.”
Didi –“Are wo chocolate khayi thi na, wo sirf chocolate
hi nahi khayi thi maine.”
Priya –“To kya??”
Didi –“Sourav ka muth bhi pi thi maine, aur chocolate
bhi khayi thi sath me. Meetha aur Namkeen mixed swad
bahut acchha lag raha tha. Man kar raha hai ki fir se khau.”
Priya –“Didi, apne bhaiya ka land bhi chusa tha. Lekin
maine to aisa kuch nahi dekha tha.”
Didi –“Wo maine bhai ke kamre me chusa tha, jab hum
baramade se room me wapas chale gaye the tab.
Sourav ne to meri boor aur jangho ki maalis bhi kar di
thi. Lekin, main fir se garam ho gayi thi aur maine
Sourav ka land chusna suru kar diya tha. Main to pahle
se hi chahti thi uska muth pina, lekin wo de hi nahi raha
tha. Maine mauka dekh kar pi liya uska muth. Shayad isi
karan se meri body garam ho gayi hai.”
Priya –“Didi, aapko aisa nahi karna chahiye tha. Main
Maa ko sab bata dungi.”
Didi –“Are aisa mat karna, nahi to bahut maar padegi.
Aur pata nahi Papa kya saja denge.”
Priya –“Didi, Papa aapko kya saja denge, wo to aapke
gand ke picchhe sand ban kar ghum rahe hai. Apne jaha
thodi si skirt uthayi, to bas Papa chad ke pel denge
tumhari gand me apna 10” ka land.”
Didi –“Priya, kya baat hai tu aaj kuch jyada hi apsabdo
ka upyog kar rahi hai. Tu to aise baate nahi karti thi.”
Priya –“sorry Didi, lekin apki aur bhaiya ki chudai dekh
kar main puri tarah garam ho gayi thi, aur sath hi sath
Maa aur Papa ki bhi gand chudai dekhi. Mujhse ab
bardast nahi hota hai Didi. Sabko koi na koi mil gaya
hai. Lekin, meri bhatti ka khayal kisi ko nahi hai Didi.
Yaha tak ki aapne bhi mere baare me kuch nahi socha.
Apne dekha bhi ki main khidki par khadi akele apni
muniya ko ragad rahi hoon. Lekin, apne meri koi madad
nahi ki. Apko to bhaiya ka land mil gaya hai, aage
picchhe muh me, har jagah le le ke maza kar rahi hai.
Lekin, meri bhatti ka kya Didi. Main kya
karoon...........????????????”
Didi –“Priya, tu to abhi 18 ki hi hai. Tera boor ka ched
bhi abhi chotta hoga. Tu land le payegi kya abhi??
Thoda sabr kar, fir main tere liye kuch karungi.”
Priya –“Didi, main ab bacchi nahi rah gayi hu. Mujhe bhi
ab land chahiye, jaldi se mere baare me socho kuch,
nahi to mujhe bahar kuch intezam kar hoga. Aise bhi
mere kitne hi dost hai, jo mujhe dekhte hi laar tapkane
lagte hai. Skirt utarte hi pata nahi kitne land meri boor
aur gand me ghus jayenge, lekin main bahar chudna
nahi chahti didi. Didi ab aap hi kuch kar sakti hai.”
Didi –“Priya, Priya, adhir mat ho yaar. Iska upay
nikalungi main kuch. Lekin tu Maa se kuch sa kahna. Aur,
dekh Papa meri naam se Maa ki gand chod rahe the,
iska matlab ye to nahi hai ki Papa sach much me mere
sath aisa karenge. Iss baat ko yahi par dafan kar de
Priya. Main tumhare liye kuch intezam karti hu.”
Priya ko ab thoda aram milta hai, ki uski badi Didi uske
liye kisi na kisi land ka intezam to kar hi degi. Priya
muskurate hue Didi se boli –“Didi, uske liye to pahle
aapko thik hona hoga. Jaldi se thik ho jayiye aur fir
mere liye bhi ek lambe aur mote land ka jugaad kar dijiye.”
Didi –“Thik hai, ab ja tu apna kaam kar. Main thoda
aram karti hoon.”
Priya –“Ok Didi main bhaiya ke kamre me jati hu, dekhti
hu kya kar rahe hai bhaiya.”
Didi –“Ruk mat ja akele, wo bhut bada bahanchod hai,
aur madarchod bhi. Maa ki gand marna chahta hai wo.
Tujhe bhi nahi chhodega. Akele gayi to teri bhi gand
maar lega.”
Priya –“Marne do na didi, Darta kaun hai bhaiya ke land
se. Gand to marne dungi lekin pahle boor ki pyaas mitaungi.”
Didi –“Saali randi, achanak bahut bolne lagi hai. Pahle to
bada gumsum rahti thi.”
Priya –“Are Didi, jab aap mere samne apni gand utha
utha kar chudwa sakti hai, to kya main bol bhi nahi sakti.”
Didi –“Sambhal kar lekin, dekh meri kya haalat kar di
hai ek hi din me. Bach ke karna.”
Priya -“:chill: Didi, main apki tarah bewakoof nahi hu, jo
sukhi gand marwa lungi, acche se land par tel laga kar
lungi gand me.”
Priya hanste hue apne kamre se nikal kar mere kamre
ki aur aayi.
Priya apne kamre se nikal kar mere kamre ki orr badhi.
Hall se Priya ne mere khidki ki orr dekha. Mera
computer chalu tha, aur main computer ke samne baitha
kuch padh raha tha. Priya mere kamre me dakhil hoti
hai. Mujhe iss baat ka pata nahi chalta hai. Priya mere
picchhe aakar khadi ho jati aur screen par likhe vakyo
ko padhne ki koshish karti hai, par font chotte hone ki
wajah se padh nahi pati. Bas itna hi dekh paati hai ki
main kisi forum me kuch padh raha tha.
Priya –“Ye kaun si site hai. Aur, aap kya likh rahe ho bhaiya.”
Main chaunk kar picchhe palat-ta hu. Aur, jaldi se
screen minimize kar deta hu.
Me –“Priya tum yaha achanak, kaise? Koi kaam tha
kya? Kuch pucchha tha kya?”
Priya –“Bhaiya, pahle ye batao ki ye kaun si site thi. Ye
facebook to nahi thi. Koi aur community to join nahi na
kar rakha hai bhaiya?”
Me –“Are nahi ye ek public forum hai, duniya bhar ke
dhero log registered hai. Sab apne anubhav bant-te hai
ek dusre se. Kuck khas nahi hai.”
Priya –“Accha to main bhi register kar leti hoon. Naam
to batao jara.”
Me –“Priya, tu rahne de na. Iss site par ool-jhol cheeje
bhi milti hai. Teri liye thik nahi hai.”
Priya –“Kya thik nahi hai, Maine to live chudai dekhi hai
bhaiya. Wo bhi double scene wali. Mujhe bhi dekhna hai
aapka ool-jhol.”
Me –“Thik hai, exbii.com, ja tu bhi register kar le.”
Maine socha ki Priya ko Xossip ka purana naam bata kar
mama bana dunga. Aur usse pata bhi nahi chalega. Baad
me bol dunga ki shayad site band ho gayi.
Priya –“Thik hai bhaiya. Main jaati hoon apne computer
se register karti hoon. Aur dekhti hoon ki aapne kya kya
share kiya hai. Kahi Didi ki kahani to share nahi kiya hai na.”
Me –“Are bas aise hi kuch kuch likha hai. Tu ja na ab.”
Priya –“Nahi, pahle dikhao ki kya padh rahe the. Tab hi
main jaungi, aur apna ID batao, main tab na dekh
paungi ki tumne kya kya likha hai.”
Priya ne maximize karke dekha ki main kya likh raha
tha. Usne kuch kuch search kiya to paaya yaha hazaro
incest kahaniya hai. Priya ko acchha laga itni saari
kahaniya dekh kar. Wo bhi ab jald se jald register karna
chahti thi. Shayad wo bhi apne khayalo ko sabse bant-
na chahti thi.
Priya –“Wow, bhaiya ye to khatarnak site hai bhaiya.
Kitni saari Incest stories hai yaha, aur romantic bhi hai.
Main jaati hoon, jaldi se register karti hoon.”
Me –“Pagli, padhne ke liye register karne ki jarurat
nahi hai. Kitne hi log guest mode me padh kar hila lete
hai. Aur, chale jate hai. Koi register ki jarurat nahi.”
Priya –“Nahi bhaiya, ye to galat baat hai na. Kisi ki
kahani padh kar usse ye bhi na batana ki kahani kaisi
thi. Agar aisa hi hai to bazaar se koi kitaab kyu na
kharid le. Aur aise bhi jawaab dene ke paise to lagte
nahi. Main to register karungi.”
Me –“Priya, tu to kaafi samjhdar hai. Agar har insaan
tere jaisa sochne lage to kitna acchhi ho jayegi duniya.”
Priya –“Acchhi hogi ya nahi pata nahi. Par, aisa hi
chalta raha to saari duniya bahanchod jarur jayegi.
Aur, ab to ap madarchod bhi ban-ne ki koshish me lage
hai.” Priya ne hanste hue kaha.
Me –“Are tu jyada bol rahi hai ab. Bhaag yaha se, nahi to ....”
Priya –“Nahi to.... kya bhaiya?? Mujhe bhi chocolate
khila doge Didi ki tarah.” Priya nehans kar katakchh kiya.
Me –“Are tujhe Didi ne sab bata diya kya??”
Priya tan kar sidhi hoti hui sar ko upar utha kar khud
ko behtar dikhate hue boli –“Aur nahi to kya, mujhe
aapki saari kaali kartoote pata hai. Aap bahut bade
randibaaz ho bhaiya.”
Main kuch bol na paaya aur chupchap khada sunta raha.
Man hi man soch raha tha ki Priya tera number hi aayega.
Priya –“Kya soch rahe ho bhaiya, main to bas aise hi kah
rahi hoon. Aap to gambhir ho gaye.”
Me –“Main soch raha tha ki maine to Didi ki gori gori
gand maari hai, fir kartoot kaali kaise ho gayi.”
Priya –“OK, no more jokes, Main jaati hoon apne kamre
me aur register karti hoon. Fir padhti ho koi lovly incest.”
Priya hanste hue apne kamre ki orr badh jati hai. Main
usse dekhta rah jata hoon. Priya ke muskurahar ne
mere dimaag par kuch jaado sa kar diya hai. Uski awaaz
me ek ajib si mithas ka ahsash sa hone laga hai. Shayad
mere dil ko wo bhane lagi hai. Mausam aur waqt to
badalte hi rahta hai, lekin agar mizaaz badal kar apne
chotti bahan par ruk sa jaye to dimaag par ek jhatka sa
lagta hai. Mujhe apni chotti bahan Priya bhi acchhi
lagne lagi hai, shayad. Nahi, shayad nahi, sachmuch
acchhi lagne lagi hai. Main khud ko rok nahi pa raha
hoon usse niharne se. Samay tham sa gaya hai, jaise
samay ne apni gati kam kar di hai, taki main Priya ko
acche se nihar sakun. Mere aankhe Priya ke badan par
chipak si gayi hai. Uski hasi mere kaano me aise gunj
rahi hai. Main khud ko kisi band falak par mahsoos kar
raha hoon. Ab dimaag ka dil par kaboo nahi hai, aur
dimaag to mera pahle se hi bahanchod hai. Kahi mere
dimaag me Priya ke liye vasna to nahi jaag rahi. Jo bhi
ho, ye bahut sukhad ahsas hai. Main na chah kar bhi
Priya ko ghurta raha.
Main use bas dekhta hi rah gaya, aur wo bina ruke apne
kamre ke orr badhti chali gayi. Aage badhte hue Priya
ne picchhe palat kar meri orr dekha. 18 saal ki iss ladki
ki nazre dil ko cheer dene wali thi. 18 ki kacchi kali jo
khil kar phool ban-ne ko betaab thi. Wo kaali aankhe,
aur tikhe nain naksh, gulabi hoth – mano swarg ki koi
apsara si utar aayi ho jameen par. Main uske roop me
khoye ja raha tha. Dimaag ko kaboo me karne ki har
kosis nakaam ho rahi thi. Picchhe mudne se uske chuchhi
ke ek jhalak kinare se dikhi. Khade khade kya sughad
uroz the uske. Meri aankhe bina palak jhapkaye uske
roop me vilin se ho gaye the.
Meri aankhe ab uske sundar badan par fisalne se lage
the. Dhire dhire meri nazar uske kamar se hote hue
uske gand par jakar ruki. 32” ki wo patli kamar hriday
ke spandan ko bhadaye ja rahi thi, aur aankhe us
manoram najare se hatt hi nahi rahi thi. Aise to main
mote mote hilte gand ka deewana hoon. Par meri chotti
bahan Priya ke kase kase gol gol gand ka jadoo mujh
par chalne laga tha. Mere muh se ek aah si nikal gayi
thi. Hoth chhan bhar me hi sukhne se lage the. Priya ke
gand se mano shahad sa tapak raha tha, jise chatne ke
liye meri jibh khud-b-khud bahar aa gayi. Meri aah ki
awaaz se Priya wapas picchhe mudi, aur meri nazre ki
nishana dekh kar fir se muskurayi. Uski iss muskan ne
to mere havas ke agnikund me ghee ka kaam kiya.
Main daud kar uske chootado ko pakad lena chahta tha,
aur masal masal kar uske mansal kadak gand ko dheela
kar dena chahta tha. Kash iss samay usne wo skirt na
pahna hota to main Priya ki gol matol gand ko dekh
pata. Meri nazre uski gand par aise gadi thi jaise main
uske skirt ke andar tak dekh pa raha hoon. Kamre ke
andar jane se pahle Priya ne mujhe palat kar dekha.
Meri lalchai nazro ko Priya ne bhaap liya tha. Priya ko
kya sharat sujhi aur usne apna skirt picchhe se upar
utha diya. Meri nasre uski gand par tik gayi. Ankhe
faad faad kar main dekhta rah gaya. Uski gand ke fank
me safed rang ki panty ghusi hui thi. Land mera
tantana ke tanak gaya. Priya ne apni kamar ke chaar
thumke lagaye aur mujhe gand hila kar dikhaya, aur
kamre me ghus gayi. Priya ne darwaja band kar liya.
Priya ne saaf saaf ishara kar diya tha, ki main ab uske
seal band boor aur gand ka dhakkan khol du. Mere dil
me kash-m-kash chal rahi thi, aur dimaag ek bade
bahanchod ke tarah Priya ki chudai ke bare me sochne
laga. Ab kisi bhi tarah Priya ko dabochna tha. Iss baat
main wo galtiya nahi dohraunga jo Didi ko chodne me ki
thi. Main apne bistar par dhadam se gir pada. Aur,
takiye ko baho me bhar kar aahe bharne laga.
Aahhhh...... Priyaaaa.... Aaahh....
Update 19
Priya apne kamre me chali jati hai. Aur, main yaha apne
kamre me rah jata hoon khade land ke sath. Ab to bina
muth maare rah bhi nahi sakta. Ek kaam karta hoon
Bipin ko phone karta hoon, ki kya kar rha hai wo.
Me –“Bipin, kya kar rahe ho bhai?”
Bipin –“Kuch nahi yar, bas aise hi TV dekh raha hoon.”
Me –“Kyu chudai nahi chal rahi hai.?”
Bipin –“Abe ab 24 ghante chudai hi chalegi kya. Aur,
ghar par sab hai bhi to, Bhabhi aa gayi hai mayke se.
Aur, Pooja Didi to bhabhi ke sath hi rahti hai hamesa,
muskil se kabbhi kabhar mauka mil pa raha hai.”
Me –“Aaj kuch ho sakta hai kya. Mujhe jarurat hai aaj,
aur Pooja didi ki yaad bhi bahut aa rahi thi. To....”
Bipin –“Nahi yaar, abhi to kuch nahi ho sakta hai. Sab
hai ghar par. Fir kabhi dekhte hai. Chal bye.”
Me –“Abe ye to bata, ki Pooja Didi gand marwane ke
liye mani ya nahi.”
Bipin –“Pooja Didi to kabse gand marwane ke liye taiyar
hai, lekin mujhse. Tere bare me abhi tak baat ho nahi
payi hai. Kaise suruat karu samjh me nahi aa raha hai.”
Me –“Tu chhod de saale, tere bas ka nahi hai kuch.
Chutiya sala.”
Bipin –“Abe aur tu kaun sa teer maar raha hai ghar
par, tune apni Maa se baat ki kya??”
Me –“Nahi yaar, abhi tak to patta bhi nahi hila hai. Teer
ka khak chalega.”
Bipin –“Ok chal, tu bhi try kar, main bhi dekhta hu kuch.”
Me –“Thik hai yaar, chal bye.”
Bipin se baat karke bhi koi upday na nikla iska. Ab to
mujhe ki kuch karna hoga. 12 bajne ko aa rahe the. Main
hall se Didi ke kamre ki orr badha par achanak mujhe
kitchen me Maa dikh gayi. Main sofe par baith kar apni
Maa ki gand ko dekhne laga. Aur, ek hath se apne khade
land ko masalne laga. Lekin, ab mere land to asli boor ka
swad pata chal chuka tha. Ragadne se ab kuch fayda
nahi hone wala tha. Main man hi man sochne laga ki
Papa to bol rahe the Maa ko ki wo mujhse chudwa le.
Kya sach me Maa mujhse chudna chahti hai? Lekin baat
jo bhi ho, Maa to suruat karegi nahi. Wo to mujhe hi
karni padegi, aur kahi Maa ne inkaar kar diya to padegi
gand par laat.
Maine socha jo bhi ho try to karna hi padega, warna
kabhi kuch ho hi nahi payega. Main dhire dhire kitchen
ki orr badha. Maa khadi thi aur slab par kuch kaam kar
rahi thi. Main kitchen ke andar ghus chuka tha, par Maa
ko iss baat ka koi pata nahi tha. Shayad wo pata chalne
nahi dena chahti thi. Mere apne aap ko rok nahi pa raha
tha. Ek to raat ko Maa Papa ki chudai ka scene, Upar se
Didi ki boor aur gand, aur ab Priya ki gand ki jhalak ne
mere land ko pagal bana diya tha, main bilkul nahi rok
pa raha tha apne shaitan land ko.
Main soch raha tha ki picchhe se jakar Maa ko pakad
loon. Lekin himmat nahi ho rahi thi. Maine apni aankhe
band ki aur apne antarman se ye sawaal kiya ki main
kya karoon. Jawaab ha tha, lekin ye such me mera
antarman hi tha ya vasna ne mere antarman par kaboo
kar liya tha. Jo bhi ho lekin meri iss samasya ka hal ko
mere kosish me hi tha. Aue, daar bhi tha ki kahi Maa ne
palat kar ek thappad jad diya to kya karunga. Ab koi
aur rasta bhi nahi soojh raha thi. Maine apne land par
hath rakh kar faisla kiya ki jo bhi ho, ek baar kosish to
karni hi padegi..
Main aage badha aur Maa ko pichhe se pakad liya.
Maine dono hatho se Maa ki chuchiyo ko hath me bhar
kar masal diya. Maa ne koi jawab nahi diya. Mera land
Maa ki gand ki darar me ghus gaya. Land to mera pahle
se hi kadak tha. Jo Maa ki gand ke ched tak pahuch gaya.
Maa chaunk si gayi, mere aise hamle se. Maa aise hamle
ke liye taiyar nahi thi. Maa ne apni gand ko pichhe ki
orr dhakka dekar mujhe hatane ki kosis ki. Lekin, Maa
ke dhakke se mera land aur achhi tarah se unki gand ke
fank me atak gaya.
Mujhe pata tha ki Papa ne Maa ko mujhse chudwane ki
hari jhandi de di hai. Aur Pammi Didi aur Priya bhi
mere taraf hi hai. Fir, darne ki kya jarurat hai. Maine
Maa ki kamar ko jor se pakda aur jor jor se kamar
chalane laga. Maa koi pratikriya nahi dikha rahi thi.
Mere aise achanak hamle se shayad koi nirnay nahi le
pa rahi thi.
Maa –“Are Beta, ye kya kar rahe ho. Aisa bhi bhala koi
karta hai.”
Main –“Kyu kya hua maa, ab to Papa ne aapko mujhse
chudne ki anumati de di hai, fir aap kyu rok rahi hai mujhe.”
Maa –“Beta wo to thik hai, lekin aisa achanak kya kar
rahe ho.”
Main jor jor se Maa ke gand par apne khade land ko
ghop raha tha. Mera land ab bhi pant ke andar hi tha.
Lekin mera josh itna badh gaya tha ki mujhse bardast
hi nahi ho raha tha, main bad jaldi se apna muth nikalna
chahta tha. Shayad mann me daar tha ki agar maine
Maa par pakad dhili ki to wo mujhe satne bhi nahi degi
fir. Chahe jo bhi ho, chahe jo bhi saja mile, lekin ek baar
main Maa ki gand me jarur chodna jhadna chahta tha.
Maa –“Are beta, aise pagal sand ki tarah kyu dhakke
maar rahe ho. Meri saari bhi mere gand me daal dega kya?”
Main –“aaaah aaaah Maa, meri chudasi maa, le apne
bete ka land, aur le .... jor jor se le.... Tu bahut badi
randi hai maa. Apne maa ki badle bhi gand marati ho,
aur Dadi ke badle bhi Papa teri hi gand marte hai. Le
apne bete ka bhi land le gand me Maa.”
Maa –“OOOh mere madarchod bete, pahle land to bahar
nikal lete, kapde ki ragad se kahi tera supada chhil na jaye.”
Main –“Main nahi chhodne wala aapki gand maa, agar
chhoda to tum bhag jaogi. Fir mujhe nahi chodne dogi.”
Maa –“Kyu nahi dungi? Tumhare Papa ne to pahle hi
tujhse chudne ke liye bola tha, main bhi bas mauka hi
talash rahi thi bete. Aur, aise bhi tere land se main kyu
darungi beta, tera to chhota sa funni hai abhi. Tere
Papa ka 10 inchi land jab main aram se le leti hoon to
tera 5” ka land se mere gand ka kya hoga beta.”
Main –“Maa, aah aah, land ki lambai se kya fark padta
hai Maa, fark to padta hai ki dhakke kitne jor pad rahe
hai. Maine aapki aur Papa ki chudai kal raat dekhi thi,
Dadi aur nani ke roleplay me Papa aapki gand chod rahe the.”
Main jor jor se Maa ki gand me apna land ghop raha
tha. Maa ki sari petticoat sahit maa ki gand me ghus
gayi thi. Papa ke mote land se chudwa chudwa kar Maa
ki gand ka ched itna bada ho gaya tha ki sari sahit
mera land andar chala jata.
Maa apni gand utha utha kar mujhe hatane ki kosis kar
rahi thi. Lekin, main vasna ke toofan me andha hokar
apni Maa ko aise paglo ki tarah jakad rakaha tha. Mere
har dhakke par Maa kitchen ke slab par takra si jaati thi.
Maa –“Kya kar raha hai Saurav, ruk ja ab. Mujhe chot
lag rahi hai. Hath bhi kitchen ke kaamo me vayast hai.
Abhi ruk ja. Main 2 minute me tujhse chudwati hu. Ruk
ja abhi.”
Maa ki baat sun kar main sahsa ruk gaya. Main –“Maa,
sach aap mujhse chudwayengi. Main rukta hoon 2 min fit to.”
Maine Maa ki kamar chhod di, aur, achhe bachhe ki
tarah Maa se char kadam pichhe hat kar kahda ho gaya.
Land mere abhi bhi khada tha. Supade me jalan si ho
rahi thi. Achanak land me tezz dard hua. Aur dard se
niche baith gaya. Main –“aah Maa, dard ho raha hai land me.”
Maa ne turant aage badh kar meri pant kholi aur mere
land ko hath me lekar nirikshan kiya ki kahi mere land
me jyada chot to nahi aayi hai.
Maa –“Bola tha na, kapde ke upar se mat kar. Fir bhi tu
nahi mana, ab dekho tere supade ki chamdi chhil gayi
hai. Ab raho aise hi 5 din tak. Aisi chot 5 din se pahle
thik bhi nahi hogi. Bete itna utawalapan thik nahi hai
aise mamlo me.”
Main –“Maa kya karta, Priya ki harkato ne mujhe
bekaboo kar diya tha, aur aapki gand dekh kar bardast
nahi hua. Main to kabse aapki gand marna chahta hoon.
Aaj mere sabr ka bandh toot gaya, aur maine ye galti
kar di.”
Maa –“Bete, main to sirf sahi mauke ka intezaar kar
rahi thi. Aur, soch bhi rahi thi ki tumse kaise baat karu.
Lekin, tumhare aise achanak hamle ke liye taiyar nahi
thi main bilkul.”
Main –“Maa, jalan ho rahi hai, thoda chus kar shant kar
do na. Mera maal bhi nikal jayega aur chot ko rahat bhi milegi.”
Maa –“Nahi beta, abhi to kuch bhi nahi karna tu. Chot ko
pahle thik hone de, fir dekhti hoon tere sath kaise
samay nikalna hai. Pammi aur Priya bhi to hai ghar me.
Unhe bhi to pata nahi chalna chahiye.”
Main –“Kya pata nahi chalna chahiye. Unko sab pata hai.
Kal raat jab aap Papa se gand marwa rahi thi, tab main
aapke kamre ke bahar Pammi Didi ki gand maar raha
tha. Aur, kal shaam ko Pammi Didi ne apni boor ki seal
bhi mujhse khulwa li hai. Aur, Priya to hum charo ki
chudai dekh kar khidki par khade hokar ragad rahi thi
apni boor ko. Unhe sab pata hai, unse koi daar rahi hai.”
Meri aise baate sunkar Maa ka muh khula ka khula rah
gaya. Maa –“Kya, Tumne Pammi ko pahle hi chod diya
hai. Aur gand bhi maar li uski. Tu sirf madarchod nahi,
bahanchod bhi ban chuka hai.”
Main –“Maa, main bahanchod to ban chuka hoon, lekin
jab aap apni gand maraogi tab na madarchod banunga.”
Maa –“Chalo koi baat nahi, Jo hua so hua. Ab jab tera
land thik ho jayega, tab main khud tere pas chudne
aaungi. Abhi to aisa hona mumkin nahi hai beta.”
Maa ki baat sunkar mujhe gussa aa gaya. Mujhe kuch
sujh nahi raha tha. Kisi bhi tarah main yaha apna muth
nikalne ke liye paresan tha. Aur meri chinal maa mujhe
zyaan de rahi thi. Main turant uth khada hua. Aur,
jhukte hue Maa ki choti ko mutthi me pakad kar khichte
hue maa ko pichhe palat diya, dhakka dekar slab par jhuka diya.
Maa –“Beta, aah aah, dard ho raha hai, Baal mat khicho
mere. Are beta, tere land par chot lagi hai. Abhi kuch
bhi mat kaarna beta.”
Maine maa ki ek bhi baat na maani. Aur ek hath se apna
pant niche utar diya. Mera land bahar aa chuka tha.
Maine ek pair se Maa ki sari ko petticoat ko upar
uthaya. Aur hath se utha kar kamar tak upar kar di.
Maa ne pink color ki panty pahan rakhi thi. Maine panty
ko khich kar niche khiska diya jang tak. Aur, Maa ki
nangi gand par do jordaar tamache mare. Chat chat.
Maa chilla uthi.
Maa –“Aaah beta, ek to jabardati chod raha hai. Aur ab
maar bhi raha hai. Madaarchod bete mere.”
Maine maa par jara bhi daya na dikhate hue gand ke
dono paato par chat chat do aur thappad laga di. Maa
ki gori gori 38 inch ki chaudi gand mere thappado se
laal ho gayi. Main maa ki gand par thapaad lagata raha
aur, aage badh kar gand ki ched me apna land sata
diya. Maa ki gand ki Papa ke land se chudkar samundar
ban chuki thi. Maine jor se ek jhatka diya, aur pak se
mere supada maa ki gand me ghus gaya.
Maa jor se chikhi –“Aaaah beta nahi, aaram se choda
beta. Kal raat chudwa chudwa kar aise hi gand ki haalat
kaharab hai. Aur tu bhi joe se chodega to mera kya hoga.”
Maa ki awaaz sun kar Pammi Didi aur Priya bhi kamre
se bahar aa gayi. Kitchen ke paas aakar dono ne dekha
ki main maa ko jhuka kar bhokiya raha hoon. Dono ko
jaise vishwas hi nahi ho raha tha ki main jabardasti maa
ko chod raha tha.
Priya –“Bhaiya ye kya kar rahe ho. Maa ke sath aisa
nahi kar sakte tum.”
Pammi Didi –“Saurav, bahut ho gaya, chhodo maa ko.
Chodna hi hai to aram se chodo. Aise nahi karna chahiye.”
Maine Didi aur Priya ki kisi baat par koi dhyan na dete
hue 4 dhakke aur laga diye. Maa ki gand me mera pura
6” ka land ghus chuka tha. Kal raat ki tabadtod chudai
se maa ki gand me dard tha sayad, isliye mere 6” ki
land se bhi karah uthi thi. Maine Maa ki choti ko khichte
hue ghapa ghap kamar hilana suru kiya. Maa jor jor se
chilla rahi thi. Aur, Didi aur Priya achambhit hokar Maa
ki gand chudai dekh rahi thi.
Priya ne aage badh kar mujhe rokne ki kosis ki. Par
Pammi didi ne usse rok liya.
Pammi –“Priya mat roko. Chudno do usko iss randi ko.”
Priya –“Didi wo hamari maa hai. Aisa kaise bol sakti ho tum?”
Pammi –“Saali ek number ki chinal randi hai. Pata nahi
kitno se chudwati hogi. Papa bhi madarchod hai bade
wale. Priya tune to sab dekha aur suna hai. Chudne de
iss haramzyadi ki gand. Saurav, aur jor se chod saali ko.
Papa ke land inch ka land jhel leti hai ye.
Dikha de apne 6” ke land ka jadoo. Ghuma ghuma kar
pel saali randi ko.”
Pammi Didi ki baate sun kar Priya bhi didi ka saath
dene lagi. Aur un dono ki baatein sun kar main aur josh
me aa gaya, aur Maa ko dhaka dhak chhapa chaap pelne
laga. Maa ki gand se garam garam dhuwa nikal raha
tha, aur main apni randi maa ki baal khich raha tha.
Saath hi saath main Maa ki gand par thappad maare ja
raha tha. Har dhakke par Maa ki chikh nikal jaati thi.
Issi tarah main Maa ki gand 15 minute tak chodta raha.
Ab mera muth nikalne wala tha.
Main –“Lagta hai mera muth nikalne wala hai maa, aaah
meri randi pyari chukkad maa.”
Maa –“Ha beta , daal de apna muth apni chinaal maa ke
gand me, ban ja madarchod bete.”
Maine dhaka dhak 5-6 dhakke lagaye jor ke. Aur, maa ki
gand me apna muth fach fach karke chhod diya. Pammi
Didi aage badh kar mere land chatne lagi. Pammi Didi
mera muth pi chuki thi. Usse fir se mere muth pina
tha. Maa ki palat kar mere land par lage muth ko
chatne lagi.
Maa aur Didi aur paglo ki tarah mere land se nikalne
wale ek ek bund ko pi rahi thi. Aur samne khadi Priya
achabhit ho kar dekh rahi thi. Main Priya ki orr dekh
raha tha. Priya ki aankho me vasna ki dore tairne lage
the. Main samajh chuka tha. Lekin, abhi main aur chod
nahi sakta tha. Maine apne land ki orr dekha. Supada
chill gaya tha.
Maa –“beta, tere land par chot lagi hai. Ruk koi cream
laga deti hoon.”
Pammi Didi ab bhi mere land par lage bache muth ko
chat rahi thi. Maa ne Priya ko cream lane ko kaha. Priya
maa ke kamre se cream lakar di. Maa ne mere land par
bahut pyar se cream laga di.
Maa –“Ja ab naha le. Aur ab 4-5 din tak kuch karne ki
sochna bhi mat.”
Main –“Maa nahana to aapko bhi padega, chalo na sath
me nahate hai.”
Maa aur main dono sath me nahane chale gaye. Didi aur
Priya wapas apne kamre me chale gaye. Main bahut
thak chuka tha. Bas ab aram karna chahta tha. Nahakar
main apne kamre me chala gaya. Aur, Maa fir se
kitchen ke kaamo me jt gayi.
Update 20
Pichhle update me aapne padha ki kaise maine kitchen
me jabardasti apni Maa ki gand mari. Aur Pammi Didi
aur Priya khadi hokar dekhti rahi. Aur sirf dekhti hi
nahi rahi, balki mera josh bhi badhati rahi. Maa ki gand
chudai ke baad main aur Maa sath nahane chale gaye,
aur Pammi Didi aur Priya apne kamre me chali gayi.
Mere supade ki chamdi chill jane ke karan tezz jalan ho
rahi thi. Maa ke cream lagane se thoda aaram to hua.
Lekin dard ab bhi tha. Maa bathroom ki aur badhi aur
maine Maa ke matakte hue gand ko dekhta Maa ke
pichhe pichhe bathroom ki orr chal diya. Bathroom ke
andar jaate hi maine Maa ko pichhe se pakadne ki kosis
ki. Lekin, Maa jaldi se palat gayi aur mujhe danta.
Maa –“Abhi turant chot lagi hai na tere land par. Abhi
koi shaitani nahi. Pahle thik ho ja fir main khud tujhse
chudne aati hoon.”
Main –“Kya karoon Maa, tere bhari bhari fule hue
chuttaro ko dekhte hi inme land satane ki icchha hoti hai.”
Maa –“Abhi kuch din ichha ho daba ke rakh. Aise bhi 5
minute pahle hi tune meri gand jor ki chodi hai. Ab aur
kuch karne ki sochna bhi mat.”
Main –“Thik hai Maa, jaise aap bole. Lekin aapko
nahlaunga main. Aur aap to mujhe nahlati hi aayi hai
bachpan se.”
Main sabun utha kar Maa ke pith par ragadne laga.
Mere hath maa ke pith par chal rahe the. Dhire dhire
main niche ki orr badhne laga. Maine niche baithte hue
Maa ki jangho aur pairo par sabun lagana suru kiya.
Mere hath firane se shayad Maa ko bahut aanand ki
anubhuti ho rahi thi. Maa bhi niche baith gayi. Aur ek
sabun lekar mere badan parlagane lagi. Aisa lag raha
tha mano hum sabun sabun khel rahe ho.
Maa ne kaha ki ab der mat karo. Jaldi se nahakar bahar
chalte hai. Bahar Pammi aur Priya kya kar rahi hai, ye
dekhte hai.
Maa –“Tu to bada shaitan nikla beta. Pammi ko kab aur
kaise fasa liya tune. Aage se choda to choda, pichhe se
bhi maar li. Ab jaldi se thik ho ja, aur meri boor bhi
chod ke maza le. Waise bhi pata nahi kitne din ho gaye
boor chudwaye.”
Main –“Aisi gand mile to koi boor kyu chodega Maa. Teri
gand hai ki aisi sexy, ki boor ko chhod koi bhi teri gand
hi marega. Mere dost bhi tere gand hi dekhte rahte hai.”
Maa –“Kya bol raha hai?? Tujhe kaise pata ki tere dost
meri gand dekhte hai.”
Main –“Maa, wo Bipin hai na mera dost, wo aapki gand
marna chahta hai. Aur badle me mujhe uski Didi ki gand
marne dega.”
Maa –“Nahi nahi, main aisa nahi kar sakti. Tere kisi dost
se chudwaungi to baat bahar failegi. Aur badnami ka
khatra bhi bahut hai.”
Main –“Kuch nahi hoga Maa. Mere baare me to soch.
Teri aisi chudi hui gand ke badle Pooja ki kori gand ka
udgathan karne milega mujhe.”
Maa –“Wah, kya saudebazi kiya hai mere bete ne. Lekin
beta abhi to tere land par chot lagi hai uska kya? Thik
hone ke baad hi kuch ho sakta hai. Tu jaldi se thik ho ja.
Fir dekhte hai.”
Main –“Ok Maa, thi k hai, lekin baad me mukar na jana.”
Maa –“Main kyu pichhe hatungi. Tere Papa ke 10 inch ka
land aram se le leti hoon main. To tera dost ka to funni
hoga chhota sa. Uska land to mere gand me aisa
ghusega jaise glass me chammach.”
Main –“Thik hai Maa, chalo ab jaldi karo. Didi aur Priya
wait kar rahi hongi.”
Main aur Maa nahakar kapde pahne. Aur, hall me aaye.
Didi aur Priya apne kamre me thi.
Maa –“Beta, mujhe to sharm aa rahi hai. Pata nahi
Pammi aur Priya se kaise aankhe milaungi. Tumne to
mujhe beizzat kar diya unke samne.”
Main –“Koi baat nahi hai Maa, Tum bolo to Pammi Didi
ko tumhare samne chod deta hoon. Fir hisaab barabar
ho jayega..”
Maa –“Main unki Maa hoon bete. Pata nahi kya soch rahi
hongi wo mere baare me.”
Main aage badh kar Maa ki baaho me bhar liya. Aur
haath firate hue maa ki chuttaro ko pakad liya.Aur bola
–“Wo kuch nahi soch rahi hongi. Pammi Didi to Papa ke
land se chudne ko bechain hai. Aur, rahi baat Priya ki to
usne apni skirt utha kar mujhe hari jhandi de di hai.
Mauka milte hai uski bhi chudai kar dalunga.”
Maa –“Saurav bete, tu bahut bada bahanchod hai. Maa
aur Didi ki gand chod kar 12 ghante bhi nahi hue hai
aur apni chhoti bahan ki gand marne ki sochne laga.”
Main –“Maa, Priya bhi ab taiyaar ho chuki hai. Maine
uska faal nahi chaka to koi aur uska juice bana daalega.
Usne jaise apni gand hila kar mujhe dikhayi thi, mujhe
pakka yakeen hai ki wo 2 4 din me mere niche aa hi
jayegi. Buri tarah jal rahi hogi wo to.”
====================================================
Maa –“Jo bhi ho beta, lekin abhi to tu kuch bhi mat karna.”
Main –“Thoda sa to chila hai Maa, 2 din me thik ho
jayega. Fir to tumko khub chodunga Maa.”
Maa ne Didi ke kamre ka darwaja khatkhataya. Priya ne
darwaja khola.
Maa Priya se aankhe nahi mila pa rahi thi. Aur, Priya bhi
asamaanya vyahavar kar rahi thi.
Maa ke pichhe kuch dur par main khada tha. Priya ne
sharmate hue mere taraf nazar ghumayi. Aur, mere
aankho me dekha.
Aur, jhat se nazre nichi karke kamre ke andar bhaag
gayi. Didi apne bistar par leti thi.
Maa kamre ke andar ghusi. Main bhi pichhe pichhe andar
aa gaya. Maa Didi ke bistar par kinare baith gayi.
Aur Didi ka bayee hath ki kalai pakad kar ungliyo se
badakar kuch mahsoos karne ki kosis ki.
Maa –“Ab kaisa lag raha hai Pammi. Bukhar to kam ho
gaya hai lagta hai.”
Priya ne dhime se badbadate hue kaha –“Didi ka to
bukhar utar gaya. Par aapko chad gaya chudai ka bukhar.”
Pammi Didi –“Thik hai Maa. Ab achha lag raha hai. Ab to
bhukh bhi lag rahi hai. Lekin ….”
Priya ne fir se badbadaya –“Ha tu to chud hi chuki hai.
Maa ko bhi mil gaya bhai ka land. Ab kya lekin ….”
Maa –“Lekin kya, main abhi turant khana lagati hoon.
Tum log fresh hokar table par aao.”
Priya dhire dhire bakbak kar rahi thi –“Kya karenge
table par, kahna khayenge, ya fir se aapki aur didi ki
chudai hongi.”
Main Didi aur Priya ke bistar ke bich khada tha. Priya
yun to bahut dhire dhire bakbaka rahi thi.
Lekin main kuch kuch sun pa raha tha. Priya ki aankho
me gussa saaf saaf jhalak raha tha. Mere samjh se to
bilkul bahar tha ‘Kyu’??
Priya aankhe tarer kar mujhe hi dekh rahi thi. Aur jaise
hi main uski aankho me dekhta.
Wo chehra khidki ki orr ghuma leti thi. Mere samjh me
to nahi aa raha tha ki ise kya ho gaya ab.
Maa ka Priya ke baato par koi dhyan nahi gaya, lekin
Pammi Didi ko uske haav-bhav se andaza ho gaya tha ki
uske maan me kuch to ulta pulta chal raha hai.
Didi –“Priya, Kya badbad kar rahi hai akele akele. Kuch
bolna hai to saaf saaf bol na.”
Priya –“Kuch nahi bolna hai mujhe. Aise bhi mujhe bhukh
bhi jor ki lagi hai. Aur aap sab log to kuch aur me hi busy ho.”
Didi –“Tu jyada natak mat kar ab. Aur, tere chehre par
jo ye 12 baje hai na, ye mujhe dikh raha hai. Jo baat hai
saaf saaf bata ab.”
Priya –“Mujhe kuch nahi kahna. Maa aap khana lagao bas
ab. Main aati hoon.” Priya ki baato me ek ajeeb sa bhav tha.
Main samajh nahi pa raha tha, ye kya hai. Gussa hi hai
ya kuch aur. Par wo khul kar kuch bol to rahi nahi thi.
============================================================
Pata nahi, shayad Didi aur Priya ke bich kuch anban hui
hogi. Wo to main Didi ko garam karke ugalwa hi lunga.
Lekin abhi to chup rahna hi behtar hoga. Jab Didi aur
Maa aise ki chud rahi hai to hadd se jyada kabiliyat
jhadne ki jarurat hi kya thi. Main chupchap Maa ki paas
jakar khada ho gaya. Priya ke chehre par gussa saaf
dikh raha tha.
Maa –“Chal yaha se, Kitchen me meri madad kar, khana
table par lagane me.”
Maa uth kar kitchen ki taraf badhi. Main to hutch dog
ki tarah Maa ke pichhe pichhe chala. Jate jate maine
Didi ki orr palat kar dekha. Par Didi ke chehre par koi
vismaykari bhav na the. Shayad Didi is baat se avgat
thi ki aaj nahi kal main Maa ko chodunga jarur.
Maa ne kitchen me jakar khane ki plate mere hath me
dekar mujhe table par rakhne ko kaha. Aur, khud baki ki
taiyariyo me jut gayi. Maa bhi puri tarah se samaanya
thi. Lag hi nahi raha tha ki unko koi gussa hai iss baat
ka ki maine unki gand jabardasti maari hai. Maine Maa
ko fir se pichhe se pakadne ki kosis ki. Lekin iss baar
bahut halke se pakda. Maa ke kamar ke aage hath le
jakar maine dhire se dabaya.
Maa –“Chhodo bhi. Ye kya hai. Fir se wahi harkat. Chalo
pahle khana khao. Aur aise bhi tera auzaar abhi 4 din
isstemaal nahi kiya ja sakta.”
Main –“Maa, mujhe aisa lag raha hai ki tum mujhse gussa ho.”
Maa –“Gussa!! Main gussa wussa nahi hu, main kyu
gussa karungi. Mere chehre se tujhe aisa lag raha hai kya.”
Main Maa ko pakad kar dhire dhire hila dula raha tha.
Maa ki bhari gand thal thal karke hil rahi thi, aur mera
land fir se uthne laga. Maa ki gand me mere land ka
dabav badhte hi Maa ne mere haath khol kar mujhe dur kiya.
Maa –“Ab jaa tu. Pammi Aur Priya bhi bahar aa hi rahe
honge. Fir se hame sath dekha to kya sochenge.”
Maine Maa ki kalai pakad kar apne orr khicha, aur baho
me bhar liya. Maa ke gulabi hoth tharthara rahe the. Jo
iss baat ka sabut the ki Maa fir se chudna chahti hai.
Maine Maa ke gulabi hotho par apne hoth rakh diye.
Aur Maa ke hoth chusne laga. Maa bhi mera saath dene
lagi. Shayad maine Maa ke havaskund me patthar maar
diya tha, unki havas bhadak uthi. Maa ka badan fir se
garam hone laga. Maa mujhse chipki hui thi, isliye unka
badhta taap main mahsus kar sakta tha. Maa ab mere
upar havi hone lagi thi.
Maa ne mere saar ko pakad kar mere hotho ko chusna
suru kar diya. Ab main nahi, Maa mera shikaar kar rahi
thi. Mujhe bahut bura laga. Maine maa ki pakad se apne
hoth chhudaye.
Main –“Kya Maa, kha jaogi kya mere hoth?? Aise to
mera balaatkar ho gaya na.”
Maa –“Tune jo aag lagayi hai bete, usko bujhana bhi
tumhi ko hai. Aur, abhi thodi der pahle jo tumne mera
balaatkar kiya hai, uska kya??”
Main –“Galti ho gayi Maa, ab se tumhare sath kabhi
jabardasti nahi karunga Maa.” Kahkar maine apne kaan
pakad liye.
Maa –“Nahi bete, mujhe thoda dard to hua, lekin mazaa
bhi bahut aaya. Aaj tak tere Papa ne mujhe kabhi
jabardasti nahi choda hai, ekk alag saa maza aaya bete.
Maine aisa kabhi socha bhi nahi tha.”
Maa aage badhi, aur fir se mere hotho par apne hoth
rakh diye. Aur pyar se chusne lagi. Itne der me Pammi
Didi kamre se bahar aa gayi thi. Mere nazre Pammi Didi
par gayi. Maine Maa ko hatane ki kosis ki, lekin ye
besharam aurat to puri tarah se garam ho chuki thi.
Hatne ka naam hi nahi le rahi thi.
Pammi Didi –“Hmmm. Agar aap logo ka scene khtm hua
ho to, khana kha le. Ki aaj hi puri Murder Movie bana
daalenge aap log.”
Didi ki baato me ek kataksh sa tha. Didi ki awaz sun kar
Maa ko hosh aaya. Unhone mujhe chhoda aur pichhe
hatt gayi. Itne me Priya bhi kamre se bahar aa gayi.
Aur, hum teeno ki orr dekha.
Aise to abhi sab kuch samaanya ho chuka tha. Lekin fir
bhi Priya ko shak sa hua. Usne apne hath ajib tarike se
ghumaye, jaise vismit si thi. Aur, khane ke table par
baith gayi. Lekin, Main Maa aur Didi jas ke tas khade the.
Priya –“Enough is enough!! Mujhe bhukh lagi hai. 2 bajne
ko hai. Ab koi yaha aayega, ya pyar ki nadiya bahti
rahegi yaha kal-kal-kal-kal.”
Priya ki baat me kai saare saar mile hue the. Mere
samajh se bilkul bahar tha. Ye sirf bhukh nahi tha,
gussa aur jalan bhi kut-kut ke bhara tha isme.
========================================================
Priya ke andar jalan ki bhavna uth rahi thi. Jo uske
chehre par saaf dikh rahi thi. Hum log sab khane ke
table par baithe. Aur, khana khane lage.
Maa ne meri orr dekh kar kaha -"Aaj badi der ho gayi,
abhi tak tere Papa ne phone nahi kiya. Khana khane ke
baad jara phone mila kar to dekh."
Maine khana khane ke baad Papa ko phone kiya. Thodi
der baat karne ke baad Maa ko phone de di. Maa baat
karte hue kamre me chali gayi. Jaate hue Maa ne Didi
ko table saaf karne ke liye bol diya. Sabne khana kha
liya tha. Priya kisi se koi baat nahi kar rahi thi. Khana
khakar Priya ne sink me hath dhoya. Aur, pair patakte
hue kamre me chali gayi. Main pichhe se uski gand
dekhta rah gaya. Priya ke hilte hue nitambho ko dekh
kar mere hosh hi udd gaye the. Main kho sa gaya uski
thirakti hue gando ko dekhkar.
Tabhi, Didi ne mere hath par chikoti kati, aur mere muh
se aaahhhh nikal gaya. Priya ko laga ki maine uski gand
dekh kar aah bhari hai. Wo gusse se tamtama kar pichhe
mudi. Aur, mujhe muh chidha kar bhaag gayi. Kamre me
jakar wo apne bistar par let gayi.
Didi aur main bhi khana kha chuke the. Didi table saaf
karne me jutt gayi. Saare bartano ko kitchen ke sink
me le jakar rakh rahi thi. Maine bhi Didi ka hath batana
suru kiya. Tabhi Maa ne kamre se awaaz lagayi.
Maa –“Pammi Beta, bas tu table clean kar de. Baki main
kitchen aur bartan saaf kar dungi.”
Pammi Didi –“Koi baat nahi Maa. Main bartan saaf kar
deti hoon. Aap thoda aram kar lo. Bahut thak gayi hongi.”
Main –“Thak to main bhi gaya hu. Main bhi jata hoon
apne kamre me.”
Pammi Didi –“Haan, Jaldi jaa. Tere se koi madad leni bhi
nahi hai. Pata nahi kab pichhe se aakar pakad le. Aur,
aise bhi tu to ab insaano si chudai karta nahi hai. Tera
andar ke jaanwar ko achhe se pahchan gayi hoon main.
Sabse pahle kal sham meri boor aisi fadi ki rula diya
mujhe, fir raat ko bhi dardnaak tarike se gand maari
meri. Abhi tak soojhi hui hai. Aur, fir abhi Maa ki aise
jabardasti jordar gand mari. Wo to Maa ki gand Papa ke
10 inchi land se chud chud kar khai ban gayi hai, nahi to
Maa bhi ro hi deti. Naa baba na, tujhse dur rahne me hi
bhalai hai. Main nahi aati tere pas ab. Ek din dekha
chudwa kar, tabiyat hi bigad di tere land ne to.”
Main –“Haa, ab to tujhe Papa ke lambe mote land ki
pyaas jag gayi hai na. Mere chotte se auzar se tere
bolts nahi khulenge ab. Lekin yaad rakhna Didi, Papa ke
land se chudwane ke baad teri bhosdi darrra se ghati
me badal jayegi. Fir kitne bhi nadiya guzre tujhe maza
nahi aayega. Fir mote mote land ke liye idhar udhar
nachti firogi.”
Pammi Didi –“Main Papa se nahi chudwane wali. Tere
chotte se lulli ne mera ye haal kiya hai to Papa ke hathi
jaise land se mera kya hoga. Mujhe apne boor ke barah
nahi bajane hai. Choti si, patli si, sankri si meri pyari
pyari boor ko khaibar ke darre me badalne me kaafi
samay lagega. Aur, uske liye bhi naa jane mujhe kitne
saare land lene honge. Tab kahi jaakar mote mote laude
lungi main. Jab main pura mazaa loot lungi jawani ke, fir
chahe darre se ghati bane ya pura bhumandal hi ghus
jaaye mere bhosde me, usse mujhe koi fark nahi padta
bhai. Lekin, abhi to meri muniya ne khilna suru ki kiya
hai. Muskil se muh hi to khola hai mere boor ne, aur tum
sochte ho ki apni adhkhili kali ko Papa ke laude tale
kuchalwa doon. Nahi bhai, maine to abhi bas pahla
kadam badhaya hai. Abhi ye mere bas me nahi hai.”
=====================================================
Didi ki aise kaamuk baate sunkar mere andar vasna ka
jwalamukhi dhadhak uda. Didi ki aise maadak baato se
aabhas ho raha tha ki Maa ki jabardasti hui chudai dekh
kar Didi ke mann ki kisi kone me soya koi lalsa jagrit ho
chuka hai. Didi ki baato ka jadoo mere land par bhi
chalne laga.
Mere land fir se saar uthane laga tha. Didi sink par
thoda jhuk kar bartan dho rahi thi. Jhukne se didi ki
bhari si badi gand aur ubhar gayi thi. Main Didi ke
pichhe khade hokar Didi ki matakti gand ko dekh raha
tha. Ab mujhme bardast karne ki chhamta nahi thi. Aisi
mast gand saamne rahte hue kaise control kar sakta
tha main, wo bhi jis gand par maine apni muhar pahle hi
laga di thi.
Maine aage badh kar Didi ki dono nitambho ko hath rakh
diye. Aur, dabane laga. Didi ne koi pratikaar nahi kiya.
Jaise unhe pahle se hi zyaat tha ki main aisa karunga.
Main Didi ke badan par puri tarah se chipak kar sahlane
laga. Didi ki sharir ki garamhat badhne lagi. Aur, mera
haal to puchhne ki jarurat nahi hai ab.
Pammi Didi –“Maine kaha tha na ki tu yaha raha to fir
se koi na koi harkat karega. Chal ab chhod mujhe, bahut
kaam pada hai baki.”
Main –“Haai Pammi Didi, aapki aisi gaddedar pavroti si
bhari bhari gand dekh kar muh me paani aa jata hai.
Kitna bhi kosish kar lu lagaam kasne ki, par ye ghoda to
kaboo me aata hi nahi mere. Dil ko to samjha bhi loon,
par ye mera khutta jo ek baar tere gadde me gad gaya
hai na Didi, baar baar wahi khuttwane ko bol raha hai.”
Pammi Didi –“Chal hatt yaha se, Nahi to Maa ko bulati
hoon abhi. Fir pata chalega tujhe.”
Main –“Ab Maa kuch nahi kar sakti Didi. Dekha na tumne
kaise daba ke choda Maa ki gand, wo bhi jabardasti. Ab
Maa mujhe rok nahi sakti. Agar kosish ki to fir se
jabardasti patak ke pel doonga. Tum bhi to mazaa le
rahi thi Didi.”
Didi –“Such batau bhai, Maa ki aisi jabardasti chudai
dekh kar mujhe ajib si khusi mil rahi thi. Mujhe aisa
mahsoos ho raha tha ki kash Maa ke jagah main hoti.
Aur, tum mujhe aise jordaar chodte.”
Main –“Wah Didi, Hidden Lust of Rape Fantasy, bataogi
nahi to mujhe pata kaise chalega. Lo abhi pura kiye dete hai.”
Maine jaldi se Didi ki skirt upar ki aur Didi ki red panty
khich kar utarne ki kosish ki. Didi ke hath bartan dhone
me vayast the. Bina hath dhoye Didi ne apni panty ko
pakad kar upar karne ki kosish ki.
Didi –“Chhodo mujhe. Mujhe nahi chudwana hai tumse.
Bhago yaha se nahi to main shor macha dungi.”
Main –“Are Didi, abhi to aapne kaha ki aapki jabardasti
chudne ki manshik ichha hoti hai. Ab jab aapne mujhe
apna kaumarya de diya hai. To, main aapki itni chotti si
ichha to puri kar hi sakta hoon.”
Didi apni panty upar karne ki kosish karti rahi. Aur,
main utarne ki. Maine Didi ki panty chod di, aur didi ki
dono chuchiyo ko hatho me bahr kar sahlane laga. Didi
ko bhi ab maza aane laga tha. Didi ne abhi bhi apni
panty pakad rakhi thi. Chuchiyo ke sahlane se Didi ki
hatho ki pakad dhili padne lagi.
Maine mauka dekhkar ek hath se jor se Didi ki panty
niche khichi. Didi ne bhi achanak apnii pakad mazboot ki.
Panty niche to aayi lekin fat kar. Didi ki gori gori gand
nangi ho chuki thi. Didi ki kosish nakam rahi. Maine Didi
ko thoda jhukaya, aur gand ko sahlane laga.
Didi –“Main shor macha dungi. Ruk jao, aur aage mat badhna.”
Main –“Koi shor nahi karne wali tu raand. Abhi dekh 2
minute baad gand utha utha kar legi mera land.”
Didi –“Nahi Saurav, meri tabiyat thik nahi hai. Aur, Maa
ne tujhe kuch bhi karne se mana kiya hai na. Ruk jaa.”
Main kaha rukne wala tha. Main jhat se nichhe baith
gaya, aur Didi ki gand ke daraar me apna muh ghusa
diya. Aur, Didi ki gand ke ched ko jibh se chatne laga.
Didi ke muh se siskiya chuttne lagi thi. Didi ab bachne
ki kosish nahi kar rahi thi.
Maine gand ke fank se muh nikala. Aur, Didi ke baaye
putthe par ek chapat laga di.
Main –“Saali, mazaa lena hai apni fantasy ko to virodh
kyu nahi kar rahi hai. Balatkaar karwana hai tujhe. Aur,
tu hai ki gand utha utha kar chatwa rahi hai. Chhutne ki
kosish kar raand.”
Didi –“Aaaah, sorry bhai. Meri ched me tera jibh padte
hi main puri tarah se bhool gayi thi sab kuch. Chalo
main bachne ki kosish karti hoon.”
Maine fir se Didi ke fank me muh daal diya, aur Didi ki
gand ke bhoore ched ko chatne laga. Didi ab apne
kamar ko daaye baaye hila kar hatne ki kosish kar rahi
thi. Par maine Didi ki kamar ko jor se jakad rakha tha.
================================================
Didi ab bachne ki puri kosish kar rahi thi. Lekin maine
majbooti se Didi ki kamar ko pakad rakha tha. Maine
Didi ki gand ke ched ko chatna suru kiya. Ajib sa taste
tha kuch. Mere man-mastisq par ab mera koi kaboo
nahi tha, Jo bhi ho raha tha, uska sutra-sanchalak land
hi tha. Ek matra bhavna jagrit ho rahi thi ki kaise jald
se jald apne talwar roopi land ko Didi ke myan roopi
gand me daal doon.
Maine jibh nikal kar Didi ke gand ko chedda. Mujhe ched
dikhai nahi de rahi thi. Kyuki Didi sidhi khadi thi. Didi ka
virodh ab bhi jaari tha. Parantu, maine apni pakad
barkarar rakhi thi. Maine dher sara thuk Didi ki gand
me daal diya aur chatne laga. Mere chatne se Didi ki
gand ka ched kuch narm sa padne laga tha.
Maine apni jibh ke nok ko Didi ke gand me daalne ki
kosish ki. Kal raat ki chudai ke karan Pammi Didi ki
gand sooji hui thi. Ab bhi unhe halka halka dard ho hi
raha hoga. Maine thoda aur dhabav diya aur meri jibh
Didi ki gand me pravesh kar gayi.
Ajib sa swaad tha Didi ki gand ka. Khusboo kahe ya
badboo, iska nirtharan to waqt hi karta hai. Jo gandh
badboo hoti hai hamesha, wo mujhe atyant sukhdayi
mahsoos ho rahi thi. Maine Didi ki gand me jibh andar
bahar karna suru kar diya. Didi ko ek anoothe sukh ki
prapti ho rahi thi.
Pammi Didi ki gand ka swaad kuch meetha ka pratit
hone laga tha ab mujhe. Ye mere antarmann par vasna
ki uss itra (Scent, Perfume) ka jadoo tha, jo ess
drishya (scene) ke sutradhar mere land maharaj ne
chidka tha. Yaddapi, maine Didi ke gand me apna jibh
daal rakhi thi, mujhe ab bhi Didi ki pyari pyari komal
komal gand ka dwar dikh nahi raha tha. Aankho ke itne
samne Didi ki gand thi, ki mujhe kuch nazar hi nahi aa
raha tha.
Bautiki(Physics) ka itna zyaan to hamare pathako ko
hoga hi ki spasta drishti ke liye vastu ki nyuntam doori
25 cm hoti hai. (For a clear vision, the minimum
distance of an object is 25 cm). Ab Didi ki gand to
mere chakchhu-patal se matra 1 cm ki doori par thi.
Bhala mujhe kaise dikhai deti.
Bas aisa pratit ho raha tha ki saamne ek safed rang ki
deewar hai, jisko chhune se naramhat mahsoos hoti hai,
aur garamhat bhi. Aise deewar jisme ek vichitra prakar
ka ched hai, jo failta sukudta bhi hai, aur jiski parimiti
mere land roopi auzar ke bilkul samaan hai. Aise garm
to mera land ho raha tha niche. Aur meri ichha ho rahi
thi ki kyu na iss deewar ke ched me apna yantra daal
kar prayog kiya jaye.
Update 21
Main Didi ki gand chat raha hoon. Aur Didi apni kamar
ho hila hila kar chhutne ka prayatn kar rahi hai. Chaat
chaat kar maine Didi ki gand gili kar di hai. Bas ab der
hai to apna auzar daalne ki.
Didi ko bhi ab maza aane laga hai. Sink par jhuk kar
apni gand uthane lagi hai. Maine jhat se Didi ko jhuka
kar dono nitambh ko faad kar alag kiya, to Didi ki gand
ke bhoore ched ke darshan kiye.
Didi ki gand ki ched bandariya ke gand ke jaise lal dikh
rahi thi. Kal raat ki chudai se bahut jor ki chot lagi thi Didi ko.
Main –“Didi teri bhooriya to bandariya ki gand ke jaise
lal ho gayi hai. Kal raat ki thukai ka natija hai naa.”
Didi –“Abhi nahi chudawana hai mujhe. Chhod do nahi do
shor karke mummy ho bula lungi.”
Maine Didi ki gand par thappad lagate hue jhuka diya,
aur gand ke ched par land sata diya. Didi ab bhi
chuttne ki kosish kar rahi thi. Lekin maine der na karte
hue, halka sa dhakka lagaya. Sooji hue ched par land ke
waar se Didi karah uthi. Didi ke aahhh me dard aur
mazaa dono ka mishran tha, lekin dard ka anupaat jyada tha.
Main –“Didi, aur marwaogi sukhi gand. Dekh liya anjaam.
Ab to lagta nahi hai ki 2-4 din tak achhe se gand
marwa paogi. Chikhti hi rahogi har dhakke par.”
Didi –“Aur tere land ko kaun sa medal mil gaya hai. Teri
bhi supade ki chamdi chhil gati hai na. Fir bhi tu to
chhod hi raha hai na, to main bhi chudwa lungi. Tu ye
sab mat soch, ab bas andar daal de. Bachne ki to main
naatak kar rahi hoon. Ab jaldi kar de bhai.”
===================================================
Main –“Abki baar sukhi andar nahi jayegi. Wo to kal raat
Maa ki chudai dekh kar vasna me andha hokar kar
baitha. Lekin aaj nahi hoga Didi. Aaj to tel lagana hi padega.”
Didi –“Haa bhai, mujhe bhi bahut dard ho raha hai. Laga
le thodi chiknai pahle. Kal maine bhi teri maalis kar di
thi na. Aaj bhi kar dungi. Bas jaldi se ghapa ghap chod
de mujhe bhai.”
Maine pas pade Refined Oil ki bottle uthayi. Aur, ek
chammach tel didi ke kamar ke bicho bich daala. Tel
gand ke fanko si bahte hue gand ke ched tak pahuch
raha tha. Tel ki kuch bunde gand ko par kar boor tak
bhi pahuch chuki thi.
Maine oil ke bottle ko seal kiya. Aur, hath Didi ke fank
par ragadne laga. Aage ke pichhe tak pura ragad ragad
kar Didi ke dono chhed par tel laga diya maine. Fir
dhire se ek ungli Didi ke gand me daalne ki kosish ki.
Didi siski.
Didi –“Aaram se saurav.”
Maine apni madhyama ungli dhire se andar daal di. Aur
gol gol ghuma ghuma kar dhire dhire andar bahar karne
laga. Abhi bhi ungli fas fas kar ja rahi thi.
Maine ab dusri ungli daalne ki kosish ki, Didi fir se siski,
lekin iss baar pahli baar me hi andar chali gayi. Main ab
didi ki gand do ungliyon se chodne laga.
Main –“Didi ab bhi thoda fas fas kar ja rahi hai. Thoda
sa oil aur daal doon kya?”
Didi –“Rahne de na, Main koi motorcycle thodi hi hoon,
jo tu 1 litre tel daalne ki soch raha hai. Jitna hai kaafi hai.”
===============================================
Main –“Naa Didi, Iss baar main koi risk nahi lena chahta.
Ek chamachh tel bacha kar kaun maar main Delhi
pahuch jaunga. Aaj to achhe se greasing karke hi
chalaunga teri motorcycle Didi. Warna, iss baar to teri
engine cease hi ho jayegi.”
Maine Didi ki gand se ungliya nikali. Aur, bottle se ek
aur chamachh tel nikal kar Didi ke gand ke fank me
udela. Aur, ungliyo se tel ke bahav ko gand ke ched par
rokne ki kosish karne gaya. Tel ki kuch bunde tapak kar
jameen par bhi gir rahi thi. Maine ghap se do ungliya
didi ke gand me pel di. Didi chihuk uthi – “aaahhhh”.
Main –“Kya hua raand, aaj to ungliyo se hi shishak rahi
hai. Kal to land bhi asani se kha rahi thi.”
Didi –“Usi ka to natija hai ki ab hath bhi nahi laga sakte
ho. Wo to chudne ke liye dard bardast kar rahi hoon. Ab
jaldi chod ke kaam pura kar de bhai.”
Maine aur samay gavana uchit na samjha. Didi bhi gand
me mera land lene ke liye utawali ho rahi thi. Maine baki
ki do ungliya bhi gand me daal di. Ab main charo ungliya
se Didi ke gand chodne laga. Didi ki gand ab puri tarah
se khul gayi thi, aur mera land lene ke liye taiyar thi.
Main –“Didi, teri gand puri tarah se muh khol chuki hai.
Ab to dhakkan laga hi deta hoon.”
Didi –“Dhakkan laga ya sariya ghusa, jo karna hai kar,
par jaldi se meri gand maar de bhai. Bahut khujli ho rahi hai.”
Main –“Kyu nahi meri randi Didi. Le apni bhai ka land.
Thoda aur jhuk saali. Tab na pelunga.”
Didi ne aur jhukte hue kaha –“Le na bhai, le pura jhuk
gayi, ab daal de jaldi se.”
====================================================
Tel ke karan Didi ki gand ka ched chamak raha tha.
Maine Didi ki kamar ko dono hatho se pakda, aur thoda
niche jhukte hue apne tantanaye land ko gand ke ched
par satane ki kosish ki. Mera supada Didi ki gand ke par
tha. Didi ne shisakte hue apni gand ko aur pichhe ki orr dhakela.
Didi jaldi se jaldi mere land ko nigalna chah rahi thi.
Didi ki gand kafi garm ho chuki thi. Main apne supade
par Didi ki gand ki garamhat mehsoos kar raha tha.
Aise to main bhi tap raha tha, lekin Didi kuch jyada hi
garm ho chuki thi. Ab Didi ki garmi nikalne ka waqt tha.
Maine Didi ki kamar ko jakda, aur, ek dhakka laga diya.
Mere land ke supada Didi ki gand me ghuste ghuste rah
gaya. Shayad nishana sahi nahi laga tha. Didi cheekh uthi.
Didi –“Kya kar raha hai harami. Ek to pahle se hi meri
gand me dard hai. Aur tu kyu ulta pulta shot maar raha hai.”
Main –“Sorry yaar, nishana sahi nahi laga. Isme main
kya kar sakta hoon.”
Didi ne ek hath pichhe karke mera land pakda, aur, land
ko disha dikhane lagi. Mere land ko khichte hue didi ne
apne gand par rakh liya. Maine halka sa dabav badhaya.
Lekin, itna dabav kaafi nahi tha. Maine thoda sa land ko
pichhe khicha, aur ek madham dhakka lagaya. Fir bhi
andar nahi ghusa. Didi shisiya uthi.
Didi –“Kya kar raha hai. Kyu chot par chot de raha hai
bhai. Jaldi se daal aur kaam nipta.”
Main –“Halke se andar ja nahi raha hai. Tu bas pakad ke
rasta dikha main daalta hoon ab. Is baar pakka ghus jayega.”
======================================================
Didi ne mere land ko fir se pakda, aur, apne gand ke
ched me sata liya. Maine Didi ki gori gori nitambho par
hath ferte hue dabav badhaya. Lekin, halke dabav se
kuch nahi hone wala tha. Main bhi khijyane laga tha.
Main dabav badhata gaya, aur Didi mere land ko sidhe
pakde hue thi. Isliye dabav bilkil sahi jagah par pad
raha tha. Aur, is baar andar to jana hi tha.
Didi –“Kya kar raha hai madarchod. Kal to unchudi gand
me khap me daal diya tha. Aur, aaj jab khud le rahi
hoon to ghus bhi nahi raha hai tujhse.”
Main –“Daal to du khach khacha ke. Lekin, kal jaisa dard
hoga to mat bolna. Kal kaise ro rahi thi. Main aur tumko
rulana nahi chahta Didi.”
Didi –“Oye mere gand me chamcham raja, itna khayal
to tu apni Maa ka bhi nahi rakhta hai. Mauke milte hi
kutiya ki gand chod daala jabardasti. Aur, mere anshuo
ki itni fikr ho rahi hai tujhe. Kal to koi daya nahi aa
rahi thi tujhe. Dard se mera bura haal tha. Kisi tarah
muskil se hotho ko dabaye thi ki, kahi cheekh na nikal
jaye. Lekin, tu to bina ruke bhokiya raha tha mujhe.
Aaaj itni raham kis karan ho rahi hai bhai.”
Main –“Didi, aisi koi baat nahi hai. Kal jo maine kiya,
usse aapki tabiyat bigad gayi thi naa. Mujhe bahut bura
laga is baat ka. Agar main halke halke chodta to aapko
dard bhi nahi hota. Aur, aapko fever bhi nahi aata.”
Didi –“Tumko mera kitna khayal hai Bhai. I love you so
much. Ab jaldi se chod na.”
Main kya kar raha tha, pata nahi? Aadhe ghante se
land daalne ki kosish kar raha tha, aur, abhi tak andar
nahi gayi thi. Itna kyu soch raha tha main?? Kal raat
Pammi Didi ki jabardast gand maari thi, fir subah Maa
ki gand chodi. Aur, dono ko rulaya. Abhi Didi par itni
daya kyu kar raha hoon main?? Aur, Didi bhi kitni der
se minnat kar rahi hai ki jaldi se nipta de. Aur, kahi Maa
aur Priya me se koi aa gayi to iss baar to pakka pitai
hogi. Chudai ki bhi koi hadd hoti hai. Maine apne man ko
samjhaya ki sochne ki jyada jarurat nahi hai ab. Bas
jaldi se kaam niptaya jaye.
Maine Didi ki chuchiyon ko hatho me liya, aur sahlane
laga. Didi samjh gayi ki main jor ka dhakka dene wala
hoon. Kal raat ki baat yaad aa gayi hai hogi use. Didi ne
gand aage karke bachane ki kosish ki. Aur, maine ghap
se jor ka jhatka diya. Didi ki bachne ki kosish bekar
gayi. Pak ki awaz ke sath mera supada didi ki gand me
utar gaya. Didi ko bahut dard hua hoga. Pammi Didi ki
muh se cheekh nikal gayi.
Didi –“Uuuuiiiii Maa, maar daala re. Itni jor se aaahhhh
aaaahhhh mmmmaaaa. Bahut dard ho raha hai. Nikal le
Saurav. Nahi marwa paungi abhi aur.”
Didi ki cheekh sun kar Maa aur Priya kitchen ki orr
daudi. Main Didi ki chuchiya sahla kar unko santwana de
raha tha. Lekin, Didi cheekhti jaa rahi thi. Maine Didi ke
muh ko hath se dabane ki kosish ki, lekin, tab tak kaafi
der ho chuki thi. Maa aur Priya kitchen ke darwaje tak
pahuch chuki thi.
===============================================
Didi ab bhi chilla rahi thi. Priya aur Maa darwaje ke
paas aakar ruk gaye. Didi ne Maa ki orr dekhkar
sahayata mangi. Priya aage badhi hi thi ki achanak Maa
ne priya ka hath pakad liya.
Maa –“Priya ruk ja. Mat bacha usse. Jab meri gand fat
rahi thi, to tune bachane ki kosish ki thi na. Par tumhe
roka kisne tha?”
Priya ruk gayi. Aur, maa ki orr vismit hokar dekh rahi thi.
Priya –“Par Maa, Didi ko bahut dard ho raha hoga. Uski
tabiyat bhi thik nahi hai. Bacha lo Didi ko Maa.”
Maa –“Kuch nahi. Abhi dard ho raha hai. 2 minute ke
baad khud gand utha utha ke legi, dekhna.”
Priya –“Nahi Maa, dekho na, kaise cheekh rahi hai Didi.
Bahut dard me hai. Usko chuddana hoga.”
Priya Maa ka hath chudda kar Pammi Didi ko chuddane
ke liye meri orr badhi. Priya ne mera hath pakad kar
khichne ki kosish ki. Lekin wo khich nahi payi. Didi
samajh chuki thi ki ab sahayata ki koi ummid nahi hai.
Didi slab par hath maar maar kar rone lagi. Maine Didi
ka hath pakad liya.
Main –“Kya kar rahi ho. Thik hai main chhod deta hoon.”
Maine Didi ki gand se land nikal liya. Ab didi ko thoda
aram mila tha. Didi ki aankho se tap tap aanshu gir
rahe the. Main Didi ko chhod kar pichhe hatt gaya. Didi
ladkhada kar girne ko si hui. Priya ne Didi ka hath
pakad kar sahara diya. Aise main bhi aage badh kar
Didi ko sambhalne ki kosish ki thi. Lekin Priya Didi ke
jyada nazdeek khadi thi, isliye usne Didi ko pahle pakda.
Main Didi se char pair dur khada tha. Priya Didi ko
kandhe se sahara dete hue kamre ki orr chal di. Didi
thik se chal nahi pa rahi thi. Langate hue kisi tarah Didi
kitchen se nikal kar, hall tak pahuchi. Priya ne Didi ko
sofe par baithne ko kaha. Aur, Didi ka hath pakad kar
Didi ko sofe par baithaya. Didi sofe par baithi, aur
uchhal padi, mano kisi ne niche pin chubha di ho.
Priya –“Kya hua Didi, sofe par kuch tha kya? Kyu
uchhali tum aise?”
Didi –“Are kuch nahi tha. Itna dard ho raha hai ki baith
bhi nahi pa rahi hoon.”
Maa ne mera hath pakad kar apni orr khicha. Aur,
daaye hath se mere baaye gaal par ek thappad jad
diya. Maa ke thappad se mera sar bhannane laga. Aise
jhannatedaar thappad ne mujhe din me taare dikha
diya. Aankho ke aage kala sa dikh raha tha. Abhi tak
main sambhal bhi nahi paya tha, ki chat se ekk aur
thappad meri daaye gaal par giri. Ye thappad Maa ne
baaye hath se mara tha. Mujhe kuch nahi sujh raha tha.
Main samajh gaya ki agar paas khada raha to aur
padegi. Main jhat se pichhe hatt gaya.
Maa gusse se laal pili ho rahi thi. Maine sar utha kar
Maa ki orr dekha. Maa ko gusse me dekh kar main
saham gaya. Aur, sar niche kar li. Meri pitai se Priya ke
dil me mano thandak pad gayi ho.
Priya –“Aur maro Mummy. Kisi chiz ki koi hadd hoti hai.
Subah bhaiya ke karan hi didi ki tabiyat bigdi thi. Aur,
abhi fir se wahi.”
Maa ne mujhe pakad kar fir se thappad marne ki kosish
ki. Lekin, main pichhe jhuk kar bach gaya. Matrix movie
dekhne ka itna to fayda hue mujhe. Maa ke kadak kadak
hatho se do jhanjhanate thappad khakar mere tote ud
gaye the. Maine waha jyada der rahna thik nahi samjha.
Aur, dabe paav apne kamre ki orr khishakne ki sochne laga.
Priya ne Didi ko sahara dete hue kaha –“Didi, tum itne
narm sofe par bhi nahi baith paa rahi ho. Chalo apne
kamre me, tumhe bistar par lita deti hoon.”
Didi ladkahadati hui Priya ke sath kamre me chali gayi.
Maine socha jaldi se yaha se fut leta hoon, nahi to agar
Maa ka gussa aur badha to meri to ‘L’ lag jayegi. Maine
mauka taada aur dabe paav apne kamre me chala gaya.
Aur, apne kamre ka darwaja andar se band kar liya.
Update 22
Main apne kamre me bistar par leta soch raha tha ki
maine uchit kiya ya nahi. Maa ab bhi gusse me hai.
Pammi Didi apne bistar par ulti aaudhi leti hai, sayaad
sidhi let bhi nahi pa rahi hai. Priya muh fulaye apne
bistar par baithi khidki se bahar jhak rahi hai. Sham bhi
hone ko hai, Papa ke aane ka waqt ho chala hai.
Aur, meri gand fat rahi hai ki, kahi Maa ne Papa ko sari
baatein bata di, to aaj meri khair nahi. Pahle to Maa ki
jabardasti gand mari, fir Pammi Didi ki gand marne ki
kosish ki. Aur, Maa se pitai bhi ho gayi.
Pyaas bhi lag rahi hai mujhe. Par, abhi itni himmat nahi
hai ki darwaja khol kar kitchen me paani pine jau. Kahi
fir se Maa mil gayi to wahi lappadyana suru kar degi.
Maa ka gussa bahut tezz hai, waise hi unka pyar bhi
utna hi tezz hai. Maa aur Priya mujhse gussa hai. Aur,
Pammi Didi ki to haalat hi kharab hai, pakka ab wo
mujhse chudne nahi aane wali. Kuch aur jugaad karna hi padega.
Main yahi sab baatein soch raha tha lete lete apne
kamre me.
Main kursi par baithe baithe hi apna land pant se bahar
nikal liya. Aur, dhire dhire apne land ko sahlane laga.
Maine jo thread khola hai, usme aunties ki dher saari
tasveere hai. Aise mujhe auntiyo me koi khaas dilchaspi
nahi hai. Lekin, Desi aunties ki nenge badan ko dekh kar
mera land saar uthane laga hai.
Maine ek aur dusra thread khol liya, ye thread models
ke photoshoot wali thi. Patli patli models dhire dhire
apne kapde utarti jati hai, main page-by-page tasveere
dekhta gaya, aur, dhire dhire apne land par ko muthhi
maarta raha. Ab mujhe maza aane laga. Aur, main
pichhli baate bhul kar apne me kho gaya.
Main ab apne charam seema par pahuchne hi wala tha.
Maine jaldi jaldi apne land par hath marna suru kiya.
Mera land ab jhadne hi wala tha, lekin, main farsh par
muth girana nahi chahta tha. Aur, maine koi kapda bhi
nahi rakha tha paas me. Jaldi se maine apne jute se
mojaa nikala, aur, moje ko apne land ke niche rakh kar
jor jor se muth maarne laga. Mera dhyan ab puri tarah
se screen par tha, aur main niche muth maar raha tha.
Mere computer table ki bagal waali khidki khuli hui thi.
Main jaldbaazi me use band karna bhi bhul gaya tha.
Main bich bich me page aage badhata raha , aur muth
maarta raha. 10 minute jor jor se hilaane ke baad mera
muth nikal gaya. Maine moje par apne virya ki dhaar
chood di. Aur, computer table par saar rakh kar dhila
pad gaya.
2 minute baad maine saar uthaya. Aur, screen par us
tasveer ko dekha. 5 minute pahle jis tasveer ko dekh
kar main muth maar raha tha, ab uss tasveer me kuch
achha nahi lag raha tha. Muth gir jaane ke baad wahi
tasveer koi kaam ki nahi thi. Maine jhat se saare tabs
band kiye, aur, moje ko bathroom me fek aaya.
Fir se, mujhe Maa ke gusse ki tension hone lagi. Aur,
tension me muth maarna aur badh jata hai. Mujhe fir
se muth maarne ki ichha hone lagi. Kya karta main?
Main bathroom me gaya, aur, saare kapde khol kar
shower ke niche khada ho gaya. Socha shayad isse
badan ko kuch thandak mile. Lekin, Jism ki aag paani se
nahi bujhti hai, ye to sabko pata hai.
Bathroom se nahakar main nikla. Fir, apne kapde pahne.
Aur, bistar par let gaya. Aankho me nind nahi thi. Ajib
ajib se khayal maan me ghum rahe the. Achanak kya
kya ho gaya tha. Aise to main hamesa hi Maa aur Didi
ko chodna chahta tha. Par sachmuch me dono ki gand
mil jayegi, iski aasha nahi thi mujhe.
Par aisa ho chuka tha, ab bhi is baat ka yakin nahi ho
raha tha mujhe. Wo bhi 24 ghante ke andar. Itna sab
kuch itni tezi me bit gaya tha, ki khud ka koi hosh hi
nahi tha. Bas ek hi dhun sawaar thi ki aur chodu aur chodu.
Lagataar chod chod ke mere land ki bhi haalat kharab
thi. Mere land ko bhi aaram ki thodi jarurat thi. Lekin,
kaise aaram mil sakta hai mere land ko abhi. Priya ne jo
chingari jalayi hai apni skirt utha kar. Uska kya?? Main
ise andekha nahi kar sakta, nahi to kab chingari aag ka
roop dharan kar le kya pata. Aur, sab kuch jala kar
bhasm kar de. Priya ki us harkat ka kya arth nikalu main.
Kya chahti hai wo mujhse? Ho sakta hai wo mujhse
marwana chahti ho. Didi ne bhi to usse saari baatein
bata di hai. Aur, usne to sab kuch apni aankho se dekha
hai. Jawaan ho chuki hai. Uska bhi chudne ka dil to karta
hi hoga. Lekin, kahi Priya ne nakhre se to aisa nahi kiya
tha, aisa bhi bahut nakhrali hai wo.
Lekin nakhre wo mujhe kyu dikhayegi, aur nakhre me koi
ladki skirt uthakar nangi gand thode dikhati hai. Wo
pakka mujhse chudwana chahti hai. Saaf saaf ishara thi
uski wo harkat. Ab to bas mauke ki talash hai. Lekin, ab
to Maa aur Didi bhi gussa hai. Priya bhi gussa hi hai
lagta hai. Maa ne to do kantaap bhi laga diye. Khud
chudwaye to chamatkar, Didi ko choda to balatkaar.
Saala, ab to bhukh bhi lagne lagi hai. Chudai ke chakkar
me khana bhi thik se nahi khaya tha. Aur, ab to sab
mere khilaaf ho agye hai. Kaise bahar jau, kahi dekhte
hi Maa ne 2-4 aur jad diye to. Main inhi udhedbun me
pada tha, aur aankhe band kiye leta tha. 2 din pahle
jaha mera pariwar hasi khusi samanya tarike se jee
raha tha, achanak aaj bikhar si gayi hai.
Sab khafa hai mujhse. Main bhi kya karta Pooja ke boor
ka swaad chak kar pagal sa ho gaya tha. Charo taraf
bas boor hi boor najar aa rahi thi. Aise me Didi ne aag
me ghee daalne ka kaam kiya aur, ye sab ho gaya. Aur,
raat ko agar Maa Papa ki na chudai dekhta, to naa hi
Pammi Didi ki gand chudti waha. Aur, na hi Priya ko
kuch pata chalta. Aur, na hi Maa ki gand chudti aaj
subah. Ufff, ye kya se kya ho gaya.
Maa ke thappad ne sapne se yatharth me laakar khada
kar diya tha mujhe. Sab kuch sapne ke jaisa chal raha
tha, ki achanak do thappad ne mere andar ke daar ko
jaga diya tha. Kuch hi der me Papa aane wale honge.
Aur, kahi Maa ne Papa ko bata diya to main to gaya
kaam se. Upar se Pammi Didi ki gand bhi fat gayi,
tabiyat kahi aur bigdi to Papa ko pata na chal jaye. Kisi
tarah se mujhe saari baato ko yahi dabana hoga. Lekin
main kar bhi kya sakta hoon?
Kis baat par Maa gussa hai, ye to pata hi nahi hai
mujhe. Aur, Priya jaha ek orr apni gand dikha kar hari
jhandi dikha rahi thi, wahi dusri orr meri pitai se khus
ho rahi thi, aakhir chahti kya hai wo. Jo bhi chahte ho
wo, uska pata yaha se to chalne se raha. Mujhe hi pahal
karni hogi fir se. Lekin suruat karu bhi to kaise?
Abhi to mujhe kamre se bahar nikalne se bhi daar lag
raha hai. Aur, kisse suruat karoon. Pakka Pammi Didi bhi
ab to gussa ho gayi hongi. Baar baar unki tabiyat
bigaad deta hoon main. Iss baar to mere niche aane se
rahi wo.
Maa bhi ab kuch karne nahi degi. Aur, Priya to kis baat
par naaraz thi, wo hi jaane. Thodi der pahle to has-has
kar baat kar rahi thi. Achanak kya ho gaya use pata
nahi? Lekin kisi na kisi tarah to suruat karni hi padegi.
Aur, mamle ko shant karna padega. Papa ke aane ke
baad, shayad main kuch kar bhi naa pau. Mujhe abhi
turant Maa se to baat karni hi padegi. Chahe fir se
pitai hi kyu na ho.
Mujhe thodi himmat to dikhani hi padegi, nahi to kuch
bhi ho sakta hai. Maine antim niray liya, aur, pahle Priya
se baat karne ki sochi. Aankhe meri ab bhi band hi thi.
Aisa mahsoos ho raha tha, ki main so jau. Aur, fir wapas
kabhi na aau iss vartmaan me.
Kuch chhan pahle so sundar swarg sa prateet ho raha
tha, achanak ekk nark me tabdil ho gaya tha. Gahri
soch se meri aankhe khul hi nahi pa rahi thi. Chah kar
bhi main itni himmat nahi juta paa raha tha, ki jakar
Priya se baat karu. Kaise suru karu ab baat?
Main lete lete inhi baato me khoya tha. Aur, sham ke 5
baj chuke the. Achanak mujhe aisa aabhash hua hi, koi
mujhe dekh raha hai. Maine jhat se aankhe kholi aur,
darwaje ki orr dekha. Darwaja to band tha, maine khidki
ki orr nazar ghumayi par, waha bhi koi na tha.
Achanak aisa kyu laga mujhe ki koi mujhe dekh raha hai.
Ho na ho, koi to tha. Main jaldi ke bistar se uth khada
hua, aur, darwaje ki orr lapka. Jhat se darwaja khol kar
hall me dekha to koi bhi nahi tha waha. Idhar udhar
najar ghumayi par koi nahi tha. Mera hi koi bhram hoga,
pata nahi kya kya soch raha hoon main.
Kitchen me dekhta hoon ki Maa kya kar rahi hai. Aur,
fir mauka dekh kar maafi bhi mang lunga. Aur, kisi
tarah baat ko rafa-dafa kar dunga. Main halke paav se
hall se gujra, aur baramade aur hall ke bich ke darwaje
ke paas pahucha. Kitchen ki orr dekha to, Maa kuch
kaam me vayast thi.
Mere waha hone ka Maa ko pata nahi chala tha abhi tak.
Meri paav khud-b-khud pichhe hatt gaye. Maa ke
saamne jane ki himmat hi juta paya main. Khud se bas
itna sawaal kar raha tha ki aisa karne se kaise
chalega? Kuch bhi karke baat to karni hi padegi.
Tabhi mere dimaag me ekk bijli si koundhi. Maine hall ke
bathroom ki orr nazar ghumaya. Bathroom ka darwaja
to band tha. Lekin, hall ke bathroom ka darwaja to band
nahi hota pura kabhi, thoda ya thoda khula hi hota hai.
Pura band hone ka matlab hai ki koi bathroom me hai.
Lekin, aisa kaise ho sakta hai. Maa kitchen me hai, Priya
aur Didi ka kamra band hai. To fir kaun hoga ??
Main bathroom ki orr badha. Halke halke kadmo se
darwaje ke paas pahucha, aur bade ki naram haatho se
darwaje ko dhakka diya. Bathroom ka darwaja andar se
band tha, matlab, koi tha bathroom me. Isliye, mujhe
aisa laga tha ki koi khidki se mujhe dekh raha hai. Aur,
jab main darwaje ki orr badha to wo bathroom me chhup
gaya. Kaun hoga bathroom me? Maine darwaje par
dastak di. Andar se koi awaaz na aayi.
Main –“Kaun hai andar?” Andar se Priya ne awaaz diya.
Priya –“Kya hai? Tum yaha iss bathroom me kyu aaye
ho. Tere kamre me to bathroom hai na.”
Main –“Bathroom to tere kamre me bhi hai, lekin tu hall
ke bathroom me?”
Priya –“Wo Didi hai uss bathroom me, isliye.”
Main –“Ok, koi baat nahi.”
Priya –“Kyu, kya hua, Bathroom me bhi chain nahi hai.
Tumko kya kaam aa pada. Mummy ….”
Priya ne bathroom ke andar se hi awaaz lagayi. Priya ki
awaaz sun kar Maa bhaag kar hall me aayi. Maa to pahle
se hi gusse me thi, pata nahi, kya samajh rahi hogi.
Maine Maa ki orr dekha. Maa gusse se aag-bagula ho
uthi thi. Maine stithi ko sambhalte hue kaha.
Main –“Maa, aisi koi baat nahi hai, jo tum soch rahi ho.
Main to bas aise hi puchh raha tha. Mujhe laga jab Didi
ka darwaja band hai to bathroom me kaun hoga.”
Maa ne Didi ke darwaja ko dhakka diya. Darwaja khul
gaya tha. Matlab darwaja sirf sataya hua tha, andar se
band nahi tha. Maa ne Didi ke kamre me jhanka, to
waha koi bhi nahi tha.
Maa –“Pammi ka darwaja to khula hua hai, aur, kamre
me koi bhi nahi hai.”
Main –“Haa wo, Didi bathroom gayi hai apne kamre me.
Isliye Priya iss bathroom me aayi hogi. Mujhe pata nahi
tha, aur, darwaje ko dekh kar laga ki darwaja band
hoga to bathroom me kaun hoga.”
Maa –“Tujhe aaj kal bahut kuch lagne laga hai. Abhi
thodi der pahle jo hua hai, wo bhul gaya kya tu? Aur, tu
kamre se bahar aaya to choro ke jaise kyu aaya?”
Main –“Nahi, mujhe laga ki khidki par koi tha. Isliye
maine jaldi se bahar aakar dekha. Par koi bhi nahi tha.”
Maa –“Pagal ho gaye ho kya? Do thappad khakar hil
gaya hai tumhara dimaag lagta hai.”
Bathroom ke andar se Priya ke hasne ki awaaz aayi. Hi
hi hi. Mujhe Priya par gussa aa raha tha. Par, main chup
hi raha. Mauke ki nazakat hi aisi thi ki chup rahna hi
uchit tha. Maine Maa ki baat ka bhi koi uttar nahi diya.
Socha ki Maa se dophar ki baat par maafi maang loon.
Lekin, Maa ki baato ke andaaz se aisa to nahi lagta ki
wo mujhe maaf karne wali hai. Kam-s-kam abhi to bilkul
hi nahi. Bekar me, aisi koi baat karne ka fayda bhi nahi
hai. Ulta aur dant padegi. Main soch me dub gaya wahi
khade khade.
Maa –“Kya? Kya sochne laga ab. Chal ja apne kamre
me. Bahar mat aana, jab tak main na kahoon.”
Maa ki baate mujhe sunai to de rahi thi, lekin dimaag
kaam nahi kar raha tha. Main soch me kuch gahre hi dub
gaya tha. Thappado ka bada gahra asar hua tha mere
dimaag par.
Maa –“Kya? Sunai nahi de raha hai kya tujhe??
Bathroom ke bahar khade hokar hawaaldaari kar raha
hai kya?? Jao apne kamre me.”
Maa ki dant se main sakpaka sa gaya. Aur, haa me
gardan hilate hue, apne kamre ki orr bhaaga.
Main apne kamre ke darwaje ki paas pahucha hi tha, ki
achanak kano me Pammi Didi ki awaaz aayi.
Pammi Didi –“Kya hua Maa, kyu shor macha rahe ho ab
tum log??”
Awaaz didi ke kamre ki orr se nahi aayi thi. Jis disha se
awaaz aayi thi, usne mujhe chuanka diya. Main jhat se
pichhe palta, to dekha ki Pammi Didi aankhe malte hue
guest room se bahaar nikal rahi thi. Main hadbada gaya,
aur, mujhe ye samjhte der na lagi ki, Didi to apne
kamre me thi hi nahi. Fir, Priya hall ke bathroom me kyu??
Priya ne bola tha ki Didi uske bathroom me hai. Lekin,
Didi to yaha ghest room se nikal rahi hai. Aur, use dekh
kar aisa lag raha tha, ki mano 2-3 ghante se so rahi ho.
Lekin, Pammi Didi guest room me kyu so rahi thi??
Dher saare sawaal ek sath mere manaspalat par ankit
ho uthe. Mera chhota sa mastisq itne saare sawaalo ka
ek sath aanklan nahi kar pa raha tha(My Brain have
only 64MB RAM & Very old processor). Naa chahte hue
bhi mere muh se sahsa sawaalo ki jhadi fut padi.
Main –“Didi, aap guest room me so rahi thi, lekin Priya
ne bola ki aap uss bathroom me hai. Isliye wo hall ke
bathroom me aayi thi. Lekis, aap guestroom me kyu so
rahi thi?? Apne kamre me bhi so sakti thi.”
Pammi Didi –“Kuch nahi aise hi. Wo Priya gaana sun rahi
thi uchi awaaz me, isliye main guestroom me aakar so
gayi thi. Par, Priya hall ke bathroom me kyu?”
Main –“Haa, main bhi hairaan hoon is baat par.”
Maa –“Achha thik hai, thik hai. Main dekhti hoon, kya
baat hai. Tu apne kamre me jaa.”
Bathroom ke andar Priya ki haalat kharab ho rahi thi, ki
wo ab kya jawaab degi. Main ab aaswast ho chuka tha
ki, mere khidki par koi aur nahi Priya hi thi. Aur, jaise hi
main bistar se utha, aur darwaja ki orr badha, itne me
wo bathroom me chhup gayi. Mauke ki nazakat ho
dekhte hue, nafasat ke sath main apne kamre ki orr
chal pada.
Abhi koi aur himakat karne ka anzaam to mere khilaaf
hi hota. Isliye apne 64MB brain par jyada jor nahi
daalte hue maine Maa ki baat maan li, aur, apne kamre
me band hona hi uchit samjha. Kamre me jaakar main
darwaja band karne ke liye pichhe muda, to meri nazre
Pammi Didi se takra gayi.
Unki aankho me kuch ajib si uljhan jhalak rahi thi. Mano
kuch kahna chahti thi mujhse. Lekin, sabse mauzoodgi ne
unhe labh sil diye the. Jo bhi ho, Didi se abhi aur koi
gooftagoo hona to sambhav hi nahi tha. Mauka ki
talaash karni hogi.
Ya yun kahe ki intezaar karni hogi. Pammi Didi ki taraf
main aur kadam nahi badha sakta tha. Har baar Pammi
Didi ko mujhse chot hi mila tha, ab mujhe bhi ye aasha
nahi thi ki wo mujhse baat karegi. Maine darwaja band
kiya, aur apne bistar par dham se baith gaya..
Update 23
Bistar par baithte hi khayal aaya ki, Pammi Didi ki
baato me gusse ka koi bhaav nahi tha. To kya iska
matlab Didi mujhse gussa nahi hai? Main uthkar apne
khidki ke pas aa gaya. Aur chhup kar bahar jhakte hue
Maa aur Didi ki baat sunne laga.
Maa –“Pammi Beta, tu guestroom me kab gayi. Mujhe
pata bhi nahi chala. Aur, wo kamra to kai din se saaf
bhi nahi hua hai. Bolti to safai bhi ho jati isi bahane.
Kya hua, tabiyat thik nahi lag rahi hai teri.”
Pammi Didi –“Kuch nahi, wo Priya gaana sun rahi thi to
main guestroom me jakar so gayi thi. Tabiyat thik hai
ab meri. Jor ki bhookh lagi hai Maa, kuch nasta banayi
ho kya?”
Maa –“Jaa, jaldi se hath muh dho le. Main snacks me
kuch bana deti hoon.”
Maa ne kitchen ki orr wapis palat kar kaha. Maa ne
kitchen me wapas jaate jaate Priya ko bhi kuch bol rakha.
Maa –“Priya, tu bhi jaldi se aa ja table par.”
Priya –“hmm Mummy.”
Priya ki mano ab sans me sans aayi ho. Priya ka jhoot
saaf saaf sabke saamne aa chuka tha. Fir bhi usko Maa
ne kuch nahi bola, aur naa hi Didi ne koi sawaal kiye.
Kahi Maa ne hi to Priya ko mujh par najar rakhne ko to
nahi bola hai. Jo bhi ho lekin wo bach gayi. Mauka milte
hi Priya se puchhna hoga ki kya kar rahi thi wo mere
khidki par. Tab tak ke liye chup chap rahne me hi bhalai hai.
Didi apne kamre ke andar gayi. Aur, fresh hokar dining
table par aa gayi. Priya bhi table par aa chuki thi.
Mummy ne kuch snacks banaya tha. Shayad Maa ne
sooji ka halwa banaya hai snacks me. Halwe ki khusboo
mujhe mere kamre ke andar se hi aa rahi hai. Maa ke
hath ki bani halwe ki baat hi kuch aur hoti hai. Wo
khusboo naako me samate hi tivra chhuda (tezz bhookh)
jag uthti hai. Pet me chuhe daudne lagte hai.
Parantu, Maa ne mujhe saaf nirdesh diya tha ki, jab tab
Maa na bole main kamre se naa niklu. Sabhi mujh par
gussa jata rahe the. Par, kya galti sirf ek meri hi hai.
Maine to choda Didi aur Maa ko, lekin unhone bhi to koi
pratikaar nahi kiya tha. Gand utha utha ke chude dono,
aur bharpur manoranjan diya apni booriya aur bhooriya
ko. Ab jab kaam nikal gaya hai, to mujhe doodh me pade
chiti (ANT) ke jaise nikalkar jhatak dena chahti hai sab.
Pakka Priya ne bhi apne kisi dost se apni boor ka sauda
kar rakha hoga. Isliye to mujhe ghaas bhi nahi daal rahi
hai. Priya ki sachhai sirf Pammi Didi ko hi pata hogi.
Pammi Didi ke gore badan ko main aise hi hath se jaane
nahi de sakta hoon. Koi na koi upay to lagana hi hoga.
Priya – Pammi Didi – Maa teeno ke man me nischay hi
dher saare sawalo ka toofan chal raha hoga. Lekin,
mujhe nahi lagta ki aapas me kisi ne ek dusre se koi
baat ki hai. Sabhi apne apne soch me hi mujhe
kasoorwar thahra chuke hai. Ab aise me sabse ek sath
baat karna to madhumakkhi ke chhate me hath daalne
ke barabar hai. Ek saath teeno ke sawaalo ki jhadi baras
padegi mujh par. Aur, main kya kya jawaab dunga. Ek
ek karke suljhana hoga sabko.
Suruat to Priya se karne ki soch raha tha main, lekin
sabse pahle Pammi Didi se mil kar ye nischit karna hoga
ki uske aur Priya ke bich kya chal raha hai? Aur unhone
iss visay me kitni charcha ki hai. Uske baad hi main
apne yojna ki rooprekha nirdharit kar sakta hoon.
Parantu, Didi ko akele pakda kaise jaye.
Didi ki jordar chudai se jo unki tabiyat bigdi thi, uske
baad to sabne pahli galti maankar maaf kar diya tha
mujhe. Lekin, fir se vasna ke toofan me bahkar jo galti
abhi ki hai, uske baad to muskil hai ki koi mujhe Didi ke
paas akele chhodega. Mujhe kisi tarah Didi ko hi kuch
ishara karna hoga, lekin usse pahle mujhe aaswast hona
padega ki Didi mujhse gussa to nahi hai.
Upar se yeh Halwe ki khusboo ne to mere bhookh ko aur
badha diya hai. Bhookh se tadapne wali sithti me hoon
main. Lekin, darwaja nahi khol sakta. Aur, Maa ko itna
bhi khayal nahi hai ki mujhe bhi bhookh lagi hogi. Mere
khidki ke kinare chhup kar hall me dekhne laga. Maa ne
halwe ki katori laakar table par rakhi.
Aur, wapas kitchen me gayi. 2 minute ke andar hi Maa
wapas aayi. Maa ke ek hath me glass ki katoriyan
(BOWLs) thi, aur ek hath me chammache (SPOONs). Maa
ne teen katoriyo me halwa nikal kar serve kiya, aur,
Didi aur Priya ki orr ek ek bowl badha diya. Aur, khud
Didi ki bagalwali kursi par baithte hue ek bowl apne
saamne rakha. Aur, suru karne ka ishara kiya Didi aur Priya ko.
Lekin, Pammi Didi ne khana suru nahi kiya. Aur, naa hi
Priya ne. Maa dono ki orr bari bari dekh rahi thi.
Maa –“Kya hua, Chalo suru karo.”
Priya ne ek chammch halwa utha kar apne muh me
rakha. Lekin, Didi ab bhi chupchap thi. Kuch soch kar
Didi Maa se boli.
Didi –“Maa, Sourav ko bhi bhookh lagi hogi. Usko bhi
bula lete hai na.”
Maa –“Ha bhookh to lagi hogi, lekin use yaha bulane ki
koi jarurat nahi hai. Kamre me hi de aati hoon use.”
Maa ne ek katori me mere liye halwa nikala. Aur, mere
kamre ki orr mudi. Itne me Priya uth kar Maa ke hatho
se bowl le li.
Priya –“Aap baitho yaha. Main pahucha deti hoon na.”
Priya ne mere darwaja khatkhataya. Mujhe bhi tezz
bhookh lagi thi, maine jhat se darwaja khola. Priya
andar aayi, aur mere bistar ke kone me katori rakh kar
wapas jane ke liye palti.
Main –“Priya, mujhe pata hai ki mere khidki par tum hi
thi. Aur, jaise hi maine darwaja khola, tum bathroom me
chhup gayi thi.”
Priya ne dhire se kaha –“Wo sab baate baad me
karenge, abhi aap kha lo, bhookh to lagi hi hogi aapko bhi.”
Main –“Lekin, tum mere kamre me jhak kyu rahi thi.
Kahi tumhe Maa ne to aisa karne ko nahi kaha tha na.”
Priya –“Mujhe kisi ne kuch nahi kaha hai. Main to bas
apni marji se aayi thi.”
Main –“Lekin, Priya ….”
Priya ne bich me hi meri baat kat te hue kaha –“Bas,
abhi aur kuch mat boliye. Main jaati hoon, nahi to
Mummy chillane lagegi.”
Main –“Lekin,…. lekin …. Lekin …..”
Main lekin, lekin karta rah gaya. Aur Priya kamre se
nikal kar chali gayi. Maine socha sabse maafi maangne
ka isse achha mauka nahi milega. Fir Papa ke aane ke
baad to koi chance hi nahi hai, Maa se akele me kuch
bolne ka. Waqt sahi hai, mujhe iska pura fayda uthana chahiye.
Maine apne bistar se halwe ki katori uthayi. Aur, dhire
dhire hall me aaya. Dabe paav main Maa ki orr badha.
Pammi Didi ne mujhe table ki orr aate dekh liya tha.
Unhone mujhe rukne ka ishara bhi kiya, lekin main
badhta gaya. Maa ke paas pahuchte hi teeno ki nazar
mujh par gad gayi. Maine Maa ke bagalwali kursi ko
khicha, aur dhire se baith gaya. Maa ke chahre par
gussa nahi tha. Lekin, wo kuch bol nahi rahi thi.
Maine baat suru karte hue bola –“Maa, galti ho gayi
mujhse. Mujhe aisa nahi karna chahiye tha. Ab aisa
kabhi nahi hoga. Maaf kar do mujhe.”
Maa –“Kal raat bhi tumne Pammi ke sath jo kuch kiya,
usse uski tabiyat bigad gayi thi. Aur, subah meri gand
marne ke baad bhi tumhara jee nahi bhara. Fir se
dophar me tumne Pammi ke sath jabardasti ki. Ye thik
nahi kiya tumne.”
Main –“Maa, main bahak gaya tha. Mujhe hosh hi nahi
tha ki main kya kar raha hoon, warna main aapke saath
jabardasti karne ki himmat bhi nahi kar sakta.”
Maa, Didi, Main aur Priya ab aapas me puri tarah se
khul chuke the. Kapde ka jo ek parda tha, wo to uth
chuka tha. Ab na to Maa ko sharm aa rahi thi aise
baatein karne me, naa hi hum teeno bhai bahan me se
kisi ko koi aascharya ho raha tha.
Maa –“Jo bhi ho lekin, tumne galat kadam uthaya tha.
Mere tak to baat thik thi, mujhe tumhare Papa ke bade
aur mote land se chudne ki aadat hai, lekin Pammi ki
seal to abhi turant hi khuli hai. Pratham sambhog ke
chot abhi tak bhare bhi nahi the, ki usne tumhara
khayal karte hue apni gand bhi tumse chudwaya. Lekin,
tumhe Pammi ka koi khayal nahi hai. Tum mere nahi
Pammi ke gunaahgar ho. Pammi se maafi mango, shayad
wo tumhe maaf kar sake.”
Main apne jagah se uth kar Pammi Didi ke bagal me
jaakar khada ho gaya. Aur Didi se maafi mangi.
Main –“Pammi Didi, maaf kar do mujhe. Aainde main
aapko hath bhi nahi lagaunga.”
Didi –“Main tumse gussa nahi hoon. Tumne jo kiya waise
ho sakta hai. Lekin khud par kaboo rakhte hue apne
saathi ko mazaa dena aur mazaa lena hi safal sambhog
ka niyam hai. Tumhe abhi bahut kuuch sikhne ki jarurat
hai. Abhi to tumne sirf ekk paath hi padha hai. Kaafi
kuch sikhne ko baakihai abhi tumhe. Main tumse gussa
hoon hi nahi. Lekin, ab se khayal rakhna.”
Main –“Didi, thank you. Ab main kabhi aapko chot nahi
pahuchaunga.”
Didi –“Chalo koi baat nahi. Ab yaha baitho aur halwa
kha lo. Thandi ho jayegi nahi to.”
Priya –“Aur, mujhse maafi nahi mangoge bhaiya.”
Maa –“Tujhse kis baat ki maafi. Tum Saurav se chhoti
ho. Aur, tumhare saamne ye sab nahi hona chahiye tha.
Lekin, jo ho chuka hai so ho chuka hai. Ab aisa kuch nahi
hona chahiye.”
Main Maa ke bagalwali kursi par jaakar baith gaya. Aur,
chupchap halwe ka mazaa lene laga.
Main –“Maa, halwa to bahut jaykedaar bana hai. Saath
me kuch namkeen hota to aur maza aata.”
Priya –“To usme kya hai, main abhi mixture laati hoon.”
Priya uth kar kitchen me chali gayi. Aur, ek chinaware
plate me mixture lekar aayi. Aur, sabke bich me table
par rakh di. Hum sabne sath me halwe ka mazaa liye.
Saath me namkeen ka bhi. Fir sabhi apne apne kamre
me chale gaye. Didi aur Priya bhi apne kamre me chale
gaye. Maa ne saari kotere aur plates uthaye. Aur,
kitchen me chali gayi. Bahut der ho chuki thi. Ab tak to
Papa aa jaate hai. Par aaj pata nahi kyu der ho rahi thi.
Shayad traffic me faas gaye honge.
Chalo kisi tarah to maine Maa aur Didi se maafi to
mang li. Lekin, ab bhi dher saari baate saaf nahi hui hai.
Priya se bhi khul kar baat karni padegi. Main apni yojna
banane me jut gaya. Aur, ab sab kuch samanya ho chuka tha.
Sham ke 6 baj chuke hai. Papa bhi aa chuke hai. 5
Minute pahle hi Maa ne darwaja khola tha Papa ke aane
par. Papa apne kamre me chale gaye hai. Aur, Maa
hamesa ki tarah kitchen ke kaamo me vayast hai. Main
pani pine ke bahane kitchen me gaya. Aur, Maa se baat
karne laga.
Main –“Maa. Please, aaj ki koi baat Papa ko mat batana.
Pata nahi wo kaisa react kare.”
Maa –“Are wo to chahte hi the, ki tum meri chudai karo.
Tumhare Papa ko to aur maza aayega sunkar. Wo to
Pammi ko bhi chodna chahte hai.”
Main –“Maa, lekin kahi Papa sach me aisa nahi chahte ho
to. Matlab, tum to roleplay ke liye taiyar hi rahti ho. Fir
aankh band hote hi kya pata chalta hai ki kiski gand
maar rahe hai, asli chudai to dimaag me chalti hai. Jise
gand maarna chahte hai, uska naam socho. Aur, agar
chudnewali bhi waisa hi saath de to, Abhishek ki gand
me Aishwarya ka mazaa mil sakta hai.”
Maa –“Thik hai. Main kuch bhi nahi bolungi. Lekin, ab
aisi-waisi koi harkat mat karna. Jao apne kamre me jao.”
Main –“Maa, aise ek baat puchhu kya?”
Maa –“Ha, bol beta, kya puchhna chahta hai.”
Main –“Kuch nahi, bas ye ki, aaj kiski baari hai??? Haha”
Maa –“Matlab, kya kiski baari hai.”
Main –“Bholi naa bano ab maa, matlab aaj Papa ko kiski
gand chakhhane wali ho.” Main bolkar hasne laga. Maa
bhi sharmakar jhhep si gayi.
Maa –“Chal badmash, Maa se majak karta hai. Chal jaa
apne kamre me.” Aisa kahte hue Maa ne mere pith par
halke se chapat lagayi.
Main –“Maa, bata bhi do ab, aaj kiski moti moti gand
chudne wali hai. Dadi ki ya Nani ki.”
Maa –“Badmash, bhaag yaha se, shaitani karta hai.”
Maine Maa ke gand par hath rakha, aur sahlate hue
dabane laga. Maa ne hatne ki kosish ki. Lekin, main Maa
ke aur karib jaakar sat gaya. Maa ko jor se pakad ke
sat gaya unse main. Maa ki chuchiya mere chhati ke
thodi niche chubne lagi. Maine Maa ko jor se bhichte hue kaha.
Main –“Jaa chud le jitna chudna hai Papa se rat bhar.
Par, kal din bhar mere sath rahogi na rani.”
Maa ne mujhe dhakka dekar dur hataya. Aise achanak
hamle se sharma gayi thi Maa. Hadbada kar Maa ne bola.
Maa –“Are maafi milte hi fir se tune galti karna suru
kar diya. Maine kitni baar mana kiya, fir bhi wahi galti
baar baar.”
Maine ek hath Maa ke blouse ke andar daalte hue Maa ki
chochiyon ko sahla diya. Gudgudi se Maa sihar uthi.
Sharma kar Maa pichhe palat gayi. Aur, mera haath
blouse se bahar aa gaya. Aur, hath se takra kar Maa ki
blouse ka ek hook khul gaya. Maa ne do hath se blouse
ki hook band karne ki koshish ki. Maa ke dono hath
blouse ke hook band karne me vayast the.
Maine mauka ka fayda uthate hue, Maa ko pichhe se
jakad liya. Mera land Maa ke gand ke daraar me fas
gaya. Fir se mujhe Maa ki gand marne ki ichha hone
lagi. Mera land tanak kar Maa ki gand par chubne laga.
Maa ko iska ahsash ho chuka tha. Muskurate hue Maa ne
mujhse dhakka dekar alag kiya aur boli.
Maa –“Abhi tum jao yaha se. Tumhare Papa aate hi
honge. Itne utawale naa ho. Kal din bhar to tumhare
saath hi bitana hai naa. Bas ek raat ki baat hai. Intezar
karo bete.”
Main –“Maa tumhari gand itne mast hai ki, bardast hi
nahi hota. Mauka milte hi chodne ka man karne lagta hai.”
Maa –“Beta, lekin abhi to aisa koi mauka nahi hai.
Tumhare Papa aa hi chuke hai. Aur, unki bhent chadegi
meri gand aaj.”
Main fir se Maa ke nazdeek jate hue Maa ke kamar par
hath firane laga. Hath ghumate ghumate dono hath fir
se Maa ki gand ke golaiyo par pahuch chuke the. Maine
jor se Maa ki dono nitambo ko chapa. Maa ki muh si aah
si nikal gayi.
Main –“Jata hoon Maa. Lekin pahle ye to batao ki, aaj
kiski gand marne wale hai Papa.”
Maa –“Badmash tu aise nahi manega. Bata hi deti hoon
ab. ... ... . .. . Aaj tere Papa mujhe Pammi bana kar
chodne wale hai.”
Itna kah kar Maa sharma kar apna chehra jhuka li. Maa
ke gaal sharm se laal ho gaye the. Aisa lag raha the
mano kashmiri sev ho. Dil kar raha tha ki kat daloon
maa ki dono gaal. Maine Maa ki thuddi pakad kar upar
uthate hue Maa se puchha.
Main –“Kya baat hai Maa. Aaj itna sharma kyu rahi ho.
Wo bhi mujhse. Papa ke samne aaj kya karogi.”
Maa –“Haa beta, bahut hi romanchit hoon main, soch kar
hi. Aaj puri raat mujhe Pammi ki role me chodne wale
hai tere Papa. Raat kya abhi se hi mujhe Pammi ke role
me aa jana hai.”
Main –“Fir bhi Maa, ye to tum roz karti ho, aaj itna kyu
sharma rahi ho. Koi na koi baat to jaroor hai. Kahi tum
Papa ko hamari chudaai ke bare me to nahi batana
chahti ho naa.?”
Maa –“Na beta, main nahi bataungi. Khash baat ye hai
aaj ki, tere Papa aaj meri boor bhi chodne wale hai gand
se pahle. Maine unse shart rakhi thi. Isliye aaj meri boor
bhi khush hai.”
Maine mauka dekh kar saari ke upar se hi Maa ke boor
par hatheli rakh di. Aur bhinchte hue ragad diya Maa ki
boor ko. Maa ki boor si paani chhut gaya. Maa ne mera
hath jhatakte hue hata diya.
Main –“Kya hua, gussa kyu kar rahi ho. Maine to bas
pyar se dabaya tha.”
Maa –“Ab bhaag jaldi nahi to tere Papa se shikayaat
karti hoon abhi teri.”
Main –“Kar do, main bhi bata dunga ki kaise tum gand
hila hila kar tujhse chudwa rahi thi.”
Maa –“Are, blackmail karta hai. Ruk abhi batati hoon.”
Maa ne meri baal pakad kar khiche, aur fir se ekk
thappad marne ki koshish ki. Lekin main dur hat gaya ki
bach gaya. Main maa ke dur bhaag kar kitchen se bahar
aa gaya aur puchha.
Main –“Maa, bas ek aur sawaal ka jawaab de do. Fir
main jata hoon.”
Maa –“Achha puchh jaldi aur bhaag yaha se.”
Maine Maa ke nazdeek jakar puchha –“Achha Maa, tum
itni gussa kyu thi mujhse. Mujhe do thappad bhi laga diya.”
Maa ne meri taraf ghurte hue kaha –“Ab tu hi bata,
main kya karti. Meri gand marti tune jabardasti. Tune
apni ichha puri ki. Fir 4 ghante ke andar tune Pammi ke
gand par hath maar diya. Aise me mujhe gussa nahi aayega.”
Maine socha aur kaha –“O, to aap is baat par gussa thi
ki maine didi ki gand par kyu hath maara. Tumhari gand
maarta to sahi tha kya Maa.”
Maa –“Chal badmash, bahut shararat kar raha hai.”
Main –“Batao na Maa, Didi ki jagah agar tumhari gand
maarta dubara to bhi mujhe thappad marti.”
Maa –“Nahi marti, main isliye gussa thi ki tune Pammi ki
gand kyu maari. Hua, ab jaa yaha se.”
Maine Maa ki choochi ko chhute hue kaha –“Ek baar land
par hath laga do na Maa, fir main yaha se chala jaunga.”
Maa ne mere land ko pant ke upar se sahlate hue kaha
–“Saurav, tum apni Maa ko chhod kar kisi aur ko nahi
chod sakte. Mujhe bhi kal pure din tumse chudna hai.
Lekin agar kisi aur ke paas gaye to fir se pitungi tujhe.”
Maine bhi Maa ke boor par hath rakhte hue kaha –“Nahi
Maa, ab main kisi ke paas nahi jaunga. Jab bhi dil
karega tumhare paas aa jaunga.”
Maa –“Ab bhaag jaldi yaha se.”
Maine Maa ko chhoda aur apne kamre me aa gaya. Aur
let kar sochne laga , ki Maa ka gussa to kisi aur baat
par tha. Maa isliye gussa nahi thi ki, maine didi ko
choda. Maa to iss baat par gussa thi ki maine fir se Maa
ko naa chod kar didi ko choda.
Matlab, Maa mujhse baar-baar chudna chahti hai. Main
khushi se jhoom utha tha.
Main jise Maa ka gussa samajh raha tha. Wo to mere
liye Maa ki tadap thi. Lekin, Priya ke man ka raaz abhi
tak mujh par jaahir nahi hua tha. Sabr karne me hi
bhalai thi. Kyuki agli subah to Maa ki lajawaab matakti
gand ke pyaas apne machalte land se dur karna hi tha.
Main apne computer me laga tha, ki achanak mere
kamre me Pammi Didi dakhil hui. Main darwaja band
karna bhool gaya tha.
Didi ne computer screen par chalti blue film ko dekh
liya tha. Magar fir bhi didi ne nazarandaaz kar diya.
Shayad Didi kisi baat se chinchit thi. Didi ki chahre par
chinta ki rekhaye saaf saaf dikhai de rahi thi. Maine
bina ek pal gawaye film band ki aur, Didi ki orr
mukhatib hua.
Main –“Kya hua Didi, itni udas kyu lag rahi ho. Koi baat
hai kya?”
Didi ne andar aate hi mere kamre ka darwaja band kar
diya. Aur, daud kar mujhse aakar lipat gayi. Aur, mujhe
pakad kar rona suru kar diya. Didi fafak fafak kar ro
rahi thi. Didi ke aise bartaav se main chaunk sa gaya, ki
aisa kya ho gaya ki Didi aisa kar rahi hai. Ho na ho, koi
baat to jaroor hai. Maine Didi ke baho ko pakad kar
bistar par bithaya. Aur, chup karane ki kosish karne laga.
Main –“Chup ho jao Didi. Kya baat hai, mujhe batao.
Agar aise rowogi to Maa ko pata chal jayega aur meri
fir se pitai hogi. Aur, abhi to Papa bhi hai, chup ho jao aap.”
Didi meri orr dekhti jaa rahi thi. Aur, roti ja rahi thi.
Main Didi ke paas farsh par niche baith gaya. Aur, Didi
ki ghutno ke bich apna saar rakh diya. Didi ne mere
saar par hath ferna suru kar diya. Ab Didi chup hone
lagi thi.
Main –“Chup ho jao. Jo bhi baat hai mujhe batao. Mujhse
jo ho sakega, main karunge Didi.”
Didi chup ho gayi thi. Lekin ab bhi chup hi thi. Ek ajib si
mayoosi thi Didi ke chehre par. Main samajh nahi pa
raha tha ki aakhir baat hai kya. Didi bhi kuch bata nahi
rahi thi. Maine thoda waqt dena hi uchit samjha.
Thodi der baad main utha aur Didi ke bagal me baith
gaya. Mujhe itna to pata chal hi gaya tha ki kuch na
kuch baat to jaroor hai. Kahi Priya ne to kuch nahi bola
Didi se.
Main –“Didi, kya baat hai batao mujhe. Varna, mujhe
kaise pata chalega.”
Pammi Didi –“Samajh me nahi aa raha ki kaise kahu.
Ajib si baat hai ye.”
Main –“Tum kah kar do dekho pahle. Fir sochte hai kya
karna hai.”
Didi –“Saurav, main tumse bahut pyar karti hoon. Aur,
apni jawani ki aag ko sambhal bhi nahi payi. Isliye kahi
bahar na jakar tumse hi chudwaya. Par mujhe nahi pata
ki tum kya chahte ho bhai. Mere baad tumne Maa ke
saath jabardasti ki. Fir tum mere paas laut aaye, tab
mujhe badi khushi hui thi.”
Main –“Didi, jo hua use bhool jao. Main bhi tumhe chot
nahi pahuchana chahta tha. Hume ab kuch dino tak
aapsi rishte ko fir se majboot karne ki jarurat hai. Maa
bhi mujhse ab gussa nahi hai. Maine Maa se maafi bhi
mang hi li hai. Ab tum kuch aur mat socho. Aur, is baat
to aapne haal par chhod do. Jo hoga dekha jayega.”
Didi ne mere taraf dekhte hue kaha –“Nahi chhod sakti.
Tumhe kuch maloom nahi hai bhai. Mere dil par kya biti
hai, iska jara sa bhi andaaza nahi hai tumhe. Jis justzoo
se maine tumhe pyar kiya hai bhai, utni hi gahri chot
lagi hai mere dil ko. Jab tum mere paas wapas aaye to
ekk marham sa mil gaya tha dil ko. Lekin, fir se sab
kuch bigad gaya, aur, ab to mujhe apni haar hi nazar aa
rahi hai har taraf.”
Didi kya kah rahi thi, mujhe kuch samajh me hi nahi aa
raha tha. Aisa kya tha jo mujhe maloon nahi tha. Ab jab
Didi khud mere paas aayi thi, to har raaz ka pardafash
kar hi leta hoon...
Update 24
Maine Didi se puchha –“Jab tak tum bataogi nahi tab
tak mujhe pata kaise chalega Didi?”
Didi ne dhire se kaha –“Kal jo kuch bhi hua so hua.
Lekin, maine kabhi ye nahi socha tha ki tum sachmuch
me Maa ko chhod daloge. Wapas jab tum mere paas
aaye to mujhe laga ki shayad tumhe mere pyar ka
ahsash ho gaya hai. Aur, tum apni bhool ko badalna
chahte ho. Fir bich me Maa aur Priya aa gaye.”
Main –“Didi, thik hi to hua jo hua. Agar Maa nahi aati to
tumhe aur takleef hoti. Main to apne hosh me hi nahi
tha. Fir Maa ne thappado ne mujhe hosh me laya. Warna
main to wahasi ho gaya tha vasna me.”
Didi –“Tum nahi jante Saurav. Priya ke man me kya hai,
warna aise nahi bolte.”
Maine chaunkte hue puchha –“Kya hai Priya ke man me?
Mujhe to usne kuch bhi nahi bataya.”
Didi –“Wo Priya bol rahi thi ki chahe kuch bhi ho wo
tumhe mujhse chhin kar rahegi. Wo dhire dhire apna jaal
faila rahi hai tumhe fasane ke liye. Wo jo bhi kar rahi
hai, wo sab chaal hai tumhe faasne ka. Uski baato me
mat aa jana tum. Wo hum dono ko juda karna chahti hai.”
Main –“Lekin, Didi mere aur Priya ke bich aisa kuch bhi
nahi hai. Haa, usne apni skirt utha kar mujhe nyota to
diya tha usni gand ki seal bhang karne ka. Lekin, abhi
tak aisa koi mauka hi nahi mila hai.”
Didi –“Maine kaha na wo tumko fasana chahti hai. Dhire
dhire tum uske jaal me fas jaoge fir na mujh par koi
dhayan doge, na kisi aur par.”
Main –“Didi, aap khawa-ma-kha chinta kar rahi hai, aise
kuch nahi hoga. Main to apke pyara bhai hoon. Aur,
aapne to apni boor ka khoon bhi chakhaya diya mere
sher ko. Aur, ek baar jaha khoon laga sher ke muh me,
fir to wo aadamkhor ban jata hai.”
Aur, maine Didi ki kamar par hath daal diya, aur Didi ki
orr lapka. Didi hasne lagi aur mujhe hatati hui boli
–“Chhodo na, aise mat karo na. Gudgudi hoti hai.”
Main –“Wah ab gudgudi hone lagi. Gand me gudgudi
nahi hoti hai, jab uchal uchal kar leti ho.”
Didi sharmate hue boli –“Hatt bhai!!” Aur mujhe gale se
laga liya.
Main –“Didi, mauka achha hai, ek round ho jaye ghapa
ghap jaldi se.”
Didi –“Pagal ho gaye ho kya, abhi nahi kar sakti main.
Mujhe thode aram ki jarurat hai. Itni berahmi se choda
hai tumne ki fat ke faluda ho gayi meri boor aur gand.
Ab to 4-5 baad hi le paungi tumhara land bhai.”
Main –“Sorry Didi, ab main tumhe bahut pyar se
chodunga. Tumhe chot pahuchaya uske liye maaf kar do mujhe.”
Didi –“Isi baat ka to daar laga rahta hai mujhe, ki kahi
mere pyar me koi kami na rah jaye. Nahi to, tum asani
se Priya ke jaal me fas jaoge. Aur, mujhe bhool jaoge.”
Ye bol kar Didi udas ho gayi. Maine Didi koo hausla dete
hue kaha –“Aisa kuch nahi hoga Didi. Main apko kabhi
nahi bhool sakta. Apne mujhe jo pyar diya hai 2 dino
me. Wo bhool pana mere liya namumkin hai. Chahe jo bhi
ho, hamare bich koi nahi aayega.”
Didi –“Jo bhi ho, lekin shambal kar rahna tum. Tum par
to vishwas kar bhi loon bhai. Lekin, tumhare land par
aitbaar nahi mujhe. Nangi boor dekh kar agar kisi tarah
tum khud par kaboo kar bhi lo, lekin ye tumhara
manchala land ki pyaas tumhe bekaboo kar hi degi. Aur,
main tumhe khona nahi chahti. Isliye, sawdhan to rahna
hi padega.”
Main –“Didi, tum chinta mat karo. Main aisa upay
nikalunga ki sanp bhi mar jaye aur laathi bhi na tute.”
Didi –“Matlab, main samjhi nahi. Kya karne ki soch rahe
ho tum bhai.”
Main –“Didi, main soch raha tha ki agar maine Priya ko
nahi choda, to wo bahar kisi na kisi se chudwa hi legi.
Aise bhi uske sare dost use lalchai nazro se dekhte
rahte hai. Priya ke ek ishare par wo marne ko bhi taiyar
hai. Isliye main soch raha tha ki kyun naa main hi uski
pahle makkhan ka swad chakh loon. Uske baad use jaha
marwana ho, marwati rahe.”
Didi –“You swine!! Matlab tum Priya ko chodna chahte
ho. Ye jante hue bhi ki uske iraade nek nahi hai.”
Main –“Didi, jaise aap meri didi ho, wo bhi to meri bahan
hai. Uska bhi mere land par haq banta hai. Tumhe to
apni sabhi chedo me mere land ka maza le liya hai. Ab
zara use bhi lene do.”
Didi –“Dekha! Mujhe pata tha, tum uske jaal me fas
jaoge. Bhai abhi bhi waqt hai. Shambhal lo khud ko.”
Main –“Didi tum chinta mat karo, main usko khud par
haavi hone nahi dunga. Lekin, itni karari maal hai Priya
ki, use chode bina bhi nahi raha jata Didi.”
Didi –“Main tunse bahut pyar karti hoon. Jo karna hai
soch samajh kar karna. Aur, mujhse kuch chhupaye to
dekh lena. Main kabhi baat nahi karungi tumse.”
Main –“Didi, kaafi der ho chuki hai. Tum apne kamre me
jao. Main dekhta hoon aage kya karna hai.”
Didi apne kamre me chali gayi. Ab mujhe pata chal
chuka tha ki Priya bhi mujhse chudne ko utawali hain.
Aur, sirf chudne ke liye nahi, wo to mujhe apne jhant
me band kar rakhna chahti hai. Didi bhi mere pyar me
pagal hai. Aur, Maa ko kal pure din ke liye meri hi hai.
Maa ne Bipin se chudne ke liye haa bhi bol hi diya hai.
Bas, ab Pooja Didi ki kori gand bhi nazdeek aati dikh
rahi hai. Sabse pahle Priya se milkar uski tadap ka
zayza lena hoga, ki Priya kitni paani me hai, aur uske
andar kitni aag lag rahi hai.
Maa aur Priya ka gussa to mere liye unka pyar nikla.
Maa, Didi aur Priya mujhe pane ko bekarar hain. Aur,
bekarari itni tezz ho uthi hai ki ab to sab mujhe apna
vakytigaat chuddad banane me lage hue hai. Jo bhi ho,
lekin meri to pancho ungliyaan ghee me dubti nazar aa
rahi hai.
Update 25
Dophar se sham tak meri jo haalat hui thi daar se, wo
sirf mujhe hi pata tha. Ek ek second muskil se kata tha.
Kisi tarah ab stithi kaboo me aayi thi. Kisi tarah se
baato baato me Maa ko mana liya, aur Didi se bhi saari
baate jaan li.
Ab bas mauka milte hi Priya se fariyana baki tha. Aise
bhi kal to pure din Maa meri ki thi. Didi aur Priya dono
college jayenge kal. Pure din main aur Maa akele honge
ghar par. Kal ke romanch ke bare me soch soch kar man
hi man gadgad ho raha tha main.
Udhar Maa aur Papa rasleela karne me jute the. Papa
fresh hokar kitchen me Maa ke saath chedchad me jute
the. Aur, Priya aur Didi apne kamre me the. Priya aur
Didi ke bich kuch khatpat hui thi shayad. Didi ki baato
se to aisa hi jaan padta tha. Kuch bhi ho, mujhe kya.
Mujhe to bas & karna tha, jo mujhe Didi se
mil hi raha tha, ab kisi tarah se Priya ko apne jaal me
fasana baki tha. Didi ki kahe anusaar to Priya mujhe
apne jaal me fasana chah rahi hai. Lekin, Priya mujhe
fasaye ya main Priya ko fasau, baat to ek hi hai na.
Dono ki shart me to chudegi Priya hi naa.
Priya se baat karne use bhi pata lene ka dil kar raha
tha. Bhale hi abhi chod nahi pata, lekin aag kitni tezz
jal rahi hai, ye to pata laga hi sakta tha. Lekin, Didi ke
rahte ke muskil tha. Priya ko akele me patana hoga. Ab
raat hone ka intezaar karna tha, aaj to Maa ki chudai
dekhne ka alag hi maza hoga.
Kyu naa Didi ko bhi bula liya jaye. Aur, pichhli raat ke
jaise hi chodam chudaai kheli jaye. Maa bhi bahut khudh
thi, kyuki aaj bahut dino baad Maa ki boor chudne wali
thi. Kaafi dino se Papa ne Maa ki boor nahi chodi thi.
Mauka milte hi gand chod daalte the Maa ki. Isliye aaj
ki raat Maa ke liye khash hai.
Maine dhire se apna darwaja khola aur haule haule hall
ke darwaje ke paas chala aaya. Darwaje ki dono palle
khule hue the. Aksar hi ye darwaja khula hi rahta hai.
Papa aur Maa kitchen me the. Maine chhup kar dekhne
ka socha. Man me aaya ki Didi ko bhi bula loon, lekin
main hall ke darwaje se main paar nahi hona sakta tha.
Nahi to, Papa sachet ho jayenge. Aur, kuch bhi dekhne
ko nahi milega.
Isliye maine akele hi chhup kar dekhna uchit samjha.
Darwaje ki chaukhat aur darwaje ke daaye palle ke bich
se jo fank banti thi, usse kitchen ke andar dekhai padta
tha. Pura nahi par wo hissa dikhai pad raha tha, jaha
Maa khadi thi. Papa dikhai nahi de pad rahe the.
Maa aur Papa kuch khusur fusur baate kar rahe the.
Mujhe dhire-dhire khusfush ki awaaz to aa rahi thi,
lekin main saaf saaf sun nahi pa raha tha. Maine
darwaje par kaan lagakar sunne ki koshish ki, kuch sunai
hi nahi pad raha tha ki dono kya baate kar rahe hai.
Bas, itna andaaz laga pa raha tha main, ki Papa Maa ko
Pammi bula rahe the. Aur, Maa bhi Pammi Didi ki jagah
le chuki thi.
Jo bhi ho aaj raat ki chudaai bahut mast hone waali thi.
Main yeh mauka khona nahi chahta tha, jaise news
reporters sansanikhez kahabar ke picchhe lag jaate hai.
Waise hi main ek ek second ki recording apne mastisq
me kar raha tha. Darwaje me kaan lagane se kuch kuch
baate sunai de rahi thi. Lekin, kaan laga kar suna ja
sakta hai, dekha nahi ja sakta. Aur, kaan se jyada
aankho se dekhne me maza aata hai. Isliye, main audio
ko undekha karte hue video par dhyan diya aur, Maa
aur Papa ke khel par lagaya.
Darwaje ke fank se pura saaf saaf to dikhai nahi pad
raha tha, lekin Maa dikh rahi thi. Papa nahi dikh rahe
the zara bhi. Bas unki awaaz sunai de rahe thi. Maine
dekha ki Papa Maa ki kamar me hath daal chuke the.
Papa ke hath dhire dhire Maa ke chikni kamar par
fisalane lage the.
Maa bhi maze le rahi thi. Dhire dhire Papa Maa ke
nazdeek aa chuke the. Ab Papa Maa se puri tarah
chipak chuke the. Papa ne ek hath Maa ki gand par tha,
aur ek hath se unhone Maa ki choochi pakad rakhi thi.
Papa Maa ki choochi aur gand ek saath dabaye ja rahe
the. Maa ki dohre maze se sisiyane lagi thi.
Maa ne burner off kar diya, aur Papa ki orr mud gayi.
Maa ne Papa ke sar ko pakda, aur, hont se hont bhida
diye. Maa aur Papa karne me mast the, aur,
shayad bhool hi gaye the ki wo kitchen me hai. Papa ne
Maa ki dono gando ko dono haatho se daboch liya, aur
jor jor se dabane lage.
Dono me se koi kuch bol nahi raha tha, bas honto se
puch puch ki awaaz nikal rahi thi. Maa aur Papa dono
garam ho chuke the. Bas dhaka dhak chudaai hona baki
tha. Main bhi taak lagaye baitha tha ki kab chudaai
duru ho aur main dekh saku. Lekin, kitchen me foreplay
to ho sakta tha. Par, chudaai nahi ho sakti thi.
Meri randi Maa jo kuch der pahle mujhse aalingbadh thi,
abhi Papa ke baho me samayi maze le rahi hai. Main ye
soch soch kar machal raha tha, ki kal mujhe bhi Maa ke
saath ye sab karne ka mauka milne wala hai. Maa aah
aah kar rahi thi, aur Papa ke land ko pant ke upar se
sahla rahi thi. Maa ko pata nahi tha ki main dekh raha
hoon. Maa aur Papa to apni masti me dube hue the. Ab
Papa ka land tanakne laga tha.
Maa –“Aaj to apka land aur mota lag raha hai. Kya baat hai??”
Papa –“Tumhari gand me ghusne ko bekarar hai, Pammi
beta. Isliye khada hokar salami de raha hai.”
Maa bhi ab Didi ke role me ghust chali ja rahi thi. Aur,
Papa apni patni me apni beti ka swaroop tasalne me
jute the. Jo bhi ho, lekin maza to khub aane wala hai aaj
raat. Jo hona hai wo to raat ke khaane ke baad hi hoga.
Drishya itna garam tha ki mera bhi land akadne laga.
Meri randi Maa ko dekh dekh kar aise hi mera land
tanatanaya rahta hai. Aur, unki prarambhik kamkrida
dekh kar mere land ne mujhe chatawani de daali, ki
jaldi se mujhe bhi kisi gufa-grih me aram karwao.
Ab main apne land ko kaise samjhata ki, kal tak ka
intezar karna hi hoga use. Aaj raat to aisa kuch haath
nahi lagne wala tha. Didi ki tabiyat kharab hai isliye
Didi ko chod nahi sakta, aur, Priya se abhi tak aisi koi
baat hui nahi hai. Maa chudne ko taiyar hai, par kal.
Lagta hai aaj raat muth maar kar hi sona padega.
Maa aur Papa apne khel me vayast the. Aur, idhar mere
badan me aag lagni suru ho gayi thi. Main apne shorts
ki zip kholi, aur apna tantanaye land ko bahar nikal liya.
Aur, dhire dhire sahlane laga. Mujhe pata tha ki yaha
aisa karna khatre se khali nahi tha. Lekin, khatra to
Maa aur Papa bhi utha rahe the. To main kyu pichhe
rahu. Aise bhi Didi aur Maa to mere muthhi me hi hai,
rahi baat Priya ki to use bhi sahi raste par le hi aaunga
kisi tarah. Jo daar hai ab bas Papa ka hai. Lekin Papa to
khud Maa ke saath lage hue hai.
Main apne land ko muthhi me bhar ke muthiyane laga.
Udhar kitchen bhi Maa ki siskariyon se gunj raha tha.
Papa Maa ke dono chuchiyon ko haatho me bhar kar
nichhod rahe the. Aur, hoth me hoth guthe hue the.
Chumban me aise madamast the, mano dono ek dusre ke
muh me shama jana chahte ho. Maine bhi jaldi jaldi
muthhi marna suru kar diya. Aise garam drishya ko
dekh kar mere land se virya chhalakne hi waala tha, ki
achanak Didi ke kamre ka darwaja khula.
Didi ke kamre ka darwaja khulte hi main hadbada gaya.
Maine apne land ko pant me daalne ki koshish ki, lekin
land tanak kar tana hua tha. Isliye pant me andar nahi
ghusa. Didi ke kamre se Priya bahar aayi, aur mujhe
aisi haalat me dekh kar chaunk gayi. Shayad Priya ye
soch rahi thi, ki main hall me land nikal kar kya kar raha tha.
Maine Priya ko chup rahne ka ishara kiya. Priya ka muh
khula ka khula rah gaya tha. Ascharyachakit hokar
Priya barf ki tarah jam gayi thi, uski aankhe meri
tantanaye land par jami thi. Priya ke paas ye achha
mauka tha mujhe apne jaal me fasane ka. Main bhi to
yahi chahta tha.
Priya bhauchakka hokar meri aur badhne ki kosish ki.
Maine use rukne ka ishara kiya, aur, kitchen ki orr ungli
karke use samjhane ki kosish ki. Priya ne kitchen me
dekha tha, to Maa aur Papa abhi bhi guttham-ghutta ho
rahe the. Priya ke boor ki garmi badhne lagi. Priya ke
andar susupt padi kaamaagni prajwalit ho uthi fir se.
Maa-Papa ab bhi hamari mauzoodgi se anjaan ek dusre
ko french sikhane me mashgul the. Aur, Maine fir se
apne gear ko hath me le liya. Dhire dhire maine fir se
gear badhana suru kiya. Priya darwaje ke uss taraf se
dekh rahi thi, aur main iss taraf se. Lekin, dono me koi
bhi ek dusre ke paas nahi aa sakte the.
Maine Priya ko wahi rahne ka ishara kiya. Priya aur
Main dono kitchen me jhankne lage Main apne
land par muthhi marte ja raha tha. Priya bhi garam ho
rahi thi. Priya ne apna daaya hath apni skirt ke andar
daal liya. Aur, apni boor ko hatheli se masalne lagi. Meri
saamne Priya ki nangi boor nachne lagi. Kal raat hi to
maine Priya ko maine nanga dekha tha khidki par aatm-
yoni-mardan karte hue. Ek taraf jaha jaha Maa ki
chuchiya masli ja rahi thi, to idhar Priya ka dusra haath
uske chuchiyo par fisalne laga.
Aise haalat me mera land kitna saath deta. Maine jor
jor se muthhi marna suru kar diya. Mera badhta suroor
dekh kar Priya ne aag me aur ghee daalne ka kaam
kiya. Priya ne apni skirt utha kar apni panty jangho tak
niche kar di. Ab meri aankho ke saamne Priya ki boor
thi. Priya ki reshmi mulayam jhante chamak rahi thi.
Aur, kali kali jhanto ki badri ke beech gulabi gulabi boor
ki pankhudiya dikhai padi. Mere land se mano ab virya
ras chhalakne hi wala tha. Priya ne apne boor par hath
rakh liya, aur dhire dhire masalne lagi. Kal to dur se hi
dekh paya tha uski boor, lekin aaj bas 2 haath ki doori
par thi wo.
Lekin, main uske paas nahi ja sakta tha. Main ek baar
Priya ki orr dekhta tha, to ekk baar Maa ki orr. Karib 5
minute tak main aise hi jor jor se hilata raha, Priya bhi
mujhe ek tak dekhe ja rahi thi. Priya ki boor se kaamras
tapakne laga tha, lagta hai Priya jhad chuki thi ek baar.
Lekin, fir bhi wo apne boor ko ragde ja rahi thi. Mard
aur Aurat me yahi to ek bada fark hai, lekin ye to
kudrat ki den hai. Isme koi kya kar sakta hai. Jaha mard
ek baar jhad kar 15-20 minute tak gand bhi nahi utha
sakte, wahi aurate lagatar 3-4 baar tak jhad sakti hai.
Priya ka kaamras uske hatheliyo ko bhiga raha tha. Aur,
mera land bhi ab lava chhodne hi wala tha. 5-6 baar jor
se maine mutthhi maari, aur mere land ne lava ugal
diya. Priya ke boor se to ras aise bah raha tha mano
kisi ne bandh khol diya ho. 2-4 bund paani usne bhi
tapkaya farsh par. Maa aur Papa to abhi tak lage hue
the. Aur, hum dono ka kaam ho chuka tha. Lekin, farsh
par dono ne paani giraya tha. Maine paas me pade ek
kapde uthaya, aur usse farsh saaf kar diya, aur wo
kapda Priya ke taraf badha diya. Priya to hai ki kaafi
samajhdar. Usne bhi der na karte hue farsh saaf kar daala.
Hamara kaam ho chuka tha. Ab waha se chup chap
khisak jane me hi bhalai thi. So, maine Priya ko apne
kamre me jaane ka ishara kiya. Hum dono apne kapde
thik hi kar rahe thi, ki achanak Pammi Didi bhi kamre se
bahar aa gayi. Mere aur Priya, dono apne kapde thik
kar rahe the. Didi ko samajhte der nahi lagi, ki kuch to
hua hai. Lekin, hall me chudai to nahi hi kar sakte the
hum. Didi ko bhi ye baat achhe se pata tha.
Didi kuch kahne ke liye muh khole uske pahle hi maine
Didi ko chup rahne ka ishara kiya. Didi ne sade hue
tamatar ki tarah muh bana liya tha. Tabhi Didi ki nazar
kitchen me gayi, aur, Didi samajh gayi ki majra kaya
hai. Maine Didi aur Priya dono ko kamre me wapas jaane
ka ishara kiya, aur khud bhi dabe paav wapas apne
kamre me jaane laga.
Didi aur Priya bhi apne kamre me chali gayi. Aur, main
bhi apne kamre ka darwaja band kar liya. Abhi jo kuch
bhi hua, usse ek baat to saaf thi, ki ab Priya chudne ko
taiyar hai. Kuch kahne sun-ne ki jarurat hi nahi bachi
thi ab to, bas mauka milte hi Priya ki tange faila kar
daal dena tha. Lekin, Didi ab Priya ko bina pahre ke
nahi chhodne waali thi. Fir bhi ummide ko barkarar rakhi
thi maine. Jaha chah waha rah par vishwas karte hue ab
aage badhna tha. Ab to bhookh bhi lagne lagi hai. Lekin,
meri randi Maa to chudne ki taiyari me vayast hai, aur,
abhi kitchen me jaa bhi nahi sakta.
Udhar Priya aur Didi me firse bakjakh to hogi pakka. Jo
bhi ho lekin, ab mere land ko thoda aram tha. Mujhe
mera agala lakshya saaf saaf dikh raha hai ab –
“Priya ka boor.”
Didi aur Priya ki bich kuch to gadbad hai, jo mujhe nahi
pata hai. Dono ki bich ki ladai ka sahi sahi andaaz main
to nahi laha sakta abhi. Lekin, aisa hota raha to ghar ki
shanti bhang ho jayegi. Mauka dekh kar dono ko ek sath
samjhana padega. Aur, yahi sahi mauka hai, dono se
baaat karne ka. Priya ke boor me bhi aag lagi hai abhi,
aur Didi to pahle se hi jhulas rahi hai kamagni me.
Lekin, unki boor aur gand ke chot ne unhe chudne se rok
rakha hai.
Maine apna kamar kasa, aur tark-vitark ko apna auzaar
banaya. Man ko dhadhas dete hue, apne kamre ka fatak
ko khol diya. Ye jung Didi aur Priya ke bich nahi thi, ye
jung thi meri do mitra rastro ke bich. Jaha ek taraf
meri Didi roopi premika thi, wahi dusri orr Priya thi,
jisse main prem sandhi karne ke soch raha tha, apne
land ke rajya vistar ki lalsa ne mujhe iss yuddha me
kudne ke liye majboor kar diya tha.
Yaddapi, dono pakkchho me meri mitrata jaroor thi,
kintu unke bich ke aapsi kalah ko bhi shant karna uchit
tha. Anyatha, nikat bhavisya me ye choti si chingari ek
bhayanak aag ka roop le sakti hai. Jo mere land ke
samrajya ke liye uchit nahi hoga.
Pammi Didi ki boor par kabja to maine pahle hi kar liya
tha. Wo meri pahli jeet thi, fir unki pichhli rajya par
raat ko chadai karke jeet liya. Maa ki gand par vijay
prapt karne ka suavsar bhi prapt hua aaj subah hi. Kintu
mera land ek bahut hi vilasi, bhogi samrat hai, har pal
ek nayi boor ki kamna karta hai. Iske pyaas mit-ti ki
nahi, aise mahatvakanshi land ke karan mujhe aneko
durlav paristhiyon se gujarna padta hai.
Mere land ke trishna ne hi mujhe apne Senapati ‘Maa’
se do thappad khila diye the. Apne land ke samrajya me
Priya ke dono rajyo ke vilay ke baad mujhe Maa ke agli
rajya par vijay bhi pana tha. Aadhi satta ki bagdor
mere land ne tham li thi. Ab samay aa gaya ki Priya ke
chote se rajya ko jeet kar apna rajya-vistar kiya jaye.
Parantu, agar do mitra rastra ki bich agar aapsi-kalah
ho to wo mere samrajya ke liye thik nahi hai. Maa Didi
aur Priya sabhi ke man me ek hi baat hai, ki wo mere
land ko apne boor aur gand me daal kar choubiso ghante
uchhalti rahe. Parantu, sirf bhog-vilash hi ek samrat ka
daaitva(duty) nahi hota, mere land samrat ko anya
kaaryo ka bhi dhyan rakhna padta hai.
Ghar ke angan me jo ye choda-chodi chal raahi hai din-
raat, iski bhanak bhi kisi baharwale ko nahi padni
chahiye. Kintu, galti to maine hi ki thi, Bipin ke sath
apne Maa ki gand ka sauda karke. Lekin, jan kadam aage
badha hi diya hai, to pichhe khichne ka koi arth nahi
banta hai. Jo hoga usse tod-marod kar apne hit me
istemaal karna hi raajneeti hai.
Neeti yahi kahti hai ki abhi mujhe Didi aur Priya ke bich
ke manmutaav ko dur karna chahiye. Didi aur Bahan
aapas me sautan banne wali thi. To aise khushi ke
mauke par man me malal kaisa rakhna. Jo bhi ho, sam-
melan ka arth do vayaktiyo ka milan nahi hota. Pammi
Didi ke saath-saath Priya ke man ko bhi saaf karna hi
uchit tha. Maine apne tarkash ko apne tikchhn(sharp)
vaano(arrows) se sajya kiya, aur chal pada ranbhoomi ki orr.
Maa aur Papa kitchen me hi suru the. Fir achanak dono
ko hosh aaya ki wo kitchen me hai. To Maa ne Papa ko
hatho se halka dhakka dete hue dur kiya apne sharir se.
Papa to ab bhi Maa se chipakne me lage hue the. Maa
ne kisi tarah stithi ko sambhala.
Maa –“Bahut ho gaya Papa, hum ab yaha aur nahi kar
sakte. Aaj raat jab sab so jayenge tab main aapke
kamre me aa jaungi. Fir jo karna hai kar lena. Aise bhi
meri boor me bhi chitiya daud hai aapse chudwane ke
liye. Apka 9” ka land nigalne ke liye mera boor aur gand
fadak rahe hai Papa.”
Papa Maa ke muh se aisi madhosh baate sun kar ati-
uttejit ho chuke the. Aisa lag raha tha ki ab Papa Maa
ko patak kar wahi pelna suru kar denge. Maa ne fir se
klutch apne hatho me lete hue ubalte hue doodh me
paani ke chhite maar diye.
Maa –“Abhi nahi Papa darling, aaj saari raat to chudegi
hi apki ye beti apse. Thoda sa sabr kijiye. Khana khane
ke baad khel suru hoga yahi se. Tab tak ke liye, apne
supare ko dhaage se bandh lijiye. Kahi apna kamras
tapak naa jaye.”
Papa bhi ab samjh chuke the ki Maa ko Pammi Didi ke
role me bharpur maza aa raha hai. Aur, aise mauka ko
wo hath se gawana nahi chahte the. Papa ke sahyog ne
iss chudai ke khel ko aur bhi romanchak bana diya.
Papa –“Beti, itni asani se mera kamras nahi chhalakne
wala. Tumhe bahut mehnat karna padega. Meri chhodo,
aur tum apni gand ki chinta karo, tumhari 34 ki kamar
fail ki 38 ho jayegi teri, aaj raat Pammi Beta.”
Maa ne pichhe palat kar kaha –“Kya Kailash, dekho to
zara meri ye chaudi fuli fuli gand 34 ki lagti hai tumhe.
Chudwa chudwa kar 38 ki ho gayi hai. Itna gand marte
ho mera, ki jaldi hi 40 ki ho jayegi fail kar. Kitni baar
kaha hai tumse ki kabhi kabhi aage bhi daal diya karo.
Balance bana rahta hai. Lekin, aap to ji bahut gandu ho.
Bas gand hi marte ho rozana. Aaaj bhi aapka dhayan
sirf Pammi ki gand par hi hai. Kabhi meri boor ka bhi
khayal kar liya karo ji. Aur, apne vaada bhi kiya tha ki
agar main Pammi ban kar chudungi to aap meri boor bhi
chodoge. Aaaj gand marne se pahle ek baar meri boor
bhi chod dena ji.”
Papa –“Kya darling, kitna maza aa raha tha, tum to
gambhir ho gayi. Main kya karoon, Shweta. Tumhari inn
ubhari ubhari chootado ko dekhte hi main apna hosh kho
baithta hoon. Fir josh me pata nahi kiski kiski gand
maar jaata hoon. Gussa mat ho, darling. Aaj main jaroor
tumhari muniya ka khayal rakhoonga.”
Maa ne muskurate hue kaha –“Kya kiski kiski, Meri Maa
aur Meri Saas ki gand aur kiski. Ab to betichod bhi ban
chuke ho. Aap kahe to Pammi se baat karke dekhoon.”
Papa –“Pagal ho gayi ho kya, Shweta. Ye sochne me to
thik hai, lekin vastavikta aisi nahi hai. Pammi apni beti
hai. Main uske sath aisa nahi kar sakta. Chalo, ab tum
jaldi se apne kaam nipta lo. Fir, khana khakar baat
karte hai.”
Maa ki baat se Papa ka mood ukhad sa gaya. Maa ne
baat ko sambhalte hue kaha –“Kailash darling, main to
mazak kar rahi thi. Main sachmuch me Pammi se kaise
bol sakti hoon aisa. Aise, aap bhi kam nahi ho. Chhup
chhuup kar Pammi ki panty chura kar shunghte ho, aur
muth maar kar rakh dete ho( Update 18). Mujhe
sab pata hai. Tum bolo na bolo, lekin, Pammi ke samne
aate hi tumhari laar tapakne lagti hai. Hai ki nahi,
jhooth kaha kya maine.”
Papa –“Dekho Shweta, sochne aur karne me fark hai
yaar. Kitni baar bataya hai ki ye sambhav nahi hai
darling. Vayarth ki koshish karke hum dono apne hi
bachho ke nazro me gir jayenge. Bhool kar bhi aisi koi
galti karne hi mat sochna.”
Maa ne mauka dekh kar Meri baat chhed di –“Aur, agar
main Saurav ko pata kar dikha doon to.”
Papa –“Kya kah rahi ho tum. Saurav ek bahut hi achha
bachha hai, tum aisa kuch mat karna ki hame sharminda
hona pade. Abhi uski umra hi kitni hai. Its totally
ridiculous. I’m going to rest in room. Call me over table.
See u, soon darling. (Purntaya bakwaas hai ye. Main
apne kamre me ja raha hoon. Khane lagakar mujhe bula
lena, Priye. Milte hai fir.)”
Maa ne Papa ko rokte hue kaha –“Mood kharab karne ki
koi jaroorat nahi hai. Boor chodne kya bol diya, tum to
gussa hi ho gaye, janu.” (Maa ne baat ko badalte hue kaha)
Papa bhi muskura diya aur Maa ki gand par halki si
thappad lagate hue bole –“Kahe ka gussa, tum jaldi se
khana to bana lo. Bachhe bhi bhukhe honge. Fir, uske
baad to .... dhoom dhoom.”
Maa –“Ab jao, kamre me intezar karo. Aur, haan bistar
thik kar lo, achha rahega.”
Papa –“Aaj bistar par sona hai kya. Maine to socha
bistar ka kaam hi nahi hai.” Bolkar Papa hasne lage.
Maa –“Aap bhi na. Jao ab jaldi.”
Mujhe andar hi andar jalan si ho rahi thi Papa se. Meri
randi Maa ek taraf Papa ke sath khush thi, aur dusri
taraf mujhe itna uksaya ki main khud hi unpar toot
pada. Ab to Maa ki din hai holi, raat diwali.
Update 26
Papa apne kamre me chale gaye. Aur, apna laptop khol
kar kuch kaam karne me vayast ho gaye. Main Didi ke
kamre ki orr badha. Darwaja khula hi hua tha. Main
andar gaya to dekha Didi aur Priya padhai kar rahi thi.
Didi ne mujhe dekhte hi kitaab band kar di. Aur, mujhe
apni orr bulaya. Main aage badha, aur Didi ke bistar par
baith gaya.
Didi –“Kya hua? Man nahi lag raha hai kya apne kamre
me? Ya, Priya ki boor aankho ke samne nach rahi hai.”
Mera dhayan to Priya ki taraf hi tha. Lekin, Priya mujhe
dekh bhi nahi rahi thi. Wo computer me ghusi padi thi.
Maine Didi se hi baat suru ki.
Main –“Didi, mujhe ek bahut jaroori baat karni thi. Aur,
khud ko rok nahi pa raha tha. Isliye, socha ki jaldi se
aapse puchh loon.”
Didi –“Kya puchhna chah rahe ho. Jaldi se puchh lo, fir
mujhe padhai bhi karni hai.”
Main –“Didi, bas ye puchh raha tha ki Priya ki chuchiya
itni badi kaise ho rahi hai?”
Didi –“Kyu, bahut achhi lagi kya uski chuchiya tumhe.
Mere se bhi badi hai kya uski?”
Main –“Nahi to, ye baat nahi hai. Priya ki chuchiya apse
badi nahi hai Didi. Apki chuchiya to ab football ban
jayegi, agar aise hi dabwati rahi to.”
Priya ne pichhe palat-te hue kaha –“Kya hua bhaiya,
kya baat hai, kabhi humse bhi baat kar liya karo.”
Main –“Sorry Priya, Main to tum dono ko sorry kahne
aaya tha. Abhi jo bhi hua, wo nahi hona chahiye tha.”
Priya –“Isme maafi mangne ki kya baat hai. Apne bhi to
wahi kiya, jo maine kiya. Apne apna kaam kiya, aur
maine apna. Isme to maafi mangne waali koi baat hi
nahi hai. Aur, aaj to Mummy ki bhi khair nahi, main to
aaj khidki se jaroor dekhungi.”
Main Didi ke bistar se uthkar Priya ke paas jakar baith
gaya. Didi bhi mere bagal me aakar baith gayi.
Main –“Priya, dekho jo hua so hua. Lekin, tum Maa ko
kuch mat batana, nahi to fir se Maa gussa ho jayegi.”
Priya –“Main kyu bolungi. Main bolungi to main bhi khud
fasungi naa. Apne hilaya to maine bhi to ragda. Paani to
dono ne jhada hai na. Fir aapko aisa kyu lagta hai ki
main Mummy se koi shikayat karungi.”
Didi –“Jo hua so hua. Aise bhi koi baat nahi hai isme.
Tum dono ne apna apna kiya jo karna tha, ab iss baat ko
bhul jao. Aur, dubara iska zikr karne ki koi jarurat nahi hai.”
Main –“Kaise bhool jau, Didi. Priya ki boor dekh kar main
itna garm ho gaya hoon, ki ab bardast hi nahi ho raha
hai. Bar bar Priya ki chikni boor aankho ke saamne aa
rahe hai. Itni rasili boor ko bina maare kaise rahoon, Didi.”
Maine apna hath badhaya, aur Priya ke jangh par rakh
diya. Dhire dhire main Priya ki jangho ko sahla raha
tha. Didi ne mera hath pakad kar khicha, aur boli –“Abhi
maine tumhe itna samjhaya tha na. Fir bhi, tumko kuch
samjh me nahi aaya. Wahi hua jiska darr tha.”
Main –“Isme darr kis baat ki, Didi. Apko choda to, kuch
hua kya. Waise hi Priya ko bhi chodunga. Isme darne ki
kya baat hai?”
Didi –“Are buddhu, main kah rahi hoon, ki Priya tumhe
fasa rahi hai. Aur, aise to wo kamyaab hoti nazar aa
rahi hai.”
Priya –“Kya Didi, aap mujh par aise bebuniyad ilzaam
laga rahi hai. Maine to bas apne bhaiya ko apni rasili
boor ka swad chakhana chahti hoon. Aapne bhi to apna
kaumarya bhaiya se tudwaya hai. Aur to aur, apne to ek
hi din me aage-pichhe dono taraf se nigal liya. Ab
mujhe kyu rok rahi hain?”
Didi –“Dekh Priya, jo galat hain so galat hai. Jo hua so
hua, ab aur aage mat badha baat ko. Kisi tarah halaat
kaboo me aaye hai. Ab aur fasana banaogi to bhawal
hoga. Fir, mujhe mat bolna ki maine aagaah nahi kiya tha.”
Priya –“Wah didi, aap karo to rasleela, maine socha to
character dheela. Achha neeti hai ye aapka. Aapne to
choclate khayi na kal raat. Ab meri baari aayi to taal-
matol kar rahi hain. Aise dohri neeti achhi baat nahi hai
Didi. Main Papa ko sab kuch bata dungi.”
Didi –“Tujhe kya lagta hai. Papa tujhe sabasi denge.
Patak kar wahi pelenge tujhe pahle. Fir, baad to hamari
khair nahi. Lekin, tu bhi nahi bachegi.”
Priya –“Dekha jayega jo hoga. Aap bhi to Papa se
chudwane ki firaak me hain. Aapne bhaiya par pahle
hath mara, main Papa tak pahle pahuch jaungi. Hisaab
barabar ho jayega.”
Didi –“Priya, Priya!! Dekh tu abhi chhoti hai. Tu kuch
nahi samajhti abhi. Gussa mat karo, aur, gusse me koi
aisi waisi harkat mat kar jana, ki baad me afsos ho.”
Priya –“Kis baat ka afsos. Aap to andar hi andar khush
ho rahi hongi, ki ek taraf apko bhaiya ka land mil hi
gaya hai. Jab dil karega jakar le lengi bhaiya ke kamre
me. Aur to aur, Papa bhi aapke naam le lekar kal Maa ki
gand maar rahe the. Lagta hai, kuch hi dino me aap
Papa tak bhi pahuch hi jaogi. Aur, mujhe kuch bhi nahi
milega.”
Didi –“Priya, maine tujhse kaha tha na, ki sahi waqt par
main tumhari bhi dhakkan khulwa dungi. Abhi thoda
intezar nahi kar sakti tum.”
Priya –“Aapne wada to kiya tha Didi. Lekin, ab waade se
mukar rahi hain. Abhi kitna achha mauka hain. Bhaiya
bhi taiyar hai, aur kisi bhi tarah ki koi paresani nahi hai,
lekin, fir bhi aap mujhe bhaiya se chudne nahi dena
chahti. Dar-asal baat ye hain ki aapko bhaiya ka land
itna pasand aaya hain, ki aap kisi aur ke sath bhaiya ko
dekhna hi nahi chahti.”
Didi –“Aisi baat nahi hai Priya. Teri boor abhi chhoti
hain, tu abhi Saurav ka land nahi le payegi, aur, Papa se
chudne ki to sochna bhi mat.”
Priya –“Didi, lekin, kab tak mujhe aise hi jalna hoga.
Mujhse ye tadap bardast nahi hoti. Maine to dildo bhi
order karwaya hain apni saheli se, lekin wo saali to de hi
nahi rahi hain. Khud ke me hi daal kar leti rahti hai
saari raat. Ab aap hi bataiye, main kya karoon?”
Didi –“Priya, tum apne kisi dost se kyu nahi marwa leti
ho? Tumhare to itne dost hain.”
Priya –“Didi, mere dost to bahut hai, par kisi se chudwa
nahi sakti. Ek ko dungi, to dusra bhi agle din prasad
lene aa jayega. Main koi mandir ka ghanta to hoon nahi
ki jiska dil kare baja daale. Isliye, main aisi galti to
kabhi sapne me bhi nahi kar sakti.”
Didi –“Wah Priya, tum to bahut samajhdaar ho gayi ho.
Lagta hai, tumhari boor ab badi ho rahi hai. Ab to tera
bhi kuch na kuch karna ho padega. Aise mujhe koi
paresani nahi hai, agar Saurav ko koi paresani na ho to.”
Main –“Didi, mujhe koi paresani nahi hai. Main to khud
kab be Priya ki boor ki nazuk pankhudiyo se khelna
chahta hoon.”
Meri baato se Priya ka chehra surkh laal ho utha tha.
Halka-halka sa muskura rahi thi Priya apna sir jhuka
kar. Ye muskaan aane wali chudai ki khushi ke karan thi
sayad.
Didi –“Lekin, ek baat hai. Tum dono jo karna hai karo.
Lekin, mujhe jab chudwane ka man karega to main
Saurav se chudwaungi.”
Main –“Kaisi baat kar rahi hai aap Didi. Main Priya aur
apko, dono ko, mast chodunga. Zara bhi shikayat ka
mauka nahi dunga.”
Didi –“Meri chudaai to jaldbazi me kar di tumne. Lekin,
Priya ki pahli chudaai kuch khaas hogi. Tum dono ki
suhaagraat ka intezaa, karna hoga mujhe hi. Par ek
shart hai meri.”
Main –“Kya shart hai didi? Aap jaisa kahogi, waisa hi hoga.”
Didi –“Main bhi waha rahungi, aur tumhara saath dungi.”
Main –“Ye bhi koi puchhne ki baat hai didi. Aapke
upasthiti to aur bhi anand badh jayega. Utsukta se
Priya ke boor ka intezar rahega.”
Didi –“Chalo ab jaao yaha se. Jo hona hai kal hoga. Jao
apne land ko tel lagakar taiyaar karo. Kal hi main
tumhare suhagraat ka bandobast karti hoon.” Bolkar
Didi hasne lagi, aur Main aur Priya sharma se gaye.
Maine Priya ko bye bola. Aur, agle din milke ka waada
kiya, aur, apne kamre me aa gaya.
Main apne kamre me aaya, aur, Computer start karke
Shahrukh Khan ki film “Jab Tak Hai Jaan” chala kar
dekhne laga. Katrina ko dekh kar meri kaamagni aur
tezz jal uthi. Man hi man main sochne laga ki kaise Priya
ki chudaai karunga. Didi ne to waada kiya hai ki jald hi
Priya ki chudaai ka intezam karegi, lekin, Maa ke rahte
ye sambhav kaise hoga. Intezar ke lamhe katna kitna
muskil hota hai, ye to sabko pata hai.
Mera man film me lag hi nahi raha tha. Maine film band
kar di, aur, Kamre ka darwaja band karke BlueFilm
chala di. 2 din pahle hi maine kuch latest Blue films
download ki thi. Main blue film dekh kar Priya ke baare
me soch raha tha, ki itne me Maa ne mujhe awaaz lagaya.
Maa ki awaaz sunte hi maine sakpaka kar uth gaya. Jaldi
se computer band kiya, aur, apne tanke hue land ko
baithane ki koshish karne laga. Khade land ke sath to
bahar nahi jaa sakta tha kamre se. Kyuki khane ka waqt
tha, aur sabhi Dinner Table par hi honge. Aise tower
bana kar jana sahi nahi hoga. Main jaldi se bathroom ki
orr bhaga. Mutne ke baad shayad land ka tanaav kuch
kam hoga, aur, land maharaj thodi der ke liye to
baithenge.
Mutne ke baad mera land thoda dhila pada, aur, meri
jaan me jaan aayi. Fir bhi pant ke upar se land ka ubhar
dikh raha tha. Maine apni t-shirt niche karke chhupane
ki nakaam kochish ki, aur, apne kamre ka darwaja khola.
Sab khane ke table par aa chuke the. Main bhi jaakar
chupchap apni nirdharit kursi par baith gaya. Papa bich
wali kursi par baithte hai, Papa ke ek orr Maa hoti hai.
Aur, dusri taraf Pammi didi, aur Priya. Maa ke bagal
wali kursi meri hoti hai. Main kisi tarah apne land ke
ubhar ko chhupate hue apni jagah par baith gaya.
Maine chhupane ki bahut koshish ki, lekin fir bhi Maa
aur Pammi didi ne dekh hi liya. Maa ne halka sa
muskurate hue kaha –“Kitni der karte ho, sabhi intezar
kar rahe hai, aur, tum ho ki darwaja hi nahi khol rahe
the. So gaye the kya?”
Main –“Nahi Maa, wo main kitaabe thik se rakh raha tha
racks par.”
Pammi Didi –“Haan, thik kiya Saurav. Tumhara kamra
kitna bikhra rahta hai. Main bhi Priya se kah rahi thi ki,
tumhari kamre ki safai hum dono ko hi karni padegi.
Warna tum aise hi saari chizze idhar udhar fek kar
rakhoge.”
Priya –“Haan bhaiya, main aur didi kal hi apke kamre ko
thik se saaf kar denge.”
Achanak apne kamre ki safaai ka plan sun kar main bhi
hairat me pad gaya. Maine 10 din pahle hi kamra saaf
kiya tha, to kya saaf karengi ye dono. Main samajh
gaya ki ye Didi ka plan hai, Priya ko chudwane ka. Ab
aisa mauka bhala kaun jaane deta hai. Maine bhi haan
kar diya.
Maa ne sabko khana parosa. Sabhi khane me jute pade
the, aur, mera dhyan to Priya ki orr laga tha. Mere thik
samne table par Priya baithi thi. Tabhi mujhe ek
shararat sujhi. Maine apna daaya pair lambi karke
Pammi Didi ki pair par lagane ki sochi. Lekin, Didi ka
pair mil hi nahi raha tha, maine 3-4 baar koshish ki,
lekin fir bhi nakaam raha. Fir maine socha ki Didi pakka
pair mod kar baithi hogi.
Itni koshish karke bhi kuch nahi mila to main shant ho
gaya, aur, chupchap khana khane laga. Tabhi achanak
mere baaye pair par kisi ne pair rakh diya, aur, dhire
dhire sahlane lagi. Maine sakpaka kar sabki orr dekhne
laga. Main sabke chehre dekh kar ye pata karne ki
koshish kar raha tha, ki ye kiska pair hai Par kisi ke
chehre par koi bhaav nahi the. Mujhe kuch nahi soojha,
to maine bhi pair se pair ragadna suru kar diya. Ab
pata nahi main kiske sath maza kar raha tha. Maine
socha kyu na jaldi se niche jhuk kar dekh loon. Par kis
bahane se
Maine socha kyu na chammach niche gira doon. Aur,
chammach uthane ke bahane dekh loon ki kiska pair hai
jo mujhe gudguda raha hai. Lekin, agar main niche
jhuka to ho sakta hai, wo pair pichhe kar le. Fir to
mujhe pata nahi chalega to ye ishara de kaun raha hai.
Main yahi sab soch kar dhire dhire khane me vayast
tha, ki tabhi achanak mere dusre pair par kisi ka pair
mahsus hua.
Maine socha pata karne ke chakkar me maja kharab ho
sakta hai. Isliye jo ho raha hai hone do, fate me tang
karne se achha hai ki chupchap raha jaye. Tabhi mujhe
ek vichaar aaya Maine bhi dhire dhire tang par tang
chalana suru kar diya. Aur, sahlate sahlate upar ki orr
badhne laga.
Maine pahle daaye pair se dusre pair ke ghutne tak
sahlaya. Chunne se itna to pata chal gaya ki wo jo bhi
ho, usne resmi salwar pahna hai. Ab pahchan-na muskil
na tha mere liye. Maine thik waise hi baaye pair se bhi
kiya, to pata chala ki usne to jeans pahna hai. Maine
man hi man socha ki Pammi Didi aur Priya dono hi masti
kar rahe hai. Aur, dono ko ye baat pata bhi nahi hai ki
dono ek jaisa hi soch rahe hai. Maine socha kyu na kuch
ishara karne dono ki class le li jaye.
Maine Priya ki orr dekha. Aur, niche ki orr ishara kiya.
Priya jhep si gayi. Aur, apna pair pichhe khich liya.
Priya ke sharmate hi Didi samajh gayi ki table ke niche
jaroor kuch chal raha tha. Lekin, wo to Didi ke sath ho
raha tha. Isliye, Didi chaunk si gayi. Aur,
meri orr achambhit nazro se dekha. Maine haan ka
ishara kiya. Didi ne muh banate hue,
halka sa gussa jataya. Maine apni 2dono tange aage
kiya aur, ek ek pair dono ke jangho par rakh diya. Mera
pair table se bahar aa raha tha.
Didi ne chaunkte hue Priya ki jango ki orr dekha.
Aur, Priya ne Didi ki jangho ko dekha. Maine tange aur
aage karke dono ki boor ko chhuna chahta tha, par meri
tange waha tak pahuch nahi rahi thi. Agar, main aur
aage khishak kar aisa karne ki koshish karta to main
khud apne kursi se nichhe gir jaata. Isliye maine aur
aage jana thik nahi laga, aur main Pammi Didi aur Priya
ke jangho par hi pair chalane laga..
Update 27
Ye kya? Main apne pair ke talwo se Didi aur Priya
ki jangho ko sahla raha tha. Lekin, meri tange itni lambi
nahi thi ki unke boor tak pahuch sake. Main aur
aage khisak bhi nahi sakta tha, nahi to Maa ko shak ho
sakta thai. Isliye, itni hi masti se mujhe santosh karna pada.
Maine to apne man ko masosh kar samjha liya, lekin Didi
ka man nahi man raha tha. Pammi Didi thoda aage
khisak kar baith gayi, jisse ab mera pair Didi ki boor
tak pahuch gaya. Mere daaya pair Didi ke jangho ke
bich me fase hue the. Main pair ke anguthe se dhire
dhire Didi ki boor ko sahla raha tha. Priya ki boor tak to
main ab bhi nahi pahuch raha tha.
Boor par mere pair ka sparsh pakaar Didi ki boor garam
hone lagi. Aisa lag raha tha jaise garm bhatti par maine
pair rakh diya ho. Didi apni jangho me bhinch kar mere
pair ko jakad leti thi. Main bhi anguthe se Didi ki boor
ko kured raha tha. Priya ne niche dekha to chaunk uthi.
Jalan si Priya jal bhun uthi. Priya ne niche
dekhte hue apni bhauhe(eyebrows) tan-te hue
mujhe aise ghura mano, mujhe sing maar degi.
Maine Priya ko bhi aage aane ka ishara kiya.
Priya bhi dhire se khisak kar baith gayi. Ab mera pair
Priya ke boor par bhi rengne laga. Ek taraf main ek
pair ke anguthe se Pammi Didi ki boor sahla raha to,
dusri pair ke Priya ki boor ki maalis me juta tha.
Priya ki boor bhi dhadhak rahi thi.
Dono ki boor se garm garm hawa nikal rahi thi. Ab bas
bhattiyo me loha daalne ki baari thi, jo dining table
par to hone se raha. Aur, Papa bhi to waha the. Didi
aur Priya, masti me dube Boor ki maalis ka maza le
rahe the. Didi aur Priya ke khane ki raftar kaafi kam
ho gayi thi, aur, main bhi plate par pura dhyan nahi
laga pa raha tha . Itne der me Papa kha chuke the.
Papa –“Kya hua, tumlog sab itne dhire hdire kyu kaha
rahe ho. Bhukh nahi thi kya.”
Priya –“Wo Papa, sham ko nasta kiya tha na, isliye.”
Papa –“Chalo koi baat nahi! Main main kamre me jaata
hoon. Tumlog aaram se kahna khao.”
Papa ne wash-basin me hath dhoya, aur apne kamre me
chale gaye.
Humlog dhire dhire khate me maza le rahe the. Tabhi
achanak mujhe apne land par kuch mahsoos hua. Maine
chupke se nazre jhuka kar dekha tha, Maa ka baaya
hath meri land par tha. Maa ne mere land ko jor se
jakad liya. Maine Maa ki orr dekha ki ishaare se mana
kiya. Lekin, Maa kaha man-ne wali thi. Maa ne dhire
se mere pant ki zip khol di. Meri land to pahle se hi
khada tha.
Zip khulte hi uchal kar bahar aa gaya. Maa ne khich kar
mere dono aand bhi zip se bahar nikaal diye. Aur,
dhire dhire mere land par haath chalane lagi. Main
bhi masti me doob gaya. Ab aisa lag raha tha ki kisi bhi
samay mera virya gir sakta hai. Main apna
baaya hath niche kiya aur Maa ka hath apne land se
hata diya. Maa ne gusse se meri orr ankhe tareri.
Maine kuch nahi kaha. Aur, chup raha. Dhire dhire sabne
khana khtm kiya. Aur, thodi halki-fulki baate hone lagi
idhar-udhar ki.
Priya –“Bhaiya, Main kal subah hi aapka kamra thik kar
dungi.”
Didi –“Haa main bhi help kar dungi Priya ka.”
Maa –“Lekin, tum dono to kal college jane wale the naa"
Main –“Thik hai. Dekh lena aap dono. Agar waqt mile to
kar dena, warna, phir kabhi dekha jayega.”
Maa –“ Nahi, nahi. Kal tum dono college chali
jana. Kamra main thik kar dungi Saurav ka.”
Main –“Aap log rahne hi do. Main hi thik kar lunga.”
Maa –“Chalo ab. Sab utho table se. Yahi raat bhar
baithne ka iraada hai kya"
Boor ki mast maalis ka maza Didi aur Priya ko mohpaas
me bandh rakha tha. Agar unhe na bola jaye to wo to
raat bhar mere pair se boor ragadwati rahengi. Dono ki
boor se pani ris-ris kar bah raha tha. Panty to bhig hi
chuki thi, ab to gilapan main apne pair par bhi mahsoos
kar sakta tha. Maa ne sare plates samet kar kitchen ki
orr prasthan kiya.
Didi ne apna kurta niche karte hue, apne kaamras se
bhige patloon ko chhupa liya. Aur, hath dhokar apne
kamre ki orr chali gayi. Priya uth nahi rahi thi. Priya ne
mere pair ko niche kiya aur uthi. Priya ka jeans boor ke
paas bhiga hua tha. Ras tapak tapak kar panty se bahar
aa chuka tha. Saaf pata chal raha tha, ki Priya chudne
ke liye kitni utawali hai. Ab aise me aur sabr karna
mere bas se bhi bahar tha. Lekin, jab tak Didi koi yojna
nahi banati hai, tab tak to kuch bhi nahi ho sakta hai.
Priya bhi apne kamre me jaa chuki thi. Maine apna land
pant me daala. Aur, hath dhokar kitchen me gaya.
Main –“Kal to Didi aur Priya college ja rahi hai. Aap kya
karogi ”
Maa –“Main kya karungi. Jo waada kiya hai, wo
pura karungi, aur kya.”
Main –“Matlab"
Maa –“Kya matlab. Tumne hi to kaha tha ki saara din
hum tum akele honge."
Main –“Aapne to ye bhi waada kiya tha, ki aap mujhe
Pooja ki gand dilwayengi.”
Maa –“Dilaungi na. Par, pahle tu apne dost ki bahan ko
ghar to bula le. Mere samne hi le lena uski gand. Aur,
main bhi tere dost ko khush kar lungi. Dono ka kaam pura.”
Main –“Thik hai. Main kal hi dono ko bula leta hoon. Fir,
baad me mana mat karna.”
Maa –“Main kyu mana karungi. Ab tu jaa yaha se. Mujhe
kaam khtm karne de jaldi se. Tere papa halla karenge
nahi to.”
Main –“Thik hai Pammi Didi. Kal subah milte hai.”
Maa –“Pammi Didi kyu bol raha hai. Main teri maa hoon.
Pagal, pata nahi kaha khoya rahta hai.”
Main –“Mujhe pata hai ki Papa aaj aapki gand se Pammi
Didi ka maza lenge.”
Maa chaunk uthi. Maa –“Tumhe kaise pata.”
Main –“Jab aap kitchen me khel rahe the to,
maine dekha tha. Aur, suna bhi tha. Aur, aaj to aapki
boor ki bhi chudaai hogi naa."
Maa –“Ha beta, aaj mahino baad bade muskil se tera
Papa ko boor chodne ko manaya hai. Nahi to roz kisi aur
ki gand dekhkar aate hai, aur, saara josh meri gand par
nikalte hai.”
Main –“Maa, mujhe sab pata hai. Nani aur Dadi ki gand
ke badle bhi aapki gand hi chudti hai.”
Maa –“Chal badmash, bhaag yaha se. Bahut bolne laga
hai.” Maa ne sharmate hue kaha
Maine Maa ko kaha, aur apne kamre me chala gaya.
Update 39I
Main apne kamre me baitha ye soch raha tha ki, kaise
jaldi se Priya ki boor mile, aur main chat chat kar uski
boor ka ras pi jau. Main soch me duba tha ki kaise kaise
Priya ki boor ka maza lunga. Aur, ye sab sochte
sochte mere sheru ne saar uthana suru kar diya.
Ab abhi to koi roti yaa boti mere sheru ko milne waali
thi nahi. Lekin, ek baar sher ke muh khoon lagne ke baad
wo kaha ghaas khata hai.
Pooja didi ki boor, Pammi Didi ki boor aur gand, aur Maa
ki gand ka swad chakh kar mera sher ab aadamkhor
vahashi ban chuka tha. Ab mere sahlane se mere
sheru par kya asar hota : Fir bhi naa se kuch
bhala. Isliye, maine apne auzaar ko apne hatho
me thaam liya. Aur, Priya ke boor ko yaad karke
dhire dhire sahlane laga.
Ab muth marne me kya maza milta. Boor aur Gand ka
asli swad chakhne ke baad mere land ko mere hath ka
sparsh nahi bhaa raha tha. Maine bahut hilaya, par
mere land ko waisa maza nahi de paaya, jo Maa aur Didi
ki gand ne diya tha. Aakhirkaar, Didi aur Maa ki gand
ka jadoo mere land par chal hi gaya tha. :
Ab Priya ki boor ka kya asar hoga, ye pata nahi.
Par, Priya ke boor ka raspaan kab kar paunga, ye to ab
bhi sandigdh hi hai. Apne man ke aarzuo ko sanyam me
rakhte hue maine bhavisya ke liye kaam-sudha ko apne
aand-kalasho me sanchit karna uchit samjha.
Ho sakta hai kal pure din Maa ki chudai karni pade, aur,
ye bhi ho sakta hai ki Pooja Didi agar man jaye yaha
aane ko to unki gand bhi mil jaaye, aise me agar mere
land se virya ki barsaat na ho to, Maa atript rah jayegi.
Maine kal ki chudaai ka khayal karte hue apne land
ko chhod diya. Par mera land to chhote bachhe ki tarah
zidd par ada tha. Use abhi hi boor khani thi. Ab aise
vikat paristhi me main kya karta.
Tabhi mere man me ek vichaar dauda. Ye wo upay
tha, jiska upyog maine kai baar pahle bhi kiya hai. Ya
yun bole ki aksar hi karta hoon. Maine kitchen se katore
me barf ke tukde laya, aur apne aando ko barf ke
katore me rakhkar baith gaya. Barf ki thandhak se
mere aand sikud kar sankuchit ho gaye. Thand se land
ka tanaav bhi kam hone laga.
Maine ek barf ka tukda uthaya, aur land ke supade par
ragadne laga. Thanda thanda barf mere garm land par
pada. Land ki garmahat se barf pighalne lagi, aur
paani tapakne laga. Bistar kahi bhig na jaye, isliye main
bathroom me chala gaya, aur apne land ko barf ke
katore me duba diya.
Ab mera land puri tarah se sikud kar chhota ho gaya.
Aakhirkar, ek baar fir maine apne land ko daba liya.
Lekin, iska fal to kal milega. Kal pure din Maa ki
chudaai karni thi, aur yathasambhav Pooja Didi ko bhi
bulaane ka prayatn karunga. Pooja Didi ka aagmaan
Sone Pe Suhaage ka kaam karega.
Aankho ke saamne ka drishya aate hi land fir se saar
uthane laga. Isse pahle ki land fir se pura tane, maine
land ko fir se barf ke saagar me dube diya. Thand se
mera land thithur utha. Aur, sikudkar simat gaya.
Update 28
Maine apne land ko kaboo me kiya. Aur, aakar apne
bistar par let gaya. Man hi man soch raha tha ki aaj to
Papa Maa ki boor bhi chodne wale hai, kyu na fir se
dekha jaye. Maine dhire se darwaja khol kar apne kamre
se bahar aaya. Bahar Pammi didi pahle se hi maujood
thi. Shayad boor ki garmi sone nahi de rahi thi unhe bhi.
Main Didi ki orr badha. Pas aate hi maine didi ko baho
me jakad liya, aur, Didi ki chutado ko apni dono
hatheliyo me bhar kar daboch liya. Meri kathor
hatheliya Didi ki naram naram gand me dhas gayi.
Maine didi ki chutado ko jor se dabate hue apni orr
khincha. Didi ki chuchiya ubhar kar mere sine me chub
gayi thi.
Maine aur dabav badhate hue didi ko hawa me utha liya.
Pammi Didi ki ab pair ke anthuthe hi jameen par the.
Maine dhire dhire hath didi ki pith par ferna suru kiya.
Meri ungliya Didi ki makhmali badan par fisalne lage. Ek
hath jaha unki badan par fisal raha tha, wahi dusre
hath ne chutado ke bich apni jagah bana li thi. Didi ne
kamar utha kar mere ungliyo ko gand ke ched tak
pahuchne ka rasta diya. Maine gand ke ched ko ungliyo
ke kuredna suru kiya. Didi sisak uthi. Maza to didi ko bhi
bharpur aa raha tha. Bas kapdo ka bandhan tha, warna,
abhi hi wo mera land pakad kar apne gand me le leti.
Ek hath jaha gand ke pato ke bich harkate kar raha
tha, wahi dusra hath ghumte ghumte didi ki chuchiyo
tak pahuch chuka tha. Maine dhire dhire unki chuchiyo
ko sahlana suru kiya. Chuchiyo ke nichle golai ko hatho
se dhire dhire sahla raha tha main. Bich bich me main
chuchi ke unche unche ubhre hue kismiss ke dane ko bhi
masal deta tha.
Jaise hi mere ungliyaa unke urojo par padte, wo
kasamasa kar sisak uthti thi. Didi ne sar ko uthate hue
apne hoth khol diye. Maine bhi unke aamantran ko
swikaaar kiya. Aur, apne hoth didi ke surkh adharo par
rakh diye. Ab maine unke surkh lal hotho ka ras pi raha
tha. Madham madham si lalima liye didi ke hoth aise
mithas se bhare the mano unke hotho par shahad ka lep
laga ho. Aise mithas se anand-bibhor ho mera land
tantana gaya...
Main ek hath se Pammi didi ke gand ko bhich raha tha.
Aur, dusre hatheli se chuchiyo ko masal raha tha. Aur,
dono ke hoth bhi ek dusre se guthe hue the. Didi bhi
hoth khol kar mere jibh ka swagat kar rahi thi. Meri jibh
didi ke muh me thi. Aur, Didi bhi pure josh ke sath meri
jibh ko pakadne ki koshish kar rahi thi. Main didi ki jibh
chusna chahta tha, aur Didi bhi wahi karne ki koshish
me thi. Naa main haar man-ne wala tha, naa Didi pichhe
hatna chahti thi. Aakhirkar kai koshisho ke baad Didi ki
jibh mere hotho ke bich pakad me aayi.
Maine didi ke jibh ko hotho ke bich rakh kar chusna suru
kiya. Aisi anand ki anubhuti didi ko ab tak nahi hui thi.
Bhale hi Didi aage pichhe dono taraf se mujhse chudwa
chuki thi, lekin aise chumban ki aasha na didi ko thi, na
maine aisa socha tha. Dono iss awsar ko khona nahi
chahte the. Yaa yun kahe ki ab hum dono ke bich koi
bandhan nahi rah gaya tha. Dono apne man ke zazbato
ko khul kar ek dusre par rakh sakte the. Ratti bhar bhi
sharm ki ab koi jagah nahi thi hamare bich. Khul kar
dono ek dusre me sama jaana chahte the. Jism ki jo aag
mere andar sulag rahi thi, thik wahi jwala didi ke boor
me bhi dadhak rahi thi. Aise garam tandoor me land ka
seek-kabab kaun bewakoof naa banaye :?
Didi bhi mere niche letne ko machal rahi thi. Main ab
jaldi se Didi ko patak kar chad jana chahta tha. Khada
rahna ab unke liye bhi muskil ho raha tha. Jab aag dono
taraf barabar lagi ho to kyu waqt barbaad kiya jaye.
Maine socha thik kal raat ke jaise hi Didi ko Maa-Papa
ke kamre ke bahar chodunga. Maine ye baat Didi ko batayi.
Main – “Didi, kyu naa Maa ke kamre ke bahar chala
jaye. Thik kal raat ke jaise hi chudaai karunga aapki?”
Didi – “Nahi, kal ki baat kuch aur thi. Maa ko kuch pata
nahi tha. Lekin, ab to Maa ko bhi tumne saari baatein
bata di hai. Aaj aisa sambhav hi nahi hai.”
Main – “Kyu sambhav nahi hai. Pata to sirf Maa ko hain
na, Papa ko to kuch pata nahi hain naa. Jaise kal raat
Papa ko kuch pata nahi chala tha, waise hi aaj bhi kuch
pata nahi chalega.”
Didi – “Nahi, waha kamre ke bahar bas naam ki chudai
hoti hai. Aaj tumhare kamre me chalte hai. Saari raat
damdaar chodam-chudaai khelenge”
Didi ke muh se aise sabdo ka uccharan mere kaamagni
ko aur prajwalit kar raha tha. Ab chahe kamre ke bahar
chudaai ho, ya kamre ke andar. Bas, mujhe to apne
kaam ke jwalamukhi ke dahakte angaro ko prasfutit
karna tha. Mere badan ki aag itni tivr ho uthi thi, ki
aankho se tapakte angaare saaf dikh rahe the..
Maine Pammi didi ko apne god me uthaya, aur, kamre ki
or chal pada. Priya apne kamre me thi, sayad so chuki
thi. Maa Papa to chudai manthan me vayast the. Main
aur Pammi didi dono tap rahe the ki jaldi se jaldi kaise
apna garam pani nikala jaye.
Main didi lo lekar apne kamre me gaya, aur Pammi didi
ko bister par lita diya. Samay na gavate hue jaldi se
maine khidki aur darwaja band kar diya. Pammi didi
bistar par baithi thi. Main unke paas jakar unke bagal
me baith gaya. Maine didi ki jangho par hath ferna suru
kiya. Didi bhi puri tarah se garam ho chuki thi.
Didi bhi jaldi se land boor me lene ke liye mare ja rahi
thi. Mera gala sukh raha tha. Maine didi ke gardan me
hath daala, aur, didi ko tirche jhukate hue hotho se
hotho ko sata diya. Dhire dhire chumban ki gati tezz
hone lagi. Didi bhi apne hoth kholkar mere hotho ko
chatne lagi. Didi ki garam garm saaso me meri garm
saanso ki gati ko aur badha diya.
Maine ek hath ko didi ki jangho ko sahlate hue dhire
dhire didi ki boor par ragadna suru kar diya. Aur, dusre
hath se didi ki ek chuchi ko dabane laga. Main bich bich
me chuchi ke ghundi ko ungliyo ke bich pakad kar masal
deta tha. Didi anand se sihar uthati thi.
Main aur Pammi didi ek dusre ko chumne chatne me
vayst the, ki achanak darwaja khulne ki awaaz aayi. Koi
mere kamre me achanak se ghus aaya. Maine hadbada
kar didi ko khud se alag kiya. Pammi didi ne apna skirt
niche kiya. Didi ka skirt mere hath dalne se upar uth
gaya tha.
Didi aur Main dono dar se sikud gaye the, ki kahi Maa ki
chudai ke baad thak kar Papa to idhar nahi chale aaye.
Achanak kisi ke aise pravesh se dil jor ka dhadak utha.
Aur, dar se land sikud kar chhota ho gaya. Maine pichhe
palat kar dekha ki kaun mere kamre me aise ghusa?
Pichhe palat te hi jo dekha, usse mera kaleja muh me
aa gaya ..
Update 29
Jaldi jaldi me sayad main darwaja thik se band nahi kar
paya tha. Achanak kisi ke aise kamre me ghusne se
main chaunk gaya. Maine apne kapde nahi utare the,
aur na hi Pammi didi ne koi kapda khola tha. Hum bas
chumma chaati hi kar rahe the, ki achanak kamre me
koi ghus aaya tha. Maine jaise hi pichhe palat kar
dekha, to Priya darwaje ke paas khadi thi.
Priya sar se paav tak puri nangi thi. Apni choti bahan
ko aise langte dekh kar mera land sansana utha. Abhi
maine Pammi Didi ki chudai suru bhi nahi ki thi, ki ek
aur maal chudne ke liye khud langte hokar mere kamre
me pahuch gayi thi. Priya ko dekhkar saans me saans aayi.
Priya jo aise langti hokar mere kamre me aayi thi, ek
baat to saaf thi ki, aaj Priya chudne ke mood me aayi
thi. Priya ne Maa Papa ki chudai to dekhi thi, aur Pammi
Didi ki gand chudai bhi prataksh dekha tha. Priya ki
kaam-jwala dhadhak uthi thi. Pahle do baar Priya ko
langte dekh chuka hoon main.
Pratham baar jab main Pammi Didi ki gand chod raha
tha, tab Priya apne kamre ke khidki par nangi khadi
hokar apna chut mardan kar rahi thi. Aur, dusri baar
jab main hall me Maa Papa ki chedkhani kitchen me
dekhkar muth maar raha tha, tab Priya mere samne
nange ungli se apni boor chod rahi thi. Ek baar to skirt
uthakar Priya ne apne gol matol rasdaar laziz gand ke
darshan bhi karwaye the mujhe. Ishara to kafi diya tha
Priya ne, lekin main Maa aur Pammi Didi ki gand chudai
me itna vayast tha ki Priya ki taraf badh hi nahi paya.
Gaur se Priya ko dekhne me kuch seconds to lage, lekin,
jab dekha to dekhta hi rah gaya.
Priya ne high heels pahan rakhe the. Patli patli hirni si
tange, tango ke upar gori gori janghe. Bala ki
khoobsurat lag rahi thi Priya. Patli surahidaar kamar, ek
pair samne ki taraf rakh kar jangho ke bich ka tikona
pradesh to chuppa sa tha. Lekin, bhoore bhoore
ghungrale jhante gore gore badan par aise pratit ho
rahe the, jaise badri me chand. Priya ki patli kamar ke
upar meri nazre nabhi par tik si gayi. Dil kar raha tha
ki abhi ke abhi Priya ko pakad kar uske nabhi me muh
daal doon. Maine thoda sa nazar uthaya to meri nazre
Priya ki choochiyo par gadi ki gadi rah rahi.
Priya ki choochiyaan jyada bade nahi the, lekin sudol
the. Chooch ki ghudiya effiel tower ke jaise aasmaan ki
taraf ishara kar rahe the. Aise kadak amrood ke jaise
kathor chuchiyon ko dekhte hi masalne ki lalsa dil me
jaag uthi. Choochiyon ke upar patli gardan, komal gulabi
gulab ki pankhudiyon si honth, lal lal tamatar si gaal,
aur, tirchhe tirchhe nain. Aankhon ke upar patli dhanush
si eyebrows. Priya ek eyebrow tirchhe khichte hue naino
se aise baan chala rahi thi ki koi bhi ghayal hue bina
nahi rah sakta tha.
Main bhi Priya ki jheel si aankho me kho gaya. Priya ki
aankhon me dubte hue main ye bhi bhool gaya ki, Pammi
Didi mere bagal main baithi hai. Meri nazre Priya ki
nagn jawani ko bhool kar main aankho hi aankho me
Priya se baate karne me kho gaya. Priya ki nazre aise
bol rahe the, mano mujhse sikwa ka rahe ho ki maine ab
tak use kyu nahi choda?
Main Priya ki orr khicha ja raha tha. Main apne bistar
se utha aur Priya ki orr chal pada. Itne me Pammi didi
ne pichhe se mera hath pakda, aur, khich kar mujhe
wapas bistar par bitha diya. Maine palat kar Pammi didi
ki orr dekha. Didi ke chehre ke bhavo ko main padh nahi
pa raha tha. Kya chahti thi didi, mere samjh me kuch
nahi aa raha tha. Main ek bar Priya ki orr dekhta tha,
fir Pammi didi ki orr.
Mere samajh me ye nahi aa raha tha ki, Pammi didi aur
Priya se kya kahu? Pammi didi agar Priya ko mujhse
chudne naa de to main kiska sath dunga?
मममम समझममम मम मममम आममम मम मम ममम तरह ममम मममम
मम मममम । ममममम मममम मम ममम ममम मममम ममम मम|
मममममम मममम मममम मम तरह मममम ममममममममम
कमर मम ममममम मममम ममम मम, और मममममम मम ममममम
ममममम मममम मम ममममममम कर ममम मम मम मममममम मममम
मममम मममम मममम मम ममममम मम !
मम मममममम ममम ममममम मम मममममम ममम मम मम ममम |
ममम मममममम ममम ममम मममम मम मममम ममममम मममममम
मममम ममम | ममममम मम ममम मममममम मममममम और ममममम
मममम मम तरफ मममम मममम मम ममममम ममम । मममममम
मम मममम मममम मम ममममम मममम मम एकटक ममममम मम ममम मम ।
ममम मम दस मममम मममम गए , ममममम ममम मम ममममम
मममम मम ममममम पर मममममम मममम मम । अब मम मममम-
मममम मममम ममम मम मममम मम ममम मम, मम ममम ममममम
मममम मम ममममम मम मममममम मममम ममम मम मममम मम मममम ।
मममम मममममम मम ममम ममममम और मममम ममममम मम
मममममम मममम मम ।
मन मम मन ममम मममममम मम ममम ममम मम मम अगर
मममममम मममम और मममम मममम मम, मम मममम मम मम
मममम ममममम मममम मम ममममममम मम ममममम मममम मममम ।
पर मममममम मम ममममम ममममम और ममममम
ममममममममम मम ममम कदम ममम मममम मम मम मममम
ममममम मममम मम ममममम मम ममममम मममम मम ममम मम मम
मममम मममम मम । और ममममम मममम ममममम ममम
ममममम मम ममममम ममममम ममम ममम मम, और, हर पल
ममममम मममम मम मममम मम ममममम मम ममममम कर ममम
मम । मममममम मम अडयल मममम मम तरह ममम मम मम
आजमममम मममम मम मममम मममम ममम । ममममम मम अब मममम
मममम मम मममम ममम ममम मममम मम, हर पल मम ममम हम
ममम मम ममम मम धड़कन मममम मम ममम मम, ममममम मम
ममममममम ममममम मममम ममम ममममम मम ममम मम मममम
मम ममम मम । मममम मममम ममम मममम मममम ममम मम मन मम
कर मम । अगर मममम मममम ममममम मममम ममममम मममम
बहन मममममम मम ममममम ममममम मममम मम मम मम ममममम
मममम मम ममम कर मम मममम मममम ममममम । ममममम
ममममम मममम मम मममममम मम ममममम मममम मम ममममम ममम
मममम ममम कर मममम ममम । मन मम कर ममम मम मम
ममममम मममम मम पटक कर मममम मममम पर मम ममममम
ममममम, और ममम मम ममम मम ममममममम ममम मममममम मम
मम ममममम मम ममम ममम मममम कर ममममम ।..
Main Pammi Didi aur Priya ke taraf bari bari dekhta
raha, lekin dono naa kuch bol rahi thi, naa hi hil rahi thi.
Jaise jaise samay beet raha tha, meri nirasha badhti
jaa rahi thi. Maan mein kuch aisa chal raha tha, ki jo bhi
ho jaldi ho jaye. Agar Pammi didi mujhse Priya ko
chudne nahi bhi deti hai to kam se kam Pammi didi ki
chudai se to main tript ho hi jaunga. Fir kabhi mauka
dekh kar akele main Priya ki jawani chus hi lunga.
Lekin, mere land ke dawedaari me kahi dono hi aapas
me lad naa baithe. Aur, main khade land ko hath me
thame hilata rah jau. Ajib si halchal mach rahi thi maan
me, kahi 'Duvidha me dono gaye, Maya milyo naa Ram'
wali kahani sach naa ho jaye mere sath.
Mere sabr ka bandh ab tutne hi wala tha ki, achanak
Pammi Didi bistar se uth khadi hui. Pammi Didi tezz
kadmo se Priya ki orr badhi. Main saham sa gaya. Lekin
Priya apne jagah se tas se mas nahi hui. Pammi didi
Priya ke pass pahuchi, aur, Priya ka hath pakad kar use
khichte hue bistar par lakar baitha diya. Abhi bhi Pammi
didi ke chehre se yeh lag nahi raha tha ki wo Priya aur
Meri chudai ke liye raazi hai. Ab tak meri hawaiyaan udi
hui thi. Tabhi achanak Priya aur Pammi didi dono
khilkhilakar has pade. Dono ko hanste dekh main
bhauchakka rah gaya ki, baat kya hai?? Aur dono
achanak aise hans kyu rahe hai.
Main achambhit dono ko dekh raha tha. Ki tabhi Priya
boli - "Kyu bhaiya? Kaise lagi hamara abhinay aapko.
Hosh ud gaye naa aapke?"
Ab mujhe samajh me aaya ki yeh yogna Pammi Didi aur
Priya ne milkar banaya hai. Main Pammi didi ke taraf
gusse se dekha.
Sourav(Main) - "To ye aap dono ki mili bhagat thi. Agar
aisa hi tha to mujhe pahle kyu nahi bataya? Main kaun
sa pichhe hatne wala tha. Main bhi to kabse Priya ko
chodna chahta tha? Aap dono ne yeh thik nahi kiya.
Iska pura badla lunga main."
Pammi Didi - "Are itna kyu gussa ho rahe ho mere
madarchod bahanchod bhai. Kal jab main so rahi thi, tab
Priya ki rone ki awaaz aayi mujhe. Maine usse jab
puchha to malum hua ki wo land lene ke liye kitan jaal
rahi hai. Uski yeh haalat mujhse dekhi nahi gayi. Aur,
main yeh bhi nahi chahti thi, ki wo kahi bahar gand
marwaye. Jab ghar par aise majboot land wala baap
bhai ho, to bahar chud kar izzat uchhalna kaha se
buddimaani ki baat hui bhai."
Fir Pammi didi Priya ki unchuyi kachhi boor par hath
firte hue boli - "Aise bhi abhi Priya ek kachhi kali hai.
Papa ka musal land to le nahi payegi pahli hi baar me.
Isliye maine ise tujhse chudne ki salaah di. Tujhse
chudne ka naam sunte hi isli boor ne paani chodna suru
kar diya tha. Fir maine ragad kar ise shant kiya kal
raat. Fir yeh shaitani isi ke dimaag me sujhi thi. Priya
ne bola ki aisa aisa karke bhaiya ke maze legi. Maine
bola tha ki jab chudna hi hai to jaldi ne tang faila ke le
le land andar."
Tabhi Priya uth kar mere taraf badhi. Mere pant ke
upar se mere land par hath chalane lagi. Aur, ek tang
utha kar mere kamar par chada di. Aur, dusra hath
mere gardan ke pichhe daalte hue mere hotho chum
liya. Aur boli - "Bhaiya, itna gussa kyu ho rahe ho?
Dekho meri gulaabi chut ko. Aisi mastaani gulabi chut
ke liye itna naatak(drama) to banta hai naa. Bina kuch
khoye, aapne Maa ki gand bhi maari. Aur, bina kisi
mehnat ke Didi ne bhi apni chut aur gand dono aapko
de diya. Lekin, main aise hi apni jawani aapne naam nahi
karne waali. Iss milan ke niyam bhi mere honge, aur,
kanoon bhi. Main jaisa chahungi, waise hi karungi. Chut
meri to hukum bhi mera hi chalega naa aap par."
Aur, fir Priya ne upar aate hue mere nichle hoth ko
danto se dabate hue chus liya. Priya ki aise bebaki dekh
kar main khada ka khada rah gaya. Main Priya ko
dekhta hi rah gaya, ki, meri chulbuli natkhat bahan ne
mujhe apna gulaam banane ki puri taiyari kar rakhi hai.
Maine Priya ki kamar me hath daalte hue bola - "Priya,
Priya, O meri pyari chhoti bahan Priya, Itni mehnat
karne ki jaroorat hi kya thi? Tumhari boor aur gol
matol gand ko dekh kar to 70 saal ke budhe ka land bhi
salaami de uthe. Bas, ek baar bol deti to raat bhar
chudaai karta tumhari. Aise bhi 2 dino se tumhari
jawaani ko bhodne ke liye jala ja raha hoon main."
Main bistar par baithte hue Priya ko apne daahine
jaangh par bithaya. Aur, Pammi Didi ko hath pakad
khicha aur apna baaye jaangh par bitha liya. Fir, maine
apne dono bahno ke kamar me hath daalte hue bola -
"Tum dono kitni achhi ho. Mera kitna khayal rakhti hai
aap dono."
Priya - "Are bhaiya, maine ko abhi bas aapko apne husn
ka didaar karaya hai. Jannat ke jalwe to saari raat
aapki sawaari karke dikhaunga. Aur aur, main aapka itna
khayal rakhaungi naa bhaiya, ki aapko mujhe chode
bagair nind hi nahi aayegi." Aur fir se Priya hans padi.
Pammi Didi - "Wah ji wah, mujh par do koi dhayan hi
nahi de raha hai. Sourav ki to pancho ungliyaan ghee
me dubti nazar aa rahi hai. Ab aise me mujhe to bhool
hi gaya ye."
Maine Pammi ki kamar se lekar gand tak hath ferte hue
bola - "Are Didi, kaise baate karti hai aap. Main aapko
undekha kaise kar sakta hoon. Aap hi to hai jisne sabse
pahle mujhe mere land ki ahmiyat ka ahsaas dilaya hai.
Warna mujhe kabhi pata hi nahi chalta ki mere land me
Maa ko kaboo karne ki bhi himmat hai. Aur, rahi baat
Priya ki, to use to aapne hi mere baaho me bharne ka
hukum diya hai."
Fir maine Pammi didi ke pant ke andar hath ghusa ko
unke gand ko sahlaane laga. Aur dusre taraf mera
daahina hath Priya ke gand ke daraar me halchal macha
raha tha.
Mere ek hath me meri badi didi thi jinhone mujhe
kaamsutra ka pahla adhyay padhaya tha, wahi, dusri
hath me meri choti bahan Priya thi jo mere andar uth
rahe kaamjwala ka nayi karan thi. Aaj raat mere dono
hatho me laddu hai. Bas ab kis laddu ko pahle khau,
yahi soch raha hoon...
Update 30
Mummy Papa apne kamre me chodam chudai khel rahe
the. Aur, idhar main apni dono bahno ke sath kaamkrida
suru karne wala tha. Pammi didi bistar se uthi, aur,
dhire dhire apne kapde utarne suru kiye. Dekhte hi
dekhte didi sar se paav tak nangi ho gayi. Ab Pammi
didi aur Priya dono puri tarah nangi thi. Aur, ek main hi
bacha tha jisne kapde pahan rakhe the.
Priya - "Kya bhaiya? Aapki dono bahne nangi hokar
aapke saamne chudne ko aayi hai, aur, aapne abhi tak
kapde pahan rakhe hai. Jaldi se aap bhi langte ho jao,
aur, jaldi se meri aag bujha daloo."
Main - "Are meri pyari bahan, chudne ki itni bhi kya
jaldi hai. Abhi to saari raat padi hai. Dhire dhire suroor
chadega, aur, har thukaai par teri boor ka guroor tutega."
Priya - "Bhaiya, Aaj raat main pahli baar chudne wali
hoon. Thoda dhire dhire thokna. Warna kahi mere chut
ke tanke naa khul jaye. Aaram se chodna bhaiya, warna
fir dubara nahi dungi tumhe kabhi apni chut ke maze."
Maine Priya ki ek narangi ko hath me lekar masalte hue
bola - "Meri pyari bahan ko itna sochne ki koi jarurat
nahi hai. Bas tu tange khol kar let jaa, baki boor, gand,
muh jaha daalna hai, jaise daalna hai main daal lunga."
Priya - "Na na bhaiya, main Pammi Didi ke tarah jaise-
taise nahi chudne waali. Aur, naa hi didi ke jaise sukhi
gand marwani hai. Main to aaram se chiknaai lagwa kar
chudungi bhaiya. Aur agar sukhi gand hi chudwani hoti,
to belan na daal leti, fir aapke land ki jaroorat hi kya thi?"
Priya ke muh se gand chudaai ki baat sunte hi mera
nazre Priya ke sudol gol matol nitambho par tik gayi.
Mujhe meri choti bahan ki chikni gori rasdaar gand ki
chudaai karne ka mauka milega, yeh soch kar hi land se
do boond pani tapak gaya. Bilkul safed makkan ki jaisi
chikni gand thi Priya ki. Ek baar pahle bhi Priya ki gand
nangi dekhi thi, par aaj samne se dekh kar land sansana utha.
Aur, jab aisi gand mujhse chudne ke kagaar par khadi
thi, to ab pratiksha ka har pal sadiyon si lambi lagne
lagi thi. Aisi gaddedaar gand ko hath lagaye bina main
rah na saka, aur, dusra hath badha kar maine Priya ki
gaddedaar gand ko bhich liya. Aur, jor jor se masalne
laga. Main Priya ki ek chuchi aur gand ke ek paavroti ko
masalne me vayast tha. Priya ki chudaai ki suruat ho
chuki thi. Lekin, Pammi didi ko abhi tak hath bhi nahi
lagaya tha maine.
Pammi Didi - "Sourav, main bhi hu line me. Meri bhi
chuchiya masal, mere bahanchod bhai. Jaise hi kori maal
mili, apni didi ko to bhool hi gaya tu."
Maine Pammi didi ko apni orr khicha, aur, Priya ki chuchi
chhod kar Didi ki chuchi pakadte hue bola - "Didi main
aapko kaise bhool sakta hoon. Bhale hi mujhe 1000 chut
aur gand mil jaye, par mera land sabse pahle aapki chut
aur gand ghusa hai, yeh sacchai nahi badal sakti."
Mera hath Didi ki chuchi par padte hi didi sisiya uthi.
Aur, apne boor par apni ek hatheli rakh kar ragadna
suru kar di. Didi ki boor buri tarah paani chhod rahi thi.
Didi ki chut ko ab land chahiye tha, aur, Priya ki komal
kacchi boor bhi land lene ke ahsaas se pulkit ho uthi thi.
Ab aise me kiski kaun se ched me pahle land daalu, ye
nahi samajh paa raha tha.
Priya - "Bhaiya, ab aur mat tadpao. Jaldi se land do na
meri chut me. Aur kitna tadpaoge apni choti bahan ko.
Kai dino se jaal rahi hoon aapka land lene ke liye. Ab to
langti hokar khud chudne ko aa gayi, fir bhi aap itna
der kar rahe hai."
Main - "Priya, tum to baad me aayi ho. Main to Pammi
didi ko pahle se sahla sahla kar chodne ke liye taiyar
kar raha tha. Aise me tumhare aane se Didi ki chudaai
ahuri rah gayi. Lekin ab jab hum teeno aapas me itna
khul gaye to tum dono hi nirnay karo ku pahle kiski
chudaai honi chahiye."
Priya - "Aaj meri pahli chudaai hai, aur, isse pahle
maine bad Maa-Papa aur aapki didi ke sath chudaai
dekhi hai. Mera koi tazoorba nahi hai chudne kaa. Aur,
naa hi maine aaj tak koi nangi-pungi film dekhi hai ki
khud se main sab kar pau. Aap dono ko hi mujhe sikhana
hoga sab kuch."
Main - "Kitni bholi hai meri pyari choti bahna. Hum
dono tumhe sab kuch sikha denge, bas, tum boor aur
gand khol kar sikhte jao. Aise chudaai karunga aaj
tumhari ki tum roj meri kamre me hi padhai karne aaya
karogi."
Pammi Didi - "Aur Priya, yeh zyan hai hi aisa, ki kitna
bhi bator lo, pura nahi hota. Roz ek naya adyay khulta
jata hai. Har roz kuch na kuch naya sikhoge tum Sourav
se. Aur, main to hoon hi, tumhe ek ek karke saare gun
sikhungi ek randi ke. Dekhte hi dekhte tum ek randi ki
bhanti chudti firogi."
Priya - "Didi, mujhe kahi bahar chudna hi hota, to main
bhaiya se chudne ka plan hi kyu banati? Aise bhi mere
kitne dost hai, jo roz mere naam ki muth mara karte
hai. Yaha tak ki meri kai aisi saheliyo bhi hai, jinko unke
boyfriends mere naam se chodte hai. Kai saheliya to
mujhse isliye baat karna bhi chhod di hai. Aur, kuch
randi saheiya bhi hai, jo mujhse apne boyfriend ki dosti
karwana chahti hai. Lekin, main to yahi sochti hoon ki
jab itne achhe Didi aur Bhaiya hai mere, to main kyun
kisi anjaan dost par bharosa karoon."
Main - "Baat to teri bilkul sahi hai Priya. Ghar ki baat
ghar tak hi rahe to achha hota hai."
Maine itna bola hi tha ki Pammi Didi bich me bol padi -
"Haan haan! Ghar ki baat? Aur tum jo Maa ki gand
apne dost se marwane ki soch rahe ho, uska kya?"
Priya - "Bhaiya! Tum aisa kyu karna chahte ho? Maa ko
kisi aur se kyu chudwana chahte ho? Maa to tumse chud
hi chuki hai. Aur, Maa ke bartaav se aisa bhi nahi lagta
ki, woh tumse kuch khafa hai. Bhaiya agar tum achhe se
ghar me raho, to bich bich me khud Maa tumhe apne
gand ka swaad chakhati rahegi. Fir aise me tum Maa ko
kisi aur ki rakhail banane ki kyu soch rahe ho?"
Pammi Didi - "Priya, tumhe kuch bhi nahi pata. Hamara
bhai jitna bhola dikhta tha, utna tha nahi. Ek taraf yeh
mujhe chod raha hai, aur, dusri taraf apne dost ke
bahan ki chut bhi chod chuka hai. Lekin, uski bahan gand
nahi marwana chahti, isliye Maa ki gand uske bhai se
chudwa kar uski gand paana chahta hai yeh."
Priya - "Bhaiya! Aap aisa mat karo. Yeh sahi nahi hai.
Hum dono bahne apne pyari pyari gand ko tumhare land
se fadwane ke liye taiyar hai. Fir aapko apne dost ke
bahan ki gand kyu chahiye. Jo hua so hua, ab biti
baatein bhul kar apni galti sudharne ki socho. Maa ko
agar apne ek dost se chudwaoge, to kisi na kisi tarah se
baki dosto ko bhi pata chal hi jayega, fir hamari Maa ko
pata nahi tumhare kitne dosto ke sath sona padega.
Bhaiya, aapki iss galti ke karan Maa randi ban kar rah jayegi."
Main - "Yeh sab tab ki baate hai, jab aise kuch bhi nahi
tha hamare bich. Vasna me bah gaya tha main, jo chut
mili uss waqt, usi ko maar liya. Mujhe kabhi yeh ahsaas
hi nahi tha, ki meri apni bahne mujhse chudne ko itne
vyakul hai. Warna, main kabhi bahar aisi galti karta hi nahi."
Pammi Didi - "Achha achha, thik hai. Ab jo hua use
bhool jao. Tum apne dost ko yeh bol do ki yeh namumkin
hai. Aur, fir sab thik ho jayega. Agar, uski bahan chudne
ko fir bulaye, to fir wo tum par nirbhar karta hai ki
tumhe jana hai ya nahi, wo tumhari marji hogi. Lekin, in
sab baato ke bich Maa nahi aani chahiye, aur, naa hum
dono bahne. Main aisa nahi kah rahi hoon, ki bahar agar
koi ladki mile chodne ko, to mat chodna. Tumhe agar
achhi lage, to tumhari marji. Lekin, ghar ki aurato ka
sauda mat karna kisi ke sath. Bhai kya tumhe tumhari
Maa Bahne itni bikaau lagti hai."
Priya - "Bhaiya, mujhe inn sab baato ka kuch pata nahi
tha. Warna main tumse kabhi nahi chudne aati. Main to
yeh soch rahi thi, ki mere bhaiya ka land chut ke liye
waise hi tarasti hogi, jaise meri chut land ke liye tarasti
hai. Isliye, maine socha tha ki apne bhai ko apni chut ki
ras pila kar dono ki kaamagni ko bujha dungi. Mujhe
pura pata hai, Pammi Didi ne bhi aisa hi socha hoga."
Pammi Didi - "haan Sourav! Jab maine tumhe dusro ki
chudaai ka plan banate hue pakda, to mujhe yeh daar
tha ki kahi tum koi galti naa kar baitho. Isliye, maine
socha ki, tumhe apne boor aur gand dekar tumhari sarir
ki bhookh mita doon. Lekin, bhai tumhari jismaani bhookh
itni jyada hai ki kya batau? Ab to Priya ka mood bhi
off ho gaya. Tum hi bolo kyu karna hai?"
Main - "Didi, maine bola naa, wo pahle ki baat thi. Ab
aisa koi galti nahi karunga main bahar. Yeh jo pyar hai
hamare bich, wo hamesa hamare bich hi rahega. Kisi ko
iski zara bhi khabar nahi hogi. Chao ab tum dono apna
mood thik karo, aur, tange failao. Dekho mera land
kaise sansana raha hai tum dono ki chut aur gand ka
swad chakne ke liye."
Sahsha man me ye vichar hilor marne laga ki - Apni
dono bahno ke prajwalit kaamagni ko thanda karna
ekmatra yathochit karm hai mera. Aur, apni bahno ko
kaam lalsa ki tripti pradan karne ki liye main saharsha
unmukh ho utha.
Maine Pammi Didi ko baaho me bhar liya. Aur, niche
jhukate hue unke muh me apna land ghused diya. Didi
ne turant muh khol kar mera land chusna suru kar diya.
Main bistar par let gaya, aur, Pammi didi mere land par
muh marna suru kar di. Priya bhi jhuk kar mere land ko
chatne ki koshish karne lagi.
Pammi didi bich bich me land muh se nikal kar Priya ko
chusne deti. Bina anubhav ke Priya acche se mere land
ko chus nahi paa rahi thi. Mera mota land Priya ke muh
me sama nahi raha tha. Muskil se bas supada hi Priya ki
muh me ghus raha tha.
Priya - "Bhaiya, apka land bahut mota hai. Mere muh
me to ghus hi nahi raha hai. Aur, didi kitne aaram se
apka pura land muh me ghusa le rahi hai."
Pammi Didi - "Chal main tujhe sikhati hoon land chusna."
Aur, Pammi didi ne Priya ka saar pakad kar mere land
par jhuka diya. Aur, sar ke mere land par dabane lagi.
Mera land Priya ke hotho ko chirta hua uske muh me
sama gaya.
Pammi Didi - "Priya! Sharmao nahi. Pura muh khol kar
daalo land andar. Sharmaogi to nahi sikh paogi."
Priya - "Didi, koshish to kar hi rahi hoon, lekin itna
mota hai ki 4 inch se jyada andar jaa hi nahi raha hai."
Main chupchap apni dono bahno ko apna land chuste
dekh raha tha.
Pammi Didi - "Dekh main kaise chusti hoon. Tu bhi waise
hi koshish karna."
Pammi didi ne mere land ko apne hath me liya. Aur,
khapa khap chusne lagi.
Do minute tak yun hi Didi mera land chusti rahi. Fir,
Priya ko chusne ka ishara diya. Didi Priya ke saar ke
pichhe hath rakh kar dhakka laga rahi thi. Dekhte hi
dekhte mera pura land Priya ke muh me fit ho gaya.
Priya ke muh se goo goo awaz nikal rahi thi.
Maine bhi niche se kamar uthana suru kiya. Kuch hi palo
me Priya ek manjhi hui randi ki tarah mera land chusne
lagi. Kuch der tak aise hi bari bari meri dono bahne
mera land chusti rahi. Main uth kar baith gaya, aur,
apni dono bahno ke saar par hath rakh kar bari bari
apne land par dabane laga.
Meri dono bahne mera land chhin chhin kar muh me le
rahi thi. Mera land ab fatne laga tha, jaldi se jaldi apni
bahno ke boor me pelne ke liye main tadap utha.
Maine apne tantanate land ko mutthi me lete hue bola -
"Didi, aur mat chuso. Varna, mera muth nikal jayega.
Jaldi se jhuko, ab main pelne ko taiyar hoon."
Didi - "Main bhi to jali jaa rahi hoon pelwane ke liye.
Jaldi se chodna suru kar mujhe." Didi uth kar bistar ke
kinare jhuk kar khadi ho gayi.
Main chodne ke liye chatpata raha tha. Jaise hi maine
dekha, ki Pammi didi marwane ke liye jhuk kar khadi hai,
main bijli ki raftaar se didi ke pichhe jakar khada ho
gaya. Pammi Didi ne aur jhukte hue apni gand ko hawa
me uthate hue hilaya. Didi ki mansal chuttar aur jangho
ko hilte dekh mera land fanfanane laga. Mera land lohe
ke chhad ki tarah tantana gaya. Maine apne hatheli par
thuka, aur, land ko mutthi me bharte hue satasat
jordaar sadke lagaye.
Maine ek hath Pammi Didi ki kamar par rakha, aur,
dusre hath se apne land ko pakad kar pichhe se
Didimarwane ke boor me lagaya. Didi ne pichhe uchakte
hue mera land nigalne ki koshish ki. Main bhi dhakka
lagaya, aur, mera land Didi ki paniyayi boor me sarakta
hua ghus gaya. Itni der tadapne ke baad boor ki bhatti
me land gaya. Pammi Didi ke boor me land jate hi Didi
sihar uthi, aur, apni pith ko tirchhe modte hue gand ko
pichhe dhakelne lagi.
Maine bhi land ko pichhe khich khich kar dhire halke 5-6
dhakke laga diya. Didi ki boor mera land pahle bhi nigal
chuki thi. Jaan-pahchan ka land milte hi Didi ke boor ne
apne hoth faila kar mere land ko pura andar jaane ka
mauka diya, aur, mera land jad tak Pammi Didi ki boor
me ghus gaya.
Priya bistar par leti leti hamari chudaai dekh rahi thi.
Aur, apne boor ko jor jor se masal rahi thi. Priya ki boor
se tap tap pani chu raha tha. Priya ke hath uske
namkeen paani se bhig kar chamak rahe the. Priya ek
hath se apna boor masal rahi thi, aur, dusre hath se
baari baari apni chuchiya sahla rahi thi. Priya puri
tarah se chudwane ko jal rahi thi.
Fir, Priya ne ek ungli apne boor me daalne ki koshish ki.
Aaj tak Priya ne kabhi apni boor me ungli nahi daala
tha, jarurat padne par sirf masal masal kar paani nikal
deti thi. Aaj pahli baar Priya ne apni boor me ungli
ghusane ki koshish ki. Ungli thodi andar jate hi Priya
dard se uchal padi. Aur, apni ungli bahar nikal li. Priya
ne apni jangho ko sata liya, aur, sikud gayi.
Priya apni unchudi boor me khud apni ek ungli nahi daal
paa rahi thi. Masalte masalte Priya ki gulabi chut laal ho
gayi thi. Aisi kunwari ko boor ko chodne ke khayal se hi
mera josh doguna badh gaya. Aur, main Pammi Didi ki
kamar ko jor se pakad kar ghapa ghap unki boor me
land pelne laga. Priya ke boor ko chodne ke baare me
sochte sochte Pammi Didi ki boor paani kam chai ho
gayi. Aur, mera land murjha kar Pammi Didi ki boor se
fisal kar bahar aa gaya. Pammi Didi to pure josh me
gand uchka uchka kar mere land par maar rahi thi.
Lekin, mera dhyan to Priya ki boor par atka tha.
Chudaai ke bich aise achanak mere land ke murjhane se
Pammi Didi to bich majhdaar latak gayi. Aur, main Priya
ke sunahre jism me saar se land tak duba tha. Pammi
Didi vasna ke aag me jalti hui mujhse lipat rahi thi. Aur,
main sithil sa Priya ke mohpaas me bandha khada tha.
Update 31
Main Priya ki orr lalchai nazro se dekh raha tha. Pammi
Didi hath se mera land pakda kar hila rahi thi. Par,
mera land ab sirf Priya ke liye hi khada hona chahta tha.
Pammi Didi - "Sourav, tera land to chodte chodte
achanak so gaya. Aur, fir se khada bhi nahi ho raha hai.
Bina ras chhode tera land so kaise gaya? Chodte
chodte kahi tumhari tabiyat to nahi bigad gayi?"
Main - "Nahi Didi, aisi baat nahi hai. Lekin, pata nahi
kyu aisa hua."
Pammi Didi - "Tumhe nahi pata, lekin, mujhe pata hai.
Priya ki gulabi boor dekh kar tumhara maan use chodne
ka karne laga, aur, tumhe mere chudaai me ab koi maza
nahi aa raha. Tum kuch naa kaho, fir bhi tumhari
aankhen sab bata rahi hai ki tumhara land kis chiz ke
liye khada hoga. Mujhe pata tha ki Priya milte hi tum
mujhe bhool jaoge."
Main - "Didi, aisi koi baat nahi hai. 2-3 din se lagataar
chudai karte karte thak gya hoon. Shayad isliye aisa
hua hoga."
Pammi Didi ab gussane lagi thi. Khisyate hue Pammi
Didi ab galiya bhi bakne lagi.
Didi - "Tu to chup hi kar madarchod. Jaise hi nayi chut
dekhi, purani se dil bhar gaya. Benchod, suna tha ki
chut mile to mard suar ki bhi chut lene se naa chuke.
Aur, ek tu chutia hai, ki choti bahan ki chut dekhi nahi
ki badi bahan ki chut me ghusa land sikud gaya tera.
Sab iss saali randi ka dosh hai, iski to gand maar lungi
main."
Pammi Didi gusse se Priya ki orr dekh rahi thi. Priya
chup chap leti thi, ladai karke kya milne wala tha. Agar
mera land khada hua, to dono ko milega, nahi to kisi ko
nahi. Fir bhi, Pammi didi ka aisa dosh lagana Priya to
achha nahi laga.
Priya - "Kya Didi? Mujhe kyu dosh de rahi ho. Maine to
tumhe pahle chudne ka mauka diya hi hai. Aur, maine
kabhi nahi chaha hai, ki bhaiya sirf meri chudai kare.
Main to chahti hoon, ki meri har chudai se pahle bhaiya
tumhari khujli mitaye. Main bhaiya ko tumse dur nahi
karna chahti."
Pammi Didi - "Tu hi dekh na, teri boor dekh kar iska
land mujhe chodne ko taiyar hi nahi hai. Ab tu hi khada
kar isko. Warna, naa tujhe kuch milega na mujhe."
Priya - "Didi, isme mera kya dosh hai. Maine kya kiya
isme? Bhaiya ko thoda aram karne do. Shayad chodte
chodte thak gaye hai."
Didi - "Are nahi, iski nazar ab teri boor par hai. Ab teri
boor dekh kar hi iska land khada hoga."
Fir Didi ne Priya ko utha kar sahlana suru kiya. Aur,
bistar ke kinare lakar jhuka kar khada kar diya. Fir,
Didi ne Priya ki gand par halke halke thappad marne
suru kiye. Har thappad par Priya ki gand hilti. Mujhe
aise Priya ki gand pitayi bahut achhi lag rahi thi.
Aur, mera land ab thoda uthne laga. Didi khud Priya ke
bagal me jhuk kar khadi ho gayi. Aur, meri dono bahne
jhuk jhuk kar apni gand hila hila kar mera land khada
karne ki koshish karne lage.
Priya - "Bhaiya aao ab, dekho hum dono bahne tumhare
land se chudne ke liye kutiya ban kar khadi hai. Jaldi se
chodo hame."
Didi - "Sourav, jaldi se meri khujli mita de. Fir aram se
saari raat Priya ko chodte rahna."
Priya - "Haa bhaiya, pahle Didi ko chod lo. Meri baari
didi ke baad hi aayegi. Didi ko khallas karke hum dono
saari raat khelenge."
Pammi didi aur Priya dono apni gand hila rahi thi,
pichhe se meri dono bahno ke boor dekh kar mujhe
bahut achha lag raha tha.
Main - "Priya, Didi, thoda gand faila kar apne gand ka
chhed to dikhao."
Priya aur Didi ne apne dono hatho se apni apni gand ko
faila faila kar mujhe apne gand ka chhed dikhana suru
kiya. Didi ki gand to maine chod chuka tha, lekin Priya
ki unchudi gand ka chhed dekh kar mera land uthne
laga. Lekin, pahle Didi ki chudai puri karni thi. Aur, bina
didi ko chode Priya ko chodne nahi milta.
Isliye main jaldi se Didi ke pichhe jakar unki boor me
land ghusane laga. Maine jaldi se didi ki kamar pakad
kar andar ghusane ki koshish ki. Aadha tanka hua land
Didi ki boor me ghap se ghus gaya. Fati hui chut me
land ghusne me koi muskil nahi hua. Ek hi baar me pura
land ghusne se Didi sisiya uthi...
Didi masti me sisiyate hue Priya ke taraf dekhne lagi.
Priya bhi gand hawa me utha kar apni kamar upar niche
karne lagi. Chudne ko Priya bhi chatpata rahi thi. Priya
Didi ke bagal me dahine orr kutiya bankar khadi thi,
aur, apni chudai ka besabri se intezar kar rahi thi.
Jab jab Priya aur Didi kamar upar uthati, unke gand ka
chhed puri tarah khul kar mere samne aa jata. Aur,
mera man jaldi se unki gand marne ka hone lagta. Maine
didi ki kamar ko dono hatho se pakad kar danadan
chodna suru kiya. Didi bhi masti me gand utha utha ke
land lene lagi. Aankhen band karke didi chudne ka maza
le rahi thi. Priya ne apna boor masalna suru kar diya
tha. Aur, didi se sat kar ragdane lagi. Maine Priya ka
hath uski boor se hatakar apne aando ke niche laga
diya. Priya dhire dhire mere balls ko ghasne lagi. Mera
land aur tanak gaya, aur, main aur jor se didi ko pelne
laga. Lagatar damdaar dhakko ne Pammi Didi swarglog
me pahucha diya. Didi aah-aah karne lagi, aur, Priya ke
muh me muh daal kar priya ko chumne lagi.
Priya ne bhi muh me muh daal kar Didi ko chumna
chatna suru kar diya. Maine Priya ke boor me ek ungli
daalne ki koshish ki. Priya bhi pichhe ki orr gand ko
uthaya, aur, meri ungli Priya ki boor me ghus gaya.
Maine dhire dhire apni ungli Priya ke boor me andar
bahar karna suru kiya. Priya ki boor fat gayi thi, aur,
meri ungli par thoda thoda khoon laga tha. Priya ke
chehre par dard saaf dikhai de raha tha, lekin dard ke
sath sath maza bhi aa raha the use. Isliye, Priya
chupchap kutiya ban kar jhuki hui thi. Maine dusre hath
ke bich wali ungli ko Pammi Didi ke gand ke chhed par
lagaya, aur, pel diya. Didi maze se gand utha utha kar
chud rahi thi. Aise achanak gand me ungli pelne se uchal
uthi. Isse pahle ki Didi kuch samjh paati, maine fir se ek
bar jor se apni ungli Didi ki gand me dhakel diya. Meri
puri ungli didi ki gand me sama kar fas gayi.
Pammi Didi aage hokar bachne ki koshish karne lagi.
Lekin, maine jaldi jaldi 4-5 baar apni ungli andar bahar
kar di. Aur, sath hi sath main Didi ki boor me ghapa
ghap land bhi pel raha tha. Aur, dusri taraf main Priya
ki boor bhi me ungli daal kar chala raha tha. Priya ne
jhukte hue didi ko ek chuchi ko muh me le liya, aur,
chusne lagi. Pammi Didi masti se sarabor ho uthi. Josh
me didi nidhaal hone lagi.
Pammi Didi - "Aah, aah, mere bahanchod bhai Sourav,
aur jor se jaldi jaldi pel meri boor me. Faad de pura
apni pammi didi ki boor."
Main - "Haa, meri randi didi, teri boor ka sara ras nikal
dunga aaj to."
Maine jor jor se didi ko pelna suru kiya. Aur, aise hi 5
minute tak chodte raha. Fir maine didi ko sidha bed par
lita diya. Aur, didi ki dono pairo ko apne kandho par
chada liya, aur, didi ke boor par apna supada rakha, aur,
pak se pura pel diya. Didi siski, par maine ansuna karke
Didi ki dono jangho ko jor se pakad kar paka pak pelna
suru kiya. Priya bari bari didi ki dono chuchiyo ko chus
rahi thi. 2 minute tak jabardast chudaai ke baad Didi
jhad kar shant ho gayi. Maine bhi Didi ke dono tango ko
pakad kar failaya, aur, danadan shot marte hue Didi ki
boor me jhad gaya.
Thak kar main aur didi bistar par gir gaye. Lekin, Priya
ki aag bujhi nahi thi. Priya mere aur didi ke upar chad
kar baari baari hamare badan se khel rahi thi. Priya ne
mere murjhaye land ko hath me lekar dhire dhire
chusna suru kiya. Priya ki muh me jakar garmi se mera
land dhire dhire fir se uthne laga....
Update 32
प्रिया के चूसने से मेरा लंड टनक कर खड़ा हो गया। मैंने प्रिया को
बबस्तर पर पीठ के बल ललटा ददया, और, उसकी टााँगों के बीच बैठ
गया। मैंने प्रिया के बरू को हाथों में लेकर भींचना शरू
                                                   ु ककया। बरू
पर हाथ पड़ते ही प्रिया लसलसया उठी। चुदने के ललए तो वो
छटपटा ही रही थी।
प्रिया ने मेरे टनटनाये लंड को मट्
                               ु ठी में भती हुए कहा - "भैया, और
ककतना तड़पाओगे? अब जल्दी से डालो ना अंदर।"
मैंने पम्मी दीदी की बरू पर एक हाथ रखा, और, मसला। दीदी ने
मेरा हाथ झटक ददया - "मेरा हो गया आज का कोटा सौरभ।
मझ
 ु से और नहीं होगा। थक गयी हूाँ बहुत, अब मझ
                                          ु े सोना है । और चोदने
की इच्छा हैं, तो प्रिया पर ननकालो। मैं चली अपने कमरे में सोने।"
मैं - "दीदी, रुको ना। बस थोड़ी दे र की तो बात है । एक बार इसका
रस भी ननकाल दाँ ,ू कफर दोनों चले जाना सोने एक साथ।"
प्रिया भी मेरे हााँ में हााँ लमलाते हुए बोली - "हााँ दीदी, रुक
जाओ ना। मेरी पहली चद
                   ु ाई हैं, और, मझ
                                  ु े बहुत डर लग रहा है । आप
रहें गी तो मझ
            ु े हौसला लमलेगा।"
दीदी - "नहीं नहीं, मैं जा रही हूाँ। तम
                                     ु आराम से सारी रात चोदते
चुदाते रहो। मेरा हो गया, मैं कबाब में हड्डी नही बनना चाहती।
ऐसे भी मेरे आने से पहले ही दोनों ने कुछ प्लान बना ललया था। मैं
बीच में आ गयी, नहीं तो अब तक तेरी बरू का भजजया बन चूका
होता। ऐसे मैं भी क्या करती, बरू की गमी और लंड की प्यास ने
मझ
 ु े यहााँ खीच लाया। मन में एक डर ये भी था कक कही सौरभ मझ
                                                        ु े
भल
 ू ना जाये।"
मैं - "अरे दीदी, आपने कैसे सोच ललया की मैं आपको भल
                                                 ू जाऊंगा।
ऐसा कभी नहीं होगा। चाहे मझ
                         ु े सारे जहााँ के बरू लमल जाये,
लेककन मैं पहले आपकी गााँड़ ही चोदाँ ग
                                   ू ा।"
दीदी - "ओ माय स्वीट भाई, लव य।
                             ू अब तम
                                   ु लोग मस्ती करो। मैं
जाती हूाँ। गड
            ु नाईट।"
दीदी ने अपने कपड़े उठाये, और नंगे ही अपने कमरे की ओर चल दी।
जैसे ही दीदी पीछे मड़
                   ु ी, मैं दीदी की गााँड़ को दबा ददया। और,
गड
 ु नाईट बोला। मैंने दीदी को दरवाजे तक छोड़ा और दरवाजा बंद
कर ललया। दीदी अपने कमरे में जाकर सो गई। अब मेरे कमरे में प्रिया
और मैं ही थे। प्रिया बबस्तर पर नंगी पड़ी चद
                                         ु ने का इंतजार कर रही
थी। और, मैं सोच रहा था कक कैसे आज की रात को स्पेशल बनाया जाये।
दीदी के जाने के बाद प्रिया बबस्तर से उतरते हुए बोली। क्या
भैया ? आप मझ
           ु े बबल्कुल भी प्यार नही करते है , मैं कब से चद
                                                         ु ने को
बेताब हूाँ, और आप चद
                   ू ी चद
                        ु ाई दीदी के पीछे पड़े हैं।
मैं - नही प्रिया, ऐसी कोई बात नही हैं। मैं नही चाहता था कक
हमारे कारण दीदी को बरु ा लगे। कही उन्हें ऐसा ना लगने लगे कक
अब हम उनकी कफक्र नही करते। औरत को हर दस
                                      ू री औरत से यही डर
लगता हैं कक कही वो उनके दहस्से का लंड ना नछन ले।
प्रिया - नहीं भैया, मैं इतनी नछनाल नहीं हूाँ कक दोनों बहनों के
दहस्से का लंड अकेले कहा जाऊ। जैसे दीदी ने उदरता ददखाई हैं, मैं
भी दीदी से कभी ननराश नहीं करूंगी। आपको जब मन करे दीदी के
पास जा सकते हैं, में कभी नहीं रोकंू गी। लेककन अभी तो मेरी
तष्ृ णा शांत कीजजये। कब से जल रही हूाँ मैं।
प्रिया बबस्तर पर कुनतया बन गयी, और, अपने बरू में उं गली डालते
हुए बोली, दे खखये भैया कैसे पननया रही है , आपको नही लगता है
कक आप इतनी प्यारी बरू को कुछ ज्यादा ही तड़पा रहे है । जल्दी
से शरू
    ु कीजजए ना, नहीं तो मैं चली पापा के पास। मेरी ऐसी
गल
 ु ाबी कंु वारी बरू दे ख कर पापा तो दो लमनट में पाप कर बैठेंगे।
आप इतना टाइम क्यों ले रहे हैं। जल्दी से पेलना शरू
                                               ु कीजजए अपनी
प्यारीेे छोटी बहन की बरू को।
प्रिया की गल
           ु ाबी बरू से पानी टपक रहा था। मैं
प्रिया के पास गया, और, उसकी पननयाई बरू में एक
ऊाँगली घस
        ु ा कर दे खा। प्रिया की बरू का टे म्िेचर बहुत
हाई था। आग उगलती बरू से लावा प्रपघल कर टपक रहा
था। रस से लबालब भरी प्रिया की भट्टी तंदरू सकने के
ललए परू ी तरह तैयार थी।
मैंने एक की जगह दो ऊाँगली प्रिया की बरू में डाला, और,
धीरे धीरे अन्दर बाहर करना शरू
                           ु ककया। पावरोटी के जैसे
फुले हुए बरू में मेरी दो ऊाँगली धंस गयी। थोड़ा थोड़ा
अन्दर डाल रहा था मैं, जैसे ही मैंने थोड़ा और अन्दर
डालने की कोलशश की, मेरी उं गललयााँ बरू की खझल्ली
से टकराई। प्रिया लसकुड़ गयी, और, मै सोचने लगा की
ऊाँगली पड़ते ही प्रिया ऐसे लसकुड़ रही है , तो लंड डालते
ही प्रिया रोने लगेगी।
मैंने प्रिया की चुतड़ो को सहलाया, और, बरू को मट्
                                             ु टी में
भर कर दबाया। सहलाने से प्रिया सामान्य हुई। प्रिया
झुक कर लंड खाने को तैयार थी।
मैं - "प्रिया, अब मैं लंड डालने जा रहा हूाँ, थोडा ददद
होगा। बदादस्त कर लेना। कुछ भी हो, चीखना नहीं।
नहीं तो चुदाई तो आधी रह ही जाएगी, पापा हम
दोनों की गााँड़ फाड़ दें ग।
                        े "
प्रिया - "पापा जब गााँड़ फाड़ेंगे, तब दे ख लाँ ग
                                             ू ी। अभी
तो आप जल्दी से मेरी बरू फाड़ दीजजये। ककतनी दे र से
मैं चुदवाने को बेताब हूाँ, और, आप मझ
                                   ु े टाल रहे हैं।"
मैं - "नहीं प्रिया, मैं जल्दबाजी नहीं करना चाहता हूाँ।
मैं चाहता हूाँ की हम दोनों को इस चद
                                  ु ाई का भरपरू आनंद
लमले। ठीक हैं, चलो अब थोड़ा ठीक से गााँड़ उठाओ, लंड
पेलने जा रहा हूाँ। आवाज नहीं करना।"
प्रिया - "आप वो सब मत सोचो। बस एक ही बार में
परू ा पेल दो, थोड़ा थोड़ा करके २० लमनट तक ददद होने
से अच्छा है , २ सेकंड का ददद हो।"
मैं - "नहीं प्रिया, एक बार में परू ा नहीं डाल सकता।
बहुत टाइट हैं तेरी बरू अभी। पहली बार में बहुत मजु ककल से
अन्दर जाता है , कफर एक बार जब रास्ता बन जाता हैं,
तब आसानी से घस
             ु जाता हैं। दे खा ना, दीदी की बरू में
आराम से चला गया था, वो इसललए की दीदी पहले भी
मेरा लंड बरू में ले चक
                     ु ी हैं, और, दीदी के बरू का साइज
मेरी लंड के बराबर हो गया है ।"
प्रिया गााँड़ उचकाते हुए बोली - "डालो ना अब भैया।
एक ही बार में डाल दो, जजतना जाता है । आपके ललए
मैं बदादस्त कर लग
                ुं ी।"
मैं - "ठीक है जैसा तम
                    ु बोलो। बाद में ना बोलना की
भैया ने गलत ककया।"
प्रिया ने चचकनी गााँड़ को मैंने सहलाया, और, उसे और
झुकाया। बााँया पंजा प्रिया की कमर पर जमाया, और,
दायेँ हाथ से अपने लंड को एक मट्
                             ु ठ मारी, और, प्रिया
की बरू पर लभड़ा ददया। प्रिया धक्के खाने को तैयार
थी, उसने अपनी कमर पीछे को धकेला, जैसे जल्द से जल्द
लंड खाना चाहती हो। मैंने इशारा समझते हुए प्रिया
की गााँड़ को सहलाया, और, घप्प से एक जोर का धक्का
लगा ददया। मेरे लंड का सप
                       ु ाड़ा एक ही झटके में प्रिया
की बरू को चीरता हुआ अंदर घस
                          ु गया। प्रिया ददद से
नतललमला उठी। अपनी गााँड़ को आगे बढ़ाकर बचने की
कोलशश की, लेककन मैंने दोनों हाथो से उसकी कमर को
जकड़ कर एक और जोरदार धक्का ददया। मेरा आधा लंड
प्रिया की बरू में कफट हो चक
                          ू ा था। प्रिया ददद से
बबलबबला रही थी, और, अपनी कमर को दायें-बांये
दहला कर लंड ननकालने की कोलशश कर रही थी।
लेककन मैं भी अब ननपण
                   ु हो गया था इस खेल में । मैंने
हल्का सा जोर आगे की तरफ लगा रखा था, ताकक लंड
बहार ना आये। मैं प्रिया की चत
                            ू ड़, कमर, पीठ, कंधे को
धीरे धीरे सहलाने लगा, जजससे प्रिया को आराम लमले।
कुछ लमनट ऐसे ही रहने पर प्रिया सहज होने लगी। मेरा
लंड प्रिया की बरू में आधा घस
                           ु कर अड़ा हुआ था, मैंने और
धक्का लगाया सही नहीं समझा। अपनी प्यारी छोटी
बहन की नन्ही कोमल बरू को ऐसे मसलना नहीं चाहता
था मैं। बहन तो प्यार करने के ललए होती हैं। और, मैं
अपनी प्यारी छोटी बहन में प्यार से चोदना चाहता
था। ताकक उसकी बरू को भी मेरे लंड का परू ा स्वाद लमले।
मेरी प्यारी छोटी बहन कुनतया बने अपनी बरू में मेरा
लंड ललए ननढाल बरबस झक
                    ु ी थी। प्रिया ने अपनी
चचकनी कोमल बदन को भोगने का सौभाग्य सबसे पहले
अपने भाई, यानन मझ
                ु े ददया, ये मेरी ककस्मत थी। मझ
                                              ु े
मालम
   ू था, की अगर मैंने प्रिया की दमदार चुदाई की,
तो उसकी बरू का पकोड़ा बन जायेगा। और, ददद से
बेहाल कफर जल्दी मेरे ननचे आने को तैयार नहीं होगी। मैं
समझ रहा था की मेरी छोटी बहन पर क्या बीत रही है
अभी। एक तरफ हैं उसकी इच्छा अपने भाई से चुदने की,
और, दस
     ू री तरफ हैं अपने भाई के मोटे लंड से चूत मरवाने
का ददद । अपनी इच्छा परू ी करने के ललए प्रिया को मेरे
लंड को अपनी बरू में लेना ही था, और, इससे लमलने
वाली हसींन ददद को बदादस्त करना ही था।
प्रिया - "भैया, इतनी जोर से क्यों पेला। बहुत ददद हुआ।
ऐसे चोदोगे तो कोई आपसे दब
                        ु ारा नहीं चद
                                    ु ने आएगी।"
मैं - "अरे मेरी प्यारी बहना, मैंने तो कहा ही था की
धीरे धीरे प्यार से डालता हूाँ। तम
                                ु ने की कहा ना की एक
ही बार में ठोक दो लंड। कफर भी मैंने बहुत जोर नहीं
मारा धक्का, नहीं तो परू ा लंड जड़ तक पेल दे ता। कफर
तो तेरी बरू खीरे के जैसे दो फांक में बाँट जाती।"
प्रिया - "क्या? अभी भी बाकक है अन्दर जाना। मझ
                                            ु े
लगा परू ा अन्दर घस
                 ु गया हैं।"
मैं - "नहीं मेरी चचकनी बहना, अभी तो बस आधा लंड
ही अंदर गया है , बाकक आधा बाकक हैं। बोलो तो
बाकी का आधा एक और धक्के में पेल दाँ ।ू "
प्रिया - "नहीं भैया, बहुत ददद होता है , अब आराम से
डालो। पता नहीं, स्नेहा क्यों बोल रही थी की बहुत
मजा आता है , यहााँ तो आधे लंड में ही मेरी जान ननकली
जा रही हैं।"
मैं - "ठीक है , मैं अब धीरे से डालाँ ग
                                     ू ा। ये तम
                                              ु ककसकी बात
कर रही हो।"
प्रिया - "है एक मेरी सहेली, बता रही थी की चद
                                           ु वाने में
बहुत मजा आता है ।"
मैं - "कौन सहे ली? और ककससे चद
                             ु वाती है तेरी सहे ली,
जो उसे बहुत मजा आता है ।"
प्रिया - "अपने भाई से, और ककससे। रोज स्कूल में
बताती रहती हैं, की कैसे-कैसे अपने भाई को चोदती है
वो। रोज दो बार चोदती है वो अपने भाई को।"
मैं - "अरे वो अपने भाई को चोदती हैं, या, उसका भाई
उसे चोदता हैं?"
बातों-बातों में मैं धीरे धीरे अब लंड प्रिया की बरू में
आगे पीछे करने लगा। मैं थोड़ा बाहर खखंच-खखंच कर
हल्के-हल्के से धक्का लगाने लगा।
प्रिया - "भैया, स्नेहा बहुत चंट लड़की हैं। उसके भाई को
तो कुछ भी पता नहीं है , वो उसे जो बोलती है , वो
करता है । उसके भाई को तो ये भी पता नहीं है की
उसकी बहन जो उससे करवाती है उसे चुदाई कहते हैं। अपने
भाई के भोलेपन का फायदा उठा कर गल
                               ु ाम बना रखी है उसे।"
मैं - "अरे , उसे पता भी होता तो क्या उखाड़ लेता? जब
अपनी सगी बहन चद
              ु वाना चाहती हो तो कोई क्यों
ना चोदे ? ऐसे भी अगर भाई अपनी बहन को नहीं
छोड़ेगा तो बहन कही और जाकर अपनी चूत की आग
ठं डी करे गी। और भाई रह जायेगा लंड थामे हाथ में। इससे
अच्छा तो यही है की बहन की चूत छोड़कर बहनचोद बन
जाया जाए। घर की इज्जत भी बहार नीलाम नहीं
होगी, और, भाई-बहन दोनों की लंड-बरू की गमी ठं डी
रहे गी। ठं डा-ठं डा कूल-कूल - Dermi Cool "
दे खते दे खते मेरा परू ा ७-इंची लंड प्रिया की बरू में जड़ तक
समां गया। होठो में होठ दबाये प्रिया हर धक्के का
हौले हौले मजा लेने लेगी थी। थोड़ा-थोड़ा कमर को
पीछे मार कर लंड लील रही थी अब, मेरी प्यारी छोटी
बहन। प्रिया की चचकनी कोमल बदन को बदादस्त
करना अब मझ
         ु े मजु ककल हो रहा था, अपने अंदर के कुत्ते
को बहुत मजु ककल से दबाये हुए था मैं। लेककन जब कुनतया
सामने गााँड़ फैलाये झक
                    ु ी हो तो कब तक कुत्ता अपने लंड
को काबू में रखे।
मैंने प्रिया की दोनों कंधो को पकड़ा, और, अंदर-बाहर
करने लगा। हर झटके पर प्रिया की माँह
                                  ु से आह आह की
आवाज ननकल रही थी। मैं हर धक्के में लंड को सप
                                           ु ाड़े तक
बहार ननकलता और धीरे से परू ा जड़ तक ठोक दे ता। बरू में
लंड की रगड़ से प्रिया की बरू ने पानी छोड़ना शरू
                                           ु कर
ददया, और, चचकने से लंड बरू में अन्दर बाहर सरकने लगा।
प्रिया भी आाँख मद
                ूं े अब चद
                         ु ाई का मजा लेना लगी थी।
अब मेरा लंड प्रिया की बरू में सटासट आ-जा रहा था।
प्रिया भी अब चुदाई का मजा ले रही थी, अब प्रिया
भी पीछे दहल दहल कर अपनी बरू में मेरा लंड ले रही थी।
प्रिया को दहलता दे ख मैं रुक गया, और, प्रिया आगे
पीछे होकर चद
           ु ती रही।
ऐसे ही ५ लमनट की चुदाई से प्रिया थक गयी। और,
बबस्तर पर लेट चगर पड़ी। मेरा लंड अब भी उसकी बरू में
फाँसा था। मैं भी प्रिया के ऊपर लेट गया, और, जोर से
प्रिया को जकड़ कर धक्के लगाने लगा। प्रिया मरु झाई
सी लेटी रही, और, मेरे मोटे लंड का हर िहार सहती
रही। मैं २ लमनट तक ऐसे ही पीछे से प्रिया के ऊपर
चचपके हुए शॉट पर शॉट मारता रहा।
कफर थक कर मैं रुक गया। कफर पोज बदलने के ललए मैं उठने
ही वाला था की ननचे से प्रिया गााँड़ उठाने लगी। मैंने
प्रिया के दोनों तरफ हाथ रख कर अपना शरीर हवा में
रखा। और, प्रिया ननचे से अपनी गााँड़ उचका उचका कर
मेरा लंड लेने लगी। हर झटके में प्रिया के चत
                                          ू ड़ चथरक जाते
थे। प्रिया के मांसल गााँड़ की चथरकन दे ख कर मेरा अंत
ननकट आ गया। प्रिया ऐसे ही गााँड़ उठा उठा कर मेरा
लंड लीलती रही।
मैं - "प्रिया, हााँ, एस, एस, ऐसे ही करती रहो। मेरा
ननकलने वाला हैं। आह मेरी छोटी बहन, ककतनी
चचकनी है तेरी गााँड़। मस्त दहल रही है हर धक्के पर।"
प्रिया - "हााँ भैया, और लो, लो अपनी छोटी बहन की
बरू । और चोदो, चोद चोद के मााँ बना दो अपनी बहन
को भैया। आह आह, भैया मै भी झड़ने वाली हूाँ। आह आह गयी मैं।"
प्रिया झड गयी, और, रुक गयी। मेरा भी अब ननकलने ही वाला था।
मैं प्रिया की चुतड़ो को एक हाथ ने भींचते हुए मट्
                                             ु ठ मरने
लगा। और अपना सारा माल प्रिया की चचकने गााँड़ पर
छोड़ ददया। प्रिया की गााँड़, बरू सब मेरे वीयद से भर गए।
मैं ऐसा आज तक नहीं झड़ा था।
थक कर मैं भी प्रिया के बगल में लेट गया। प्रिया वैसे ही
उल्टी लेटी रही। प्रिया की पहली चुदाई मेरे कमरे में ऐसे
हुई, मानो जैसे वो मेरी पत्नी हो, और, जैसे ये हमारी
सह
 ु ागरात हो। प्रवकवास ही नहीं हो रहा था की मैंने
अपनी इतनी सन्
           ु दर छोटी बहन की चूत मारी हैं अभी
कुछ दे र पहले। प्रिया की गााँड़ की चथरकन मैं शायद ही
कभी भल
     ू पाऊ। मैंने प्रिया के गााँड़ को अपने हाथो से
सहलाते हुए सो गया। दीदी और प्रिया की दोहरी
चद
 ु ाई से मैं थक गया था। जल्द ही हम दोनों नींद की
आगोश में चले गए।